Social Justice: Theories, Issues, and Movements 9780813541686

An eye for an eye, the balance of scales--for centuries, these and other traditional concepts exemplified the public

189 6 1MB

English Pages 272 [266] Year 2007

Report DMCA / Copyright

DOWNLOAD FILE

Polecaj historie

Social Justice: Theories, Issues, and Movements
 9780813541686

Citation preview

Social Justice

Critical Issues in Crime and Society Raymond J. Michalowski, Series Editor Critical Issues in Crime and Society is oriented toward critical analysis of contemporary problems in crime and justice.The series is open to a broad range of topics, including specific types of crime, wrongful behavior by economically or politically powerful actors, controversies over justice system practices, and issues related to the intersection of identity, crime, and justice. It is committed to offering thoughtful works that will be accessible to scholars and professional criminologists, general readers, and students. Mary Bosworth and Jeanne Flavin, eds., Race, Gender, and Punishment: From Colonialism to the War on Terror Raymond J. Michalowski and Ronald C. Kramer, eds., State-Corporate Crime: Wrongdoing at the Intersection of Business and Government Susan L. Miller, Victims as Offenders: The Paradox of Women’s Violence in Relationships Susan F. Sharp, Hidden Victims:The Effects of the Death Penalty on Families of the Accused Robert H. Tillman and Michael L. Indergaard, Pump and Dump: The Rancid Rules of the New Economy Mariana Valverde, Law and Order: Images, Meanings, Myths Michael Welch, Scapegoats of September 11th: Hate Crimes and State Crimes in the War on Terror

h

Social Justice Theorie s, Issue s, and Moveme nts

Loretta Cape heart and Dragan Milovanovic

Rutge r s Unive r sity Pre ss New Brunswick, New Jersey, and London

Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data Capeheart, Loretta, 1963– Social justice: theories, issues, and movements / Loretta Capeheart and Dragan Milovanovic. p. cm. — (Critical Issues in Crime and Society) Includes bibliographical references and index. ISBN-13: 978-0-8135-4037-5 (hardcover : alk. paper) ISBN-13: 978-0-8135-4038-2 (pbk. : alk. paper) 1. Social justice. I. Milovanovic, Dragan, 1948- II.Title. HM671.C384 2007 303.3’72–dc22 2006027314 A British Cataloging-in-Publication record for this book is available from the British Library Copyright © 2007 by Loretta Capeheart and Dragan Milovanovic All rights reserved No part of this book may be reproduced or utilized in any form or by any means, electronic or mechanical, or by any information storage and retrieval system, without written permission from the publisher. Please contact Rutgers University Press, 100 Joyce Kilmer Avenue, Piscataway, NJ 08854–8099. The only exception to this prohibition is “fair use” as defined by U.S. copyright law. Manufactured in the United States of America

We dedicate this work to the reader, the student, the activist, and all of those seeking to know justice. We acknowledge the many having written and acted in the interest of justice before us. Those who have had the greatest impact upon us are referenced in this text and are too many to list here. Their ideas inform our examination of justice. Their actions give us hope for the future of justice.

Knowledge must come through action; you can have no test which is not fanciful, save by trial. —Sophocles (496 B.C.—406 B.C.)

Conte nts

1

Preface

ix

Introduction

1

Part I

Explorations in Social Justice

2

Conceptions of Justice: Classic and Modern Forms

11

3

Distributive Justice

29

4

Retributive Justice

45

5

Toward Transformative Justice

61

Part II

Issue s in Social Justice

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges to Developing Forms of Justice

77

7

Environmental and Ecological Justice

93

8

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

108

9

Postmodern Forms of Justice

125

6

Part III

Struggle s for Social Justice

10

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

143

11

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

159

12

Emerging Conceptions of Justice in a Global Arena

179

13

Conclusion

200 vii

viii

Contents

Notes References Index

205 221 245

Pre face

Criminal Justice programs emerged, mainly from sociology departments, in the early 1960s. At that time in the United States the three major higher degree granting programs were John Jay College of Criminal Justice at New York City, where faculty were predominantly more conservative and were past or current practitioners in criminal justice; the School of Criminal Justice at the State University of New York at Albany, which established the Albany Model based on vigorous scholarly analysis of criminal justice; and the criminology department at the University of California at Berkeley, which included a core group of Marxist-oriented faculty such as Tony Platt, Paul Takagi, and Herman and Julia Schwendinger. The latter Ph.D. program was closed under Governor Reagan in the early 1970s, with many faculty, students, and scholars around the world arguing it was a case of repression directed toward the activism and leftist politics of a number of members in the department. In the late 1980s we began to see the establishment of more master’s and doctorate granting programs as a response to the tremendous interest for more advanced education. In the early 1990s students had a number of Ph.D. granting programs in criminal justice to choose from. In the mid 1990s, however, much unrest developed in scholarly circles interested in crime, responses, causation, and prevention. Many would grumble that criminal justice was not what they did in their colleges and universities. It was too narrow. It focused on the individual outside of context. It did not situate the field in a broader political economic field and in historical contexts. There were no texts to capture this sentiment. The notion of an introduction to social justice was often discussed in hallway meetings, at annual conferences, and in private conversations.A few universities did respond. Such was the case with the School of Justice and Social Inquiry Department at Arizona State University and the Justice Studies Program at Northeastern Illinois.1 Police departments, too, were becoming more interested in police officers with broader backgrounds in their higher education. In the Canadian context, developments have culminated in the early 2000s in such programs as the Centre for Studies in Social Justice at the University of Windsor and the Justice Studies Program and Human Justice ix

x

Preface

Program at the University of Regina.These programs are interdisciplinary and assume a broad view of justice. Included courses cover criminal justice as well as restorative, social, and international justice. Notions of human rights, both national and international, are addressed as well as issues concerning environmental and indigenous justice. At the University of Windsor, Studies in Social Justice, a free online journal, was established in the fall of 2006. Consider its mission statement: [Studies in Social Justice] will be an interdisciplinary, peer-reviewed journal that will serve as a forum to share knowledge on a wide range of social justice issues, including racism, poverty, sexuality, gender, health and class inequalities. It will also explore the legal, environmental and cultural challenges of restructuring the global economy. This electronic journal will publish high quality scholarly research that addresses ways to promote social justice and offer recommendations on policies or strategies to diminish existing injustices. (http://www.uwindsor.ca/socialjustice; see the Centre for Studies in Social Justice Newsletter 2, no. 1 [2006]) At Northeastern Illinois University, where our department was formally called Criminal Justice, we were successful in convincing other faculty and administration that “criminal justice” was too narrowly conceived. We changed our name to the Justice Studies Program.2 We revised requirements for the major to better fit this orientation. Not that traditional criminal justice courses were eliminated; rather, new courses were introduced with an emphasis on social justice.The traditional criminal justice courses were now situated in a broader framework. Police officers and those aspiring to law enforcement now studied criminal justice in wider settings. This movement coincided, in many ways, with the development of a more critical orientation toward the study of crime.The various critical perspectives aspired to expand the domain of inquiry. In the 1960s, the study of crime was situated primarily in sociology departments and the emphasis had a more sociological framework and hence was contextually understood. In the early splitting of criminal justice away from sociology we witnessed a more conservative orientation, the consensus paradigm. Much of the concern was with order maintenance. Led by a key group of Marxist scholars at the School of Criminology at Berkeley as well as key groundbreaking figures such as Richard Quinney and William Chamblis, a new more oppositional framework was to emerge. Initially, this movement had close ties to the works of Karl Marx and was often referred to as Marxist criminology or radical criminology, or even conflict criminology (see Henry and Lanier 2006; Lanier and Henry 2006). A change appeared in the academy in the mid 1980s to encompass more diverse critical views.We witnessed feminist, anarchist, peacemaking, left realist, and postmodern perspectives within “critical criminology.”3 Yet other

Preface

xi

critical perspectives began to develop: integrative criminology, gender theories, news-making criminology, cultural criminology, constitutive criminology, edgework, etc. By the early 1990s the early form of Marxist analysis, primarily of the instrumental variety, gave way to more structuralist Marxistinformed views and to a plethora of emerging perspectives. Fewer adherents now self-identified as Marxists, although they drew considerably from this body of work. Many drew inspiration from the classic critical texts by Ian Taylor, Paul Walton, and Jock Young, entitled the New Criminology (1973) and Richard Quinney’s The Social Reality of Crime (1970). Advocates of these emerging perspectives were outspoken, highly research oriented, vocal at conferences, and popular with students. Conservative fellow professors began to accept the new perspectives more openly within higher education. By the middle 1990s, critical criminology did not have the same stigma it had in the late 1960s, 1970s, and mid 1980s. In 1988, the president of the main think-tank in criminology, the American Society of Criminology, witnessed its membership electing William Chambliss as president of the organization. Susan Caringella-MacDonald and Bob Bohm were to spearhead an open panel at the 1988 Annual Meeting in Chicago, at which we established the Division on Critical Criminology of the American Society of Criminology.We also established a critical newsletter, the Critical Criminologist, cofounded by Dragan Milovanovic and Bernard Headley. Subsequently, with the energetic and focused work of Brian MacLean, a journal was established, first called Journal of Human Justice, edited by Brian MacLean and Dragan Milovanovic, and later Critical Criminology. With all of these developments a new acceptance of critical criminology took place in the academy. The talk of moving to social justice instead of criminal justice took on greater momentum. In the early 2000s many faculty of criminal justice were considering changing the name of the discipline to one that better reflected what they were doing or wanted to do. The time had arrived for a changed orientation in dealing with crime and justice. This book arrives on the scene with this history. Consider, for example, the recent developments at the Centre for Studies in Social Justice at the University of Windsor as well as at the Human Justice Program at the University of Regina. Courses reflect orientations that go beyond merely studying criminal justice. For example, at the Centre for Studies in Social Justice, the introductory course reads: Introduction to Social Justice.The course will explore diverse visions and dimensions of social justice, both past and present. It will examine the role of political economy, culture, and identity in addressing injustice in Canada and globally. It will critically assess different strategies for social change. Students will be introduced to the principles governing the

xii

Preface

production and distribution of benefits and harms, and to such concepts as distributive justice, politics of difference, civil society, empowerment, citizenship, and human rights. Consider, too, the preamble to the Human Justice Program at the University of Regina: Our teaching, research justice-studies and community service in the Department of Justice Studies are interdisciplinary and presume a broad conception of JUSTICE—one that encompasses criminal and legal justice, as well as social, restorative, community, and international aspects of justice. Our programs also promote a strong commitment to human rights, social equality, democratic participation, and community accountability of justice organizations. Here is a typical course description: HJ 384AC: Restorative Justice: Concepts, Scope, and Services (systems): This course will introduce the student to the Restorative Justice paradigm.The paradigm is multi-dimensional in concepts, assumptions, scope, and services. This range will be explored, discussed, examined, and compared to existing paradigms in justice. International comparisons will be included. Concerning possible careers—and unlike many “criminal justice departments” with their focus on careers in policing, corrections, and generally law enforcement—the preamble to the Human Justice Program at the University of Regina states: Graduates in Human Justice are equipped with an interdisciplinary understanding of the problems and processes of justice in a global context.They have an in-depth knowledge of systems involved in the process and pursuit of justice including criminal justice, human rights, and relevant human services such as child protection, advocacy, conflict resolution, mediation, and settlement services. (see http://www.uregina.ca/arts/human-justice) Developments in the areas of justice studies as seen in the programs described here necessitate developments in the literature to support these studies. It is also necessary to support activists in their pursuits of justice on the ground.The authors of this text are, and have long been, seriously engaged in scholarship and activism. It should be clear to the reader that our commitments to both scholarship and activism inform our understandings of justice and our writing of this text.This book advocates engagements.

Social Justice

Chapte r 1

Introduction When thinking of justice it is not uncommon that a vision of a blindfolded woman holding a set of scales will come to mind. Or a popular television show such as Law and Order might inform one’s vision of justice. Laws, courts, police, and other social control agents inform many of our conceptions of justice. But do the blind woman, stories of crime and punishment, or social control agents truly represent justice or social justice? Do we need to think beyond these notions? Does our understanding of justice impact our lives? Would an understanding of justice attained through inclusion and focused on meeting needs, equality, and deserts be more just than one focused on control? Does the accepted notion of justice privilege some and leave others in want? Does our current conception allow for diligence against injustices such as poverty, environmental degradation, or oppression? Can we find better conceptions of justice and move toward them? These are some of the questions we will address here as we take on the task of examining what justice is and how it is attained. Others might argue that justice is what a governing body decides that it is or that justice must be defined by the courts or by scholars.We will offer a different vision, one that is informed by both activism and scholarship. This vision is necessarily global in scope. Social justice can be understood locally; however, given the current global realities, we have incorporated European, indigenous, Middle Eastern, South African, and South American understandings and struggles that advocate a move toward global social justice. What Is Social Justice? Social justice is necessarily broad and inclusive of historical and critical examinations. The study of social justice must attend to what justice may mean and whether this justice is available within a variety of social contexts. As human beings, we necessarily exist in social worlds. Discerning whether these worlds are just is a complex endeavor. At a first approximation, studying social justice must begin with an examination of how dominant and nondominant conceptions of justice arise; how they are selectively institutionalized; how they are formally and informally applied; what persons and/or groups are 1

2

Social Justice

being deprived of its formal mandates; and how, finally, to correct deviations so that justice is served. What is justice? This is our first concern. Once we accept this as an appropriate question we must consider who provides the definition.As we will show later in this text, definitions of justice have historically been provided by and/or for the few (elites), with little attention to the needs and desires of the majority (the rest of us).There are, however, examples of justice deriving from “below” through inclusive justice traditions and/or justice struggles.These justice developments would be in line with a more genuine form of social justice. Theorists engaged in the examination and critique of justice have developed a range of understandings that can be applied.Activists have also provided ideas and practices to the development of social justice. No single conception or practice of justice is adequate for all points in history or for all forms of society. Rather, as societies develop and change through historical processes, so too does justice.The study of these developments allows for a more complete understanding of our current notions of justice and the possibilities for a more just future. Social justice is concerned not in the narrow focus of what is just for the individual alone, but what is just for the social whole. Given the current global condition, social justice must include an understanding of the interactions within and between a multitude of peoples.This is indeed a complex and inclusive pursuit. It is also an exciting and worthy pursuit. It requires the consideration of and sensitivity to all voices and all concerns.A challenging task before us is developing a process by which historically emergent principles of justice may find arenas for their discussion, resolution, and implementation in a changing historical order, especially the new global order, with a simultaneous sensitivity to difference and commonality and subsequent practices that carry through what has been implemented without disenfranchising persons and/or groups. As we shall see in the following pages, justice exists both in human thought and in our deeds. If we attend to the ideas available and study the histories of justice struggles, we can advance justice.With continued movement we can achieve justice in ever-evolving society without becoming committed to a static conception.We will present a broad understanding of our main conceptions of social justice through inclusive democratic discourse, meeting needs, attaining equality, and distribution of desert.Accordingly, at a second approximation, the study of social justice includes developing an understanding of distributive principles (fair allocation of rewards and burdens) and retributive principles (appropriate responses to harm); how they relate to political economy and historical conditions; their local and global manifestations; the struggle for their institutionalization; how human well-being and development at the social and individual levels is enhanced by their institutionalization; and developing evaluative criteria or processes by which we may measure their effects.

Introduction

3

We want to be clear about the distinction between “distributive justice” and “retributive justice.” Distributive justice concerns the various philosophies attending to the fair allocation of resources as well as of burdens. Retributive justice, drawing from Webster’s New International Dictionary, is “recompense . . . the dispensing or receiving of reward or punishment according to the deserts of the individual . . . that given or exacted in recompense.” “Recompense” is defined as “to give an equivalent for; to make up for as by atoning or requiting . . . an equivalent or return for something done, suffered . . . a repayment as by way of satisfaction, restitution, retribution, etc.” Away From “Criminal” Justice and Toward “Social” Justice There are many introductory criminal justice texts. Lacking has been a textbook focusing on introducing the reader to social justice.This book responds to the need for a comprehensive introduction to social justice. Criminal justice texts often, at best, have short discussions of retributive justice (deterrence, retribution, social defense, and rehabilitation). But they seldom if ever provide in-depth understandings of distributive justice (fair allocation of rewards and burdens). Nor do they provide how both may inform decision making at various stages of criminal justice processing. We are left to read in between the lines as to what justice may mean, or simply to draw from preconceived notions of justice to inform our reading and practice. Here we present a variety of understandings of justice informed by theories, histories, struggles, and movements, both local and global.This unique inquiry will expand understandings of justice and further our advances toward it. Criminal justice, as a discipline, as we saw in the preface of this book, can be traced to developments in the 1960s. Previous to the Law Enforcement and Assistant Act (LEAA) (1967) which proclaimed a war on crime and provided law enforcement resources (educational and hardware) toward this end, criminal justice was studied in sociology departments in colleges and universities under courses such as criminology, penology, deviance, juvenile delinquency, and social problems. In the late 1960s, criminal justice programs and departments began splitting off from sociology departments. Initially, the key faculty were practitioners in the field.The discipline took on more conservative dimensions, with a primary focus on the individual offender. In the 1980s, this trend continued, initially with two-year associate programs but subsequently at fouryear colleges and universities. Criminal justice has been too narrow a focus and pursuit for serious comprehensive endeavors. As we move toward the study and pursuit of social justice we must first consider what social justice entails. Criminal justice accepts, for the most part, a politically established definition of crime (law, police) and focuses on process (courts) and retribution (corrections). It has traditionally

4

Social Justice

focused on these with little attention to history, political economy, culture, critique, or cross cultural understanding of the purposes of these institutions. Social justice must consider what is just not only in reaction to “crime” but also in relation to evolving (nonstatic) society. This book also recognizes that the study of social justice is intimately connected with the study of causes of harm (including officially defined crime). We recognize, equally, how unjust institutionalized principles of social justice, whether distributive or retributive—institutional arrangements, and the forms of social control that are their expression—often provide the very context for harm (including crime).The two therefore must be linked. By maintaining the link between social justice and criminology, we acknowledge the institutional context of harm. Principles of distributive justice, for example, that systematically disenfranchise, discriminate, devalue, and deny self and societal development of the many, are the basis from which the motivation to resist may spring. In part III we do begin to orient students to struggles against forms of inequality and institutionalized disenfranchisement both locally and globally. We also study how dominant groups often translate resistance into legalistic categories. On the other hand, we also see how people, subject to discriminatory forms of institutionalized conceptions of justice, may go to excesses for survival purposes or may be brutalized to the extent that their behavior will be expressive, as Marx says of the lumpen proletariat forms of crime (Tucker 1972).This all leads to our conclusion that social justice and the generation of harm (or not) are inextricably connected. As to retributive justice, we also link how institutionalized forms of responses to harm may discriminate, disenfranchise, and deny voice to segments of the population.This is also harm.And we should study the connective links between discriminatory forms of retributive justice and the consequent harms that it may generate. Due to space limitations this book will focus on social justice.We understand full well that much more needs to be done in coming days in establishing the connection between social justice and criminology. This book is but a step toward shedding light on more comprehensive practices for human and societal well-being. Engag ing in the Proce ss of Unde r standing Social Justice This book provides readers the opportunity to look deeper into the meanings of justice, the forms of justice that have arisen or may arise across time and place, and alternative models of justice. We have organized the text in order to move naturally from the variety of theories of justice to applying these understandings to issues, to examining attempts to gain justice through movements. Progressing from ideas, to issues, to movements is, in our view, the appropriate direction. However, as the reader will find throughout the text,

Introduction

5

each of these areas informs the other. Ideas inform as well as emerge from issues and movements. Movements are informed by and inform ideas and influence both the understanding and progress of social issues.Therefore, each of the areas examined in the text informs social justice and the process of justice rendering. The next chapter includes some classic theorists from antiquity to the present. From the classic period, we include the ideas of Plato, Homer, Socrates, Aristotle, and St. Thomas Aquinas. We then move to more modern expressions in social contract theory (Hobbes, Lock, Kant, and Rousseau) and social justice (Mill, Rawls, Habermas, Dworkin), including notable feminists (Gilligan and Clement).We continue with a discussion of theorists who were more concerned with the relation of justice to socioeconomic structure (Spencer, Smith, Kropotkin, Marx, and Engels). We conclude with an introduction to postmodern forms of justice (Nietzsche). This chapter provides a background for appreciating the complexity of meanings of justice and the historical and social conflicts apparent within the varieties of interpretation. Chapter 3 includes the classic sociologists Durkheim, Weber, and Marx. Here we find that various conceptions of justice are very much connected with evolving societies.We then move to a social justice model articulated by Miller (1999). He conceptualizes three ideal forms of justice found in three forms of society—merit, desert, and needs based. He indicates the interconnection between a form of society and the logical form of justice. We conclude this chapter with a summary of the debate between North American theorist Nancy Fraser and the European theorist Alex Honneth on whether social justice should be conceptualized more in terms of recognition or whether it should be a question of distribution (or redistribution of resources) in a global structure marked by increasing inequalities. Chapter 4 centers on retributive justice. A brief discussion of how we define crime introduces the chapter.We then summarize the traditional forms and justifications of punishment—deterrence, rehabilitation, social defense, and retribution. We highlight that when we reference retributive justice, we must distinguish between general responses to harm on the one hand, and to a specific form on the other, entitled retribution theory of punishment (i.e., “an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth”). We next move to procedural forms of justice: crime control model, due process model (Packer), family model (Griffith), and actuarial justice (Feeley, Simon).The restorative justice model is discussed next (Ness, Strong, Braithwaite). We note its history and various forms. In many of its expressions, it is a needs-based justice. Chapter 5 indicates how social transformation could be part of the response to crime/harm and explains the merits of a more holistic approach to justice. It reviews a macro/micro sociological response to harm and the social justice principles that informs it.Accordingly, we examine Black’s Behavior of Law and

6

Social Justice

his four models, which are expanded to six where the additional two encompass micro- and macro-interconnections in the response to crime (see Henry and Milovanovic 1996). Various other models, including a constitutive approach, are offered that look seriously in this direction. Chapter 6 explores the challenges posed by globalism and multiculturalism. It provides various views on the ongoing changes and restructurings of our global economy and the impact that these have upon societies and justice. Here we find that unilaterally imposed forms of justice are being tested within the economic superpower nations as well as within postcolonial societies. Chapter 7 explores issues in environmental justice.Various viewpoints are presented, including environmental racism, ecofeminism, disparate impact, and just sustainabilities. It then applies Miller’s three concepts of justice to the environment and examines grassroots struggles in overcoming toxic dumpsites in poor and disenfranchised communities. It also indicates the extent of the problem, nationally and internationally, summarizes various community struggles in restoring justice, and suggests future strategies for distributing potential hazards, when necessary, in a less biased fashion. Chapter 8 examines justice developed by indigenous groups, nationally and internationally, and reveals how the United Nations is dealing with the issue of safeguarding indigenous intellectual property rights. We also review postcolonial theory (Fanon, Spivak, Said, and Bhabha). Chapter 9 reviews postmodern development of justice (foundations, internal vs. external critique, opposition to a positive jurisprudence, and active conceptions of justice). We selectively cover Lyotard, Derrida, Rorty, and Deleuze.We then summarize two key postmodern feminist writings on justice (Cornell, Butler) who build on groundbreaking treatises by Lacan, Irigaray, Cixous, Moi, and Kristeva.We conclude with an emerging school of thought, postmodern Marxism. We note some recent developments in this initiative toward developing principles of social justice. Chapter 10 explores the legal context in the development of justice. We first visit the U.S. Supreme Court decision Plessy v. Ferguson (1896), which legitimized a racist order by stipulating a “separate but equal” doctrine. Brown v. Board of Education (1954), over a half century later, finally put this deplorable decision to rest. We review two key issues that cut across these struggles. We then review particular critical approaches: critical legal studies, critical feminist studies, critical race theory, critical Latino/a studies, Asian American studies, gay/lesbian studies, and queer theory. We conclude with intersectional (race, gender, and class) struggles. Of particular concern throughout is the dialectics of struggle. Chapter 11 focuses on how grassroots struggles develop alternative visions of justice and how some were institutionalized. We also examine Latino/a justice, gender justice, sexual justice, class justice, and environmental justice,

Introduction

7

followed by a summary of a chaos (complexity) informed conception of social movements for social justice (aka,“the fourth way”). Chapter 12 focuses on the emergence of justice outside of the United States. It examines how oppositional movements were stabilized, co-opted or repressed. Lessons are drawn about how emerging conceptions of more humanistic forms of justice might take on more tangible expression. We also cover the notion of “transitional justice” during regime changes and consider the struggles for social justice in Bolivia, Venezuela, and the Zapatistas of Mexico. This book responds to the challenge of raising awareness to emerging and often competing views on what is fair, what is just, both as a response to harm (retributive justice) and to how rewards and burdens are distributed (distributive justice). We shall see that new conceptions of justice often emerge in struggle. We shall also see that well-intended movements can inadvertently reconstitute forms of domination (dialectics of struggle). This book asks the practitioner, the reformist, the activist, and the scholar to consider the variety of notions of justice that exist and encourages all to develop a fairer system of justice at the local, national, and global levels.

Chapte r 2

Conceptions of Justice Classic and Mode rn Forms Justice is a complex notion that has been debated across the centuries and will likely continue as a contested concept beyond our time. While this chapter cannot be an exhaustive look at the infinite philosophies of justice, it does provide an understanding of some of the major theories, as well as resources for further reading.We begin with a look at the classic Greek ideas of justice and move forward through time to include modern and postmodern understandings. Classic Conce ptions Western thought and philosophy is often drawn back to the ancient Greeks and their conceptions of justice, equality, and politics.This section of the chapter highlights some of these ancient understandings and their influence upon later writings and conceptions. Plato (427–347 B.C.) and Socrates (469–399 B.C.) In Pangle’s (1980) interpretation of The Laws of Plato, Plato references both religious and mythical ideas of justice. In this work, an Athenian stranger inquired about the origin of laws and was told that the gods, including Zeus and Apollo, were responsible for local laws depending on the group in question. The stranger further asked about the influence of Homer (ca. 800 B.C.) upon the laws of the cities and was assured that Homer was influential.1 While the physical embodiment of Homer is the source of controversy and philosophical debate, the idea of justice as vengeance is clear in the tale of the Iliad (Homer 1961). The philosophical legacy of Homer was not entirely embraced by the Greeks but was questioned and expanded upon by Plato in his documentation of Socrates’ dialogues regarding questions of justice. This style of inquiry implies that ideas should not be merely handed down by gods or legends but should be debated and decided upon by a group of citizens. This exemplifies the Greek political tradition of democracy. There is a direct line from the Greek tradition to our current Western tradition of debate and 11

12

Social Justice

decision to which we still adhere (though in a different fashion) to varying degrees in a variety of circumstances.These traditions were instead appropriated after a hiatus by revolutionaries seeking historical justifications for their desires to violate the established order. At this point it is simply important to understand the impact of the dialogue in the understanding of justice rather than accepting the definitions offered by others. Plato’s writings illustrate competing ideas and conceptions of justice while privileging the position that justice is within the character of the individual and expressed through just behavior (Lycos 1987). In the Republic, Plato (1951) recorded a dialogue between Socrates and three persons of different backgrounds attempting to answer the question “What is Justice?” An Athenian, Polemarchus, began with the Homerian understanding that it is just to harm one who has harmed you. Socrates countered that if justice is excellence, then the harming of another reduces excellence (in both parties) and cannot be just. It should not be surprising that the merchant among them, Cephalus, contended that justice is the paying of debts and returning what is owed. Again Socrates was not convinced and suggested that returning a weapon to an insane man, though he may own it, cannot be just.Thrasymacus, a teacher of rhetoric, argued that justice is whatever serves the interest of the powerful. Socrates did not appreciate this argument and in fact turned it upside down, suggesting that rulers would not seek their own advantage but would seek justice for those whom they rule (Plato 1951, 24). Lycos (1987) contended that Socrates and Plato (through his documentation of Socrates), were interested in placing justice within the individual informed by knowledge and reflection. The soul was described as reflecting justice within the individual through the person’s “form of living” (173). It is important to note that seating justice within the soul informed through knowledge would serve the interests of philosophers such as Socrates and Plato. However, placing justice wholly outside the individual, intellect, or soul would serve the interests of others, as in the examples offered in the above Socratic dialogue. Lycos (1987) suggested that these ancient ideas of justice can be seen as enabling conditions which in their best form allow individuals and communities to address not merely individual injustices but also the conditions that create injustices.This form of justice, as Lycos wrote, allows human beings “the power, not merely the right, to flourish and realize their potential” (174). This noble promise supports the continuing influence of the ancients upon our understandings and studies of justice. The dialogue captured by Plato illustrates a variety of definitions applied to justice. Gaus (2000) noted that the meanings we instill in terms and ideas that are inherently political, such as justice, are not as simple as defining a term because the conception is dependent upon a political perspective.“What is at stake is not the meaning of a word, but a view of the world” (262).While the

Conceptions of Justice

13

Greeks can be seen as progressing to a more inclusive form of politics, thereby allowing a more democratic notion of justice, these writers were not democratic in our current sense of the term. Specifically excluded from citizenship, debate, and the assumption of possessing a mind or soul were women and slaves. The understanding of justice as an excellence embodied within a just person may seem harmless or even superior to other conceptions. However, this form of justice espoused by Plato and Socrates is rife with the politics and power relations of the time. It is no accident that Plato writes of the just “man,” which explicitly excludes both women and slaves. Women and slaves were held in similar states of servitude and considered equal to beasts. A conception of justice such as Plato espoused, which holds that justice is embodied in the just man, excludes women and slaves from the holding of justice.2 Socrates also reasoned that vengeance does not serve justice, that payment of debt is not required by justice if such payment may cause harm, and that rulers rule for the sake of justice. These understandings of justice preclude the vengeance of the oppressed against their oppressors, slave reparation, and the questioning of authority among other possibilities. One’s placement in the power structure would surely inform one’s agreement with these ideas. It is for this reason that, while we continue to study the ancients, we continue to build upon their ideas and/or reject their ideas in preference of others. Aristotle (384–322 B.C.) Aristotle’s ideas were, not surprisingly, similar to those of his professor, Plato. For example, their understandings of justice as a characteristic of individuals expressed through their allegiance to a just government were alike. However, according to Kagan (1965), differences in their backgrounds produced some subtle differences in their thinking. Unlike Plato,Aristotle was not born into the Athenian aristocracy.Aristotle was foreign born, middle class, and had married into the aristocracy. Gaus (2000) noted Aristotle’s famous insistence on the importance of equality.While Aristotle gave more attention to the idea of equality than did his predecessors and insisted upon its necessity to justice, he was not arguing for absolute equality. Instead, he qualified equality. Aristotle (2000) was clear that equals must be treated equally while unequals must be treated unequally. This idea of proportionate equality was described as just while counterproportionate equality was described as unjust. Aristotle went to some lengths to quantify this idea of proportionality, explaining that the unequal treatment of equals or the equal treatment of unequals leads to quarrels (Gaus 2000).While this may sound very convoluted and unfair, this form of in/equality is still with us today.Aristotle (2000) offered the example of money as the measure for exchange, explaining that it would be difficult for a shoemaker and a house builder to exchange their products otherwise. How many shoes would a house be worth? With money as the

14

Social Justice

measure, these two can exchange unequal amounts of money for unequal products of their labor. Although money was used in his example,Aristotle’s (2000) main concern was for political equality (equality before the state and the law) rather than economic equality. Aristotle further divides justice into distributive and rectificatory, with the former referencing the appropriate distribution of goods within transactions (similar to our civil law) and the latter concerned with the rectification of harms (similar to our criminal law). St.Thomas Aquinas (1225–1274 A.D.) Aquinas’s influential writing, Summa Theologica, included major sections on justice.3 He, along with St. Augustine (1964), were to integrate a number of biblical ideas into their notions of justice. For Aquinas, the key ideas of justice were to be found in Sections 57–122 of “Secunda Secundae Partis” in the form of answers to objections. Justice was to be seen as grounded in natural law. There were objective principles that existed, naturally, and remain only to be discovered through enlightened reasoning. The source was divine will. Justice existed only where positive law (law created by legislators) was congruent with natural law.Where incongruency existed, natural law allowed disobedience. Justice is defined as “a habit whereby a man renders to each one his due by a constant and perpetual will” (Aquinas, Qu. 58, art. 7). Aquinas defined justice in two forms:“general justice,” which is equated with legal justice and is based on the laws of the state, although, when faltering, ultimately it is natural law that is its base; and “particular justice,” which is further divided into “commutative” and “distributive” justice (Qu. 61, art 1). Commutative justice is focused on the relation of one person to another, whereas distributive justice is the relation of the community to the person and the proportional distribution of the common goods. Distributive justice also deals with transgressions and requires when the law is broken that the offender be punished and that the victim be compensated. In addition, “in distributive justice a person receives all the more of the common goods, according as he holds a more prominent position in the community” (Qu. 61, art. 2). In other words, a person’s rank in a community determines his or her dues (rewards).4 Unlike inequality that prevails at the distributive level, Aquinas argued that equality prevails at the commutative forms of justice, most prominently found in exchange of buyer and seller.5 For Aquinas, placing justice in natural law principles was grounds for questioning conceptions that are not in accordance with justice.An unjust law is simply not law. Oppressive law, then, has a basis for opposition. At the same time that it provides grounds for disobedience and struggle, however, it also opens up issues of how various parties can ground their interests in their own

Conceptions of Justice

15

conceptions of natural law (Ross 1974).6 Current justice struggles that compete for the natural right to life against the death penalty and/or abortion exemplify such struggles. Mode rn Inquirie s Depending on one’s perspective, the modern age might indicate different points in history. One might think of the modern age as any point after the invention of the wheel or as not occurring until the invention of the microwave. During a guest lecture at Texas Woman’s University in 1999, T. R. Young (1928–2004) asked his audience when the modern age began and was met with silence. One of the authors of this work was thinking about Watson and Crick’s decoding of DNA strands when Professor Young announced that the modern age began with Sir Francis Bacon (1561–1626). Bacon utilized what we now think of as the scientific method in his inquiry, thus developing a new way of looking at the world.This placement of the modern age has stuck with this author, and so it is in the time of Bacon that we place the beginnings of the modern age for our consideration of justice. Thomas Hobbes (1588–1679) Hobbes was a contemporary of Bacon and put forward a theory of social contract without any appeal to religious explanations. Hobbes’s view of humanity was pessimistic, asserting that unless held in check through a common overseer (the sovereign) men would be in a constant warlike state. In his book Leviathan, he said that “the natural condition of man . . . is war of every one against every one—in which case everyone is governed by his own reason and there is nothing he can make use of that may not be a help unto him in preserving his life against his enemies” (Hobbes 1958, 85). Men in the state of nature, therefore, were under no obligation to respect anyone. It was through the social contract of agreed upon political authority that Hobbes located justice. According to Hobbes, the sovereign was established by the people with full authority to dictate rights and judge claims to those rights (Gaus 2000; Hobbes 1958). Hobbes conceived of individuals as equal and rational in entering into a contract with each other to keep the peace and maintain security. The social contract expressed itself through the social control of the sovereign over others. Given that responsibility, the sovereign in Hobbes’s view was beyond the reproach of its subjects. Because of his fatalistic view of humanity as naturally warlike and quarrelsome it follows that an unquestioned authoritarian government would be necessary to keep the peace. Allowing for the critique of the sovereign would allow for the emergence of conflict. Hobbes conceded the right to dissent only in the case that to obey the sovereign would threaten one’s life. Hobbes

16

Social Justice

saw the governing authority as protective of justice between its subjects through the resolution of disputes which arise because of the nature of humans to quarrel. Hobbes was less concerned about the potential for violations of justice by that authority (Barry 1989). John Locke (1632–1704) Locke also saw the social contract as central to justice but was not as pessimistic as Hobbes when it came to the natural state of man.Therefore, Locke had a very different understanding of the social contract, even though he assumed that people were morally obliged because of their belief in God. Locke perceived the natural state of humanity as one that inherently recognized the rights of others to their lives and liberty (Locke 1924). He did not see political authority as necessary to ward off war but as necessary to enforce violations of the recognized rights of individuals protecting the life and property of each from the other. For Locke, the war of all against all could still exist after the establishment of a state in so much as there still would be power differences and conflict. Locke’s social contract then is extended to the political authority for the purpose of resolving disagreements between persons which arise from the violations of individual rights, not to keep necessarily warlike people from conflict. Locke further saw the political authority as constrained by the preceding natural rights of individuals. This authority, then, unlike Hobbes’s sovereign, should not infringe upon the lives or liberty of the governed. Locke’s authority is held accountable by the people to respect the rights of individuals when arbitrating disagreements. Locke has significantly influenced the classical liberal tradition. Immanuel Kant (1724–1804) Modernist theory is often traced to Kant and Descartes. Kant assumed human beings to be rational and to have the ability to reason. “Reason proceeds by ‘eternal’ and ‘unalterable’ laws” (1965, 9). Each individual, for Kant, was unique and an end in itself, never a means to an end. Accordingly, each must be respected.The rational being was seen separable from the body and its emotionality.This notion is referred to as the Cartesian dualism—the separation of mind from body. Kant’s classic, The Foundations of the Metaphysics of Morals (1969), advocated morality as a categorical imperative. The categorical imperative stands for any proposition that calls forth a particular action and is seen as an absolute requirement regardless of a situation (a universal law). For example, “In order not to get wet, I need to take my umbrella,” “To be good is to be respectful of others,” etc. Our conduct should be based on principles that we could reason to be universal principles. “Act according to that maxim by which you can at the same time will that it should become a universal law” (44).

Conceptions of Justice

17

Kant’s second principle was to “act as though the maxim of your action were by your will to become a universal law of nature” (44–45). The third principle, the means/ends principle, is sometimes referred to as the “ends formula”—that is, that a human being should be seen as an end in and of itself. The fourth categorical principle was the capacity to act based on autonomy and self-governance.The fifth, which was to also locate him in the social contract tradition, is that we should act according to terms that could universally be derived from rational thought.This principle, called a “kingdom of ends,” is explained as “the systematic union of different rational beings through common laws” (58). Each person pursuing his or her interests acknowledges other rational beings pursuing theirs and both are bound by rationally developed laws.The social contract would be but one example. For Kant, the just state can only be realized by the collective will of the people. It should be in the form of a republic (1983, 112).The republic is but the call for freedom and reason. For Kant, a hypothetical “original contract,” derived from reason, could be examined in terms of the justness of laws passed by the Republic. “[I]t [the original contract] obligates every legislator to formulate his laws in such a way that they could have sprung from the unified will of an entire people” (77). Jean-Jacque Rousseau (1712–1778) Rousseau was more similar to Locke than Hobbes in his understanding of the social contract. Like Locke, Rousseau (1973) envisioned a more cooperative than combative human nature and extended this view to an understanding of property as shared. It was not until private property was recognized and taken that the social contract became necessary. He found a certain conflict between civil society and the state of nature of Hobbes. For Rousseau, the state of nature was not one of a war of all against all, but rather by nature, peaceful, and the war of all against all was only to come about with the onset of the development of society.With the desire for self-improvement humans entered cooperative relations, which in turn lead to greater desires for products, possession, and subsequently inequalities. This leads ultimately to conflict, establishment of civil society, and law. It is this point in history that Rousseau finds both destructive to the natural state and in need of the social contract to deal with the inequalities that arose with the birth of private property. The social contract binds people (whom Rousseau insisted were not merely a collection of individuals but an aggregate) into a common good to which each submits to avoid the dependence on the will of any individual (Gaus 2000).Whereas in society prior to the contract people were moral because of compassion, in contractual forms of society, it is reason, the will, that determines morality. It is the general will incorporated in the social contract that expresses this consensus, and thus individuals are bound by its terms.

18

Social Justice

More Rece nt Mode rnist Thought The concept of the social contract and social justice has been with us for centuries. More recent investigations into the nature of social justice have been developed by Mill, Rawls, Habermas, Dworkin, Gilligan, and Clement. Each attempts to develop principles of a just social order. The latter two develop a feminist ethic of care. John Stuart Mill (1806–1873) Mill’s approach to justice is inductive. One reasons from facts and observations to arrive at principles.The primary principle of utility ( justice) he develops cannot be grounded foundationally and hence must be developed indirectly and inductively by recourse to our senses and “internal consciousness.” In an essay on utilitarianism he states his primary principle of utility as “actions are right in proportion as they tend to promote happiness; wrong as they tend to produce the reverse of happiness” (Mill 1961, 198). He also states that “happiness is desirable, and the only thing desirable, as an end; all other things being only desirable a means to that end” (220). All other principles, which are also much more common, are secondary to this prime one.We should, he tells us, be guided by an action’s consequences rather than any particular personality traits of the person doing the action.Where secondary principles come into conflict, it is ultimately to the primary principle that we must look for resolution. Society is supposed to promote social utility. Rights established draw from this contract. Society protects us because of social utility. As long as we seek, through our actions, happiness, without cost to anyone else, that should be protected by the terms of the contract. Ultimately, when conflict exists, the resolution should be by an appeal to the utility principle.“Just” means respecting others’ actions toward happiness, including rights belonging to him by law; thus “unjust” means anything that deprives the other of such things as personal property or liberty. As he says,“it is just to respect, unjust to violate” (228). His desert-based justice principle then would have it that “it is universally considered just that each person should obtain that . . . which he deserves; and unjust that he should obtain a good, or be made to undergo an evil, which he does not deserve” (229). Mill included within his five aspects of justice the idea of just deserts but did not leave justice in the hands of the free market (228–231). Instead, Mill included other essential elements of justice that indicated the inclusion of social institutions beyond the market. A related aspect of justice according to Mill is the right to liberty, property, and other belongings. This aspect is tempered with his second notion, which is that if someone is in possession of a thing or right by law that does not serve justice, then no injustice is committed by the taking of that thing or right. An example of the competing notions here might be the legal right to slave ownership, which would not

Conceptions of Justice

19

preclude the emancipation of a slave in service to justice.With these seemingly competing aspects of justice, Mill distinguished between legal and moral justice.The remaining aspects of justice addressed the necessity of keeping agreements and impartiality. Mill’s aspects of justice required the engagement of civil and criminal legal structures in the keeping of justice. John Rawls (1921–) Rather than counterposing the social contract with the demise of the state of nature, Rawls located the entrance into the social contract as arriving through a hypothetical “original position” (Rawls 1971). He attempted to approach this position inductively. This original position allows for the just construction of the social contract through the devising of the terms of that contract in ignorance (“veil of ignorance”) of one’s position within the social structure. This position of being unaware of one’s social class, social position, and other characteristics (i.e. excluding gender) would presumably allow for the construction of a just contract. This contract would neither privilege nor oppress any position because to do so would not be in the interest of the creator of the contract, who is unaware of his position within the structure. In this original position, Rawls (1963) tells us two principles of justice would be agreed upon. His first principle dealt with the right to equality and the second with the conditions for any inequality that might be included within or created by the social structure. His first principle of equality stipulated freedom to speech, assembly, private property, and freedom from arbitrary forms of arrest and seizure. His second principle determined that inequality is just only if it serves the common good. Further, he asserted that in order to be just, the better positions within an unequal system must be equally accessible to all members of that system.The distribution of wealth in society, for Rawls, must be to all’s advantage. He assumed hierarchical organizations, equally open to all, but that the distribution of income, status, and power do not have to be equal (“difference principle”). For Rawls, it is the first principle that would have priority over the second. Liberty, for example, can only be restricted for the purposes of protecting overall liberty or increasing it, not for increasing economic and social benefits, nor for the increasing benefit of the worst-off (see also Reiman 1990, 261). The “difference principle” states that “social and economic inequalities are to be arranged so that they are . . . to the greatest benefit of the least advantaged” (302). This principle allows unequal distributions of wealth and income so long as it maximizes the benefits of the worst-off in a society. In short, economic and social inequalities are allowable as long as they maximize the benefits of the worst-off. In other words, whatever distributive scheme a society has in place, particularly where it allows inequalities, it should work in such a way that the worst-off benefit maximally.7

20

Social Justice

Jurgen Habermas (1929–) Habermas’s theory has some affinities with those of Rawls. He argued for the possible materialization of an “ideal speech situation” where each party in discussion or conflict may freely dialogue and reach consensus. Supposedly, out of this situation, much like Rawls’s original position of a “veil of ignorance,” rational people will arrive at just and fair principles in resolving differences and establish what these principles are in fact. In this view, too, legitimate authority is rationally justifiable by developments within ideal speech situations. For Habermas human beings enter discursive moments with differing truth claims, or what he calls validity claims to truth, correctness, veracity, comprehensibility (Habermas 1976, 161). Where background assumptions of each speaker are more in agreement, these are not questioned; in other words, a background consensus exists.Where it dissipates, however, conflict exists and consensus must be reestablished. Genuine consensus can only be reestablished in the ideal speech situation where each speaker, as a rational speaker, is an equal in terms of being able to contribute to the discussion. Habermas’s formulation is more in terms of how a practical consensus can be achieved. In this scenario, and apparently in agreement with Rawls, “there exists no independent criterion of justice.What is just is defined by the outcome of a consensus under certain specified conditions” (Phillips 1986, 82).And, like Rawls’s assertion, a moral or just principle “is valid only to the extent that it would be mutually acknowledged under certain ideal conditions—freedom, rationality, equality, knowledge—by all agents to whom it applies” (83). Habermas, too, acknowledged that this is only an ideal, rarely if ever attainable in practice, but something toward which we should strive. For Habermas, one does not need to incorporate a particular vision of a just society in order to have his consensus theory work, although implications are clearly abundant. Ronald Dworkin (1931–) Dworkin (1978) developed a liberal theory of justice. In his view, justice and law are connected. His justice in action view defers considerably to enlightened judges. He named his ideal judge “Hercules” and referenced this judge in his justice examples. Dworkin made a distinction between a rule and a principle. A rule is applied in “an all-or-nothing fashion” (24), whereas a principle refers to a criteria that is external to rules (22). A principle is a standard that should be applied because it reflects justice and fairness. Judges, then, in difficult cases (the “hard cases”) often refer to principles when no rule seems operative or binding. But principles, too, are embedded in law, be they more general orientations. In these cases, the judge, Hercules, must decide by looking at intentions of a particular law and its imbedded principle.This too becomes the basis

Conceptions of Justice

21

of future reasoning and decision making by judges (stare decises). In doing so, the judge is searching for fair and just principles that are assumed imbedded in the intentions of legislators, or founding fathers. So for Dworkin, the Herculean judge must integrate a particular rule, principles, and notions of justice in her or his decision making. He then developed his idea of rights, stating that “certain moral rights are made into legal right by the Constitution” (190).These rights, therefore, have a moral status that stand outside the law. These rights are further divided in terms of abstract and concrete. Abstract rights, such as freedom of expression and assembly, have “a general political aim the statement of which does not indicate how that general aim is to be weighed or compromised in particular circumstances against other political aims” (93). Concrete rights are those that consider the various conflicts of interests and how to in fact operationalize their meaning in a particular setting.Thus freedom of assembly and expression can be restricted in time, place, and manner. Judges focus ultimately on concrete rights. Justice and fairness, then, are seen in these contexts. And, ultimately, the credibility of the theory of which the judge makes use is based on “the greatest degree of moral acceptability in terms of a broader moral and political theory” (Phillips 1986, 292).This in turn is based on society’s existing “conventional morality” (Dworkin 1978, 40).Thus the judge must look to his or her conception of what this society-wide morality is at a given time in justly deciding the hard cases. Feminist Ethic of Care Feminist analyses such as those by Carol Gilligan and Grace Clement argue that a distinct difference exists between male and female notions of what constitutes justice. Formal equality before the law overlooks the factor that the male notion of justice is incorporated in discussions of what is just, and female notions are relegated to subordinate positions. Gilligan, Clement, and others indicate aspects of justice that differ by gender. Carol Gilligan (1936–) Gilligan (1982; see also Held 1995 and Tong 1993) is arguably the most prominent developer of a feminist ethics of care as a response to male forms of justice. Her ethics of care was developed as an alternative to an ethics of responsibility. The ethics of responsibility, most notably constituting contractarian forms of justice and imbedded in formal law, focus on notions of equality, whereas the ethics of justice focus on attachment, need, and care. Thus two distinct forms of justice exist, with the latter in contemporary society being subordinate to the former. Gilligan’s position has been identified as essentialist, in that she is arguing the objective nature of the differences between the two.8 In In a Different Voice, Gilligan criticized Kohlberg’s studies

22

Social Justice

on moral development as biased due to his focus only on males’ responses to various hypothetical moral situations. Her underlying theoretical framework was derived from Piaget (1965) and Kohlberg (1969) on the moral development of the child.9 She found distinct differences from which she concluded that girls and boys have different conceptions of justice from which they draw. And, further, one may then distinguish an ethic of care as a feminine ethic, and an ethic of justice as a masculine ethic. She posed the following specific short situation to her subjects to elicit their forms of moral reasoning:10 In Europe, a woman was near death from cancer. One drug might save her, a rare form of radium that a druggist in the same town had discovered.The druggist was charging $2000, ten times what the drug cost him to make.The sick woman’s husband, Heinz, went to everyone he knew to borrow the money, but he could only get together about half of what it cost. He told the druggist that his wife was dying and asked him to sell it cheaper or let him pay later. But the druggist said,“No.”The husband got desperate and broke into the man’s store to steal the drug for his wife. Should the husband have done that? Why? (Kohlberg 1969, 379) From the answers received, Gilligan (1982) formulated specific forms of moral reasoning. One polarity tended toward abstract reasoning; the other tended toward concrete reasoning. Gilligan concluded that the ethics of justice demands reasoning from some abstract set of principles culminating into finding the rule necessary for an answer. It was more likely connected to boys’ responses. An ethic of care, on the other hand, is exhibited by subjects trying to discern the specific concrete and unique factors of the situation. This was connected with the girls’ responses. Gilligan further reasoned where moral judgments are based more on notions of equality we have the ethics of justice; where the moral judgment was based on attachment and needs factors, the ethic of care prevailed.The conclusion by Gilligan was that two distinct ethics, one more male oriented, one more female oriented due to socialization, were operative in moral development. Grace Clement (1963–) More recently, feminist analyses by Clement (1998) have examined the two ethics underlying Gilligan’s work to see if in fact they are two separate ethics of justice or they are interdependent. Stating at the outset that either ethic does not necessarily attach to either boys or girls, she nevertheless accepted the ethic of justice as attached to a masculine ethic and the ethic of care to a feminine ethic (3). She concluded that the two are complementary, that neither is subordinate to the other, that each informs the other, and that the two must remain in this oscillating state for more genuine justice to take place.

Conceptions of Justice

23

Clement (1998) argued that the ethic of justice assumes much of the baggage of contractarian theorists: individualism, rationalism, autonomy, choice, importance of abstract thought, formal equality, reliance on rules, and human separateness. This is most often found in formal law and bureaucracies. The ethic of care, however, assumes relational factors—that is, attachment, connectedness, relations, context—as most important; in other words, the interactional dynamics of specific human beings in contextualized settings are prioritized. This is most often found in family and friendship settings.The assumption in the ethics of care model is that the self is socially constituted in its ongoing relationships with various others. Clement then examined whether there is or should be a privileging of one ethic over the other. Her answer is in the negative. As she informs us, “each ethic provides a check against the exaggerated, ideal type form of the other ethic . . . used alone, either ethic tends to result in forms of moral reasoning which are both distorted and oppressive to women” (113). It is around this conclusion that much feminist analysis polarizes, some more essentialist, some more nonessentialist.The essentialist pole holds that there is a feminine ethic (care) and a masculine ethic ( justice), per Gilligan, while the nonessentialist pole contends that these ethics are interrelated and not essential to either gender identity. Justice and Social Structure Social structure was implicit in the ancients’ understandings of justice and explicit in the social contract theories. However, the following sets of ideas regarding justice include as a substantial part of their frameworks concrete social structures beyond the abstract and sometimes esoteric notions of the social contract explored above. These social structures are analyzed not as the outcome of a social contract or as necessarily the seat of justice, but as impacting upon our ideas regarding justice and the ways we think about what society is and what we may owe each other within a social contract. Some theorists here deal explicitly with social change and/or the need for social change in the pursuit of justice. Herbert Spencer (1820–1903) Spencer based his ideas of justice on economic assumptions of humanity that would define justice as receiving appropriate rewards (or punishments) in exchange for behaviors (Spencer 1897, 1969, 1978; see also Carneiro 1967; Miller 1976, 180–208). In his words, “each individual ought to receive the benefits and the evils of his own nature and consequent conduct” (1978, 17). His conception of justice was based on desert (Miller 1976, 186).There should be a proportional relation between act and result; benefit should be proportional to input. Those in a superior position, too, are rightful beneficiaries of

24

Social Justice

this status, whereas those in inferior positions in life are so as a result of their deficiencies. His notion of justice was to emerge from the evolutionary dynamics of a market society. Contrary to much conventional wisdom, it was he, rather than Darwin, that proclaimed the slogan “survival of the fittest.”According to Spencer, human beings are competitive, independent, utilitarian driven, and egotistical. Rewards gained in the competitive marketplace, then, are just according to the contribution one as well as other egotistically driven individuals make to society as a whole. Justice, thus, is naturally related to desert; the drive for profit in the marketplace by all will assure the progression of society to its perfection.The state should enforce contracts that were freely made. Adam Smith (1723–1790) Smith placed the free market at the center of justice, contending that when engaged in the free market each man would work toward his own best interest and that through this pursuit others would benefit (Smith 1776).This was his notion of the “invisible hand,” developed in his Wealth of Nations (1776). Individuals following their self-interest with minimal constraint—bounded only by law and justice—and competing with others similarly minded would assure and benefit a collective development. Smith wrote during a period of rapid industrialization and newly accumulating wealth. Smith’s analysis places attention on those profiting during this time, which suggests that those who are industrious, entrepreneurial, and engaged in the market could not only make a personal fortune but also provide for the employment and income of others. In The Theory of Moral Sentiments, Smith explained his merit-based system of justice:“That whatever appears to be the proper object of gratitude, appears to deserve reward; and that, in the same manner, whatever appears to be the proper object of resentment, appears to deserve punishment” (1976, 136). In the same text he proclaimed that “the sense of merit seems to be a compounded sentiment, and to be made up of two distinct emotions; a direct sympathy with the sentiments of the agent, and an indirect sympathy with the gratitude of those who receive the benefit of his actions” (1976, 148). So sympathy was an essential ingredient of his merit-based system of justice. Accordingly, in the competition in the economic sphere, those who excelled should be rewarded proportional to their involvement and capacity to better compete with the other, and this should be acknowledged by others via sympathy with those persons’ abilities. Peter Kropotkin (1842–1921) Kropotkin has been identified as one of the most prominent promulgators of an anarchist philosophy (1902, 1924, 1926; see also Miller 1976, 209–244).

Conceptions of Justice

25

His approach was positivistic and antitheological. It was both inductive (making observations and working toward generalizations and theories) and deductive (making predictions based on a theory or principle that were subject to further verification). He was also inspired by Darwin’s and Spencer’s notions of the competition of species and the outcomes of such competition. However, in Mutual Aid (1902) Kropotkin outlined a history of man/woman in terms of cooperation centering on mutual support and aid. It was in modern times that many of these social support institutions faltered or disappeared all together.Thus, for Kropotkin, it was cooperation, not war of all against all, that was the key motor to evolution. By “mutual aid” Kropotkin meant a naturally (instinctively) based disposition to be concerned with the other, particularly the other’s needs. Supportive activity toward the other is not based on potential rewards but instinctive feelings for solidarity. There is no further coherent foundational principle. Justice, according to Kropotkin, would arise from the foundational principle of mutual aid. Once principles such as treating others as you would have them treat you are instituted, mutual aid institutions are created.This principle is based on the generalized idea that one’s aid will find reciprocation on future occasions. Kropotkin also wrote about self-sacrifice as a form of higher morality. There are times where one gives beyond expectations and beyond expectations of return (as existed in justice). Self-sacrifice draws from notions of mutual aid, justice principles, and the drive toward social solidarity, but goes beyond these notions to include human drive to excel, to create, to express. These are “the sources of progress and invention in human society” (Miller 1976, 218). Kropotkin questioned whether law is necessarily a source of justice. Law, he informed us, is imposed by powerful groups and thus a model for exploitation. Since collective ownership assumes that not one person has an unequal contribution or share, it would be illusory to determine with precision each individual’s contribution, the very basis of merit or desert based systems of justice. Merit or desert based systems also tend to class distinctions and hierarchies. According to Kropotkin, cooperation and mutual aid would assure distribution.The key is the satisfaction of each person’s needs and the assurance of voluntary organization that is not imposed from above.Thus, Kropotkin argues that mutual aid institutions would continue to flourish in these environments. His goal was the creation of a society devoid of a state, law, criminal justice systems, and penal systems—all coercive institutions—and the development of self-regulating communities. More recent applications of a needs-based system of justice have been promulgated by Dennis Sullivan and Larry Tifft (1980, 2001). They criticize desert-based justice as inherently hierarchical and divisive. Their needs-based justice is focused on more genuine responses to the unique needs of each human being. In encouraging alternative responses to lawbreaking, they suggest

26

Social Justice

that all voices need to be addressed.This idea is particularly embraced in recently developed restorative justice type programs where mediation and conflict resolution is the working principle of coming to terms with transgression. Sullivan and Tifft argue for mutual aid institutions where a “true self ” (selfactualizing and engaged in mutual aid) might emerge rather than the “powerbased self,” which is the product of hierarchies, formal law, and social control institutions. Going beyond restorative justice, they argue that we need a transformative justice where social structural arrangements are critically examined and targets of transformation while still adequately responding to those individuals who invest in doing harm to the other. Karl Marx (1818–1883) and Frederick Engels (1820–1895) These authors critically located social ideas and ideals including justice within the economic structure. Rather than accepting that the market produces justice, these theorists argued that the market produces injustices. Working class exploitation and alienation were the major injustices of interest to these writers, who not only described the mechanisms within the capitalist market, which produced inequalities, poverty, and other suffering among the working and lower classes, but also argued for a way to move beyond the injustices of capitalism to democratic nonexploitative social eras in which the majority, the working class, rule in their interest rather than the interests of the market (Tucker 1972). Contrary to Smith, Marx and Engels saw the market as serving the interests of the minority capitalist elite rather than the interests of justice. They therefore wrote that society must do away with the capitalist market to win a just social system.They did not argue that capitalism was unnecessary. On the contrary, Marx was clear that capitalism is a necessary phase of human development. It was described as a phase of institutionalized injustice and inequality but a necessary phase which could only be overcome through the collective actions of a conscious working class (Tucker 1972). Engels’s (1972) often overlooked study of the impact of social development on the lives of women is instructive and relevant to those seeking to understand the impact of economic structure on the particular injustices of sexism. Po stmode rn Conce ptions of Social Justice Postmodern perspectives on social justice have been influenced by French scholars, predominantly from the late 1960s, 1970s, and 1980s (see Arrigo et al. 2005).They question the core assumptions embedded in modernist and premodernist thought. The Enlightenment (circa the 1700s) brought with it core assumptions that remain embedded in thinking about social justice, so say the postmodernists. Core assumptions of modernists include the privileging of the rational, logical subject, free will, and potential liberation by way of

Conceptions of Justice

27

enlightened reasoning, formal liberties, and economic progress.These were all questioned by postmodernist thinkers who attempted to develop conceptions of justice from an alternative framework. Such thinkers as Nietzsche, Derrida, Lyotard, and Rorty were to advocate a reorientation in thinking about justice. Recognized were the decentered notion of the subject (the person is more determined than determining); nonlinear rather than linear historical developments (genealogy); the manipulative effects of media, monopolies, and governmental agencies; restrictive assumptions embedded in the dominant ideology; and the imprisoning effects of dominant discourse. For the postmodernists, social justice needs to be rethought around these new ontological premises. In this view, social justice must be examined in terms of the indeterminacies embedded in social structure, the dynamic notions of language and how consciousness is but its reflection, the multiplicity of languages, and how principles of social justice must be rethought to include these logics. Friedrich Nietzsche (1844–1900) Perhaps one of the most cited thinkers in postmodern thought, Nietzsche rejected natural law and conceptions of justice that logically arose with it. As he informed us,“law of nature [is] a superstition,” and principles of justice are ideas created by differences in power and their interests (1974, 356; 1986, 216). Nature has been interpreted to justify given power inequalities. The individual, in terms of a unitary, self-directing, determining subject is a fiction: there is no “being behind doing, affecting, becoming; the ‘doer’ is merely a fiction added to the deed” (1967, 45). Thus the notion of the juridical subject, the so-called reasonable man in law, would be seen as a legal fiction, serving interests that do not necessarily enhance human development and well-being. For Nietzsche, the development of justice principles underwent two historical phases. In the first stage, justice reflected competing powerful groups— those who were able to dictate contracts to the weaker and punish noncompliers—who established a standoff amongst themselves. “Justice (fairness) originates between parties of approximately equal power . . . Justice naturally derives from prudent concern with self-preservation” (Nietzsche 1986, 49).The second stage arrived with Christianity and its emphasis on pity, equality, fairness, and needs of the weaker.The weaker were to organize themselves against the stronger in the development of conceptions of justice. The weaker (“slave morality”) now saw themselves as good; the stronger (“master morality”) were seen as bad and evil. Thereafter, history is about the conflict between the two and who can attain supremacy (hegemony) at any particular moment. Nietzsche’s suggestion is that we should recognize a will to power by which human beings attempt to maximize forces for life preservation,

28

Social Justice

affirmation, self-overcoming, and growth.Thus justice principles must respect the open and amorphous character of this ontology. Justice and law must be continually experimental and allow for the maximal possibilities of selfexploration, self-mastery, and self-overcoming. In this schema, the will to power knows nothing short of continuous transcendence. Conceptions of justice, therefore, cannot ever be rooted in some natural law or natural justice or foundational principles. These can be best exemplified in the Declaration of Independence, which references the laws of nature to ground its proclamation. These, for Nietzsche, are merely metaphysical baggage that hinders, not promotes, human development. All too often we create fictions that attempt to explain our indeterminate nature and cosmos.These fictions must be continuously confronted.

Chapter 3

Distributive Justice

A social theory of distributive justice must engage societal and historical developments in the formation of conceptions of justice. In other words, to come to some understanding as to what is seen as just or unjust we must look to historical developments and how justice notions arrive at some general understanding and acceptance. Distributive justice has to do with notions of fairness in the distribution of benefits and burdens in a society (Miller 1999, 2). Notions of distributive justices move from the grand theoretical narratives of justice toward more concrete understandings of justice. Depending on the particular construction, ideas of fairness and benefits vary. Accordingly, our understanding of social justice includes understanding distributive principles (fair allocation of rewards and burdens) and retributive principles (appropriate responses to harm); how they relate to political economy and historical conditions; their local and global manifestations; the struggle for their institutionalization; how human well-being and development at the social and individual levels are enhanced by their institutionalization; and developing evaluative criteria or processes by which their enhancement or denial result. Classic Social Theorists on Justice Emile Durkheim (1858–1917) Durkheim’s influential writings focused on the nature of social solidarity. He found that the existing form of law was an index to the kind of solidarity in existence. He identified two forms of solidarity.These two forms of solidarity— mechanical (based on similarity) and organic (based on differences)—were situated in historical developments. He theorized that society tended to develop toward ever more differentiation.The key factor for social differentiation (e.g., division of labor in society) was moral/social density. A society, without any disturbance from external factors (political, economic, etc.), was to naturally progress from the less differentiated form (e.g., less division of labor), with a consequent premium on mechanical bonds of solidarity, to a greater differentiation and organic bonds of solidarity.This was the course of the spontaneous division of labor. 29

30

Social Justice

The collective conscience (a commonly internalized notion of morality) of the less developed form assured stability.With the greater division of labor, however, it became undermined considerably.Within a mechanically bonded society, there are few interrelated, complex tasks. Most can master these to one degree or another. There is, therefore, little dependence on others for carrying out one’s own duty. In such circumstances, ideas of morality and justice are shared as the functions of each within the group are common and undifferentiated. When a society differentiates and individuals take on specific tasks, individuals become more dependent on each other. Consider, for example, the movement from the pen as the instrument for writing toward computer software. In the university of old, if students broke or lost their pens, they could simply pick up another and continue writing.Today, if one’s software program became infected with a virus or suffered some other mysterious injury, the writer would likely have to depend on a university computer technician to repair or replace the software. In this environment, the writer must become adept at communicating with the technician. It is unlikely that the writer will share with the technician many ideas of the primacy of technology in the writing process. However, because of the writer’s dependence upon this person, she will no doubt come to understand and accept many ideas about the importance of backing up data, updating virus protection software, and other computer-related tasks that serve the interests of both the writer and the technical person.These computer protection ideas are clearly part of the collective conscience of technology-based workers. Whether this acceptance of the protection of software is a moral stance is an interesting idea to consider given Durkheim’s (1984) writings on morality: “We may say that what is moral is everything that is a source of solidarity, everything that forces man to account of other people, to regulate his actions by something other than the promptings of his own egoism, and the more numerous and strong these ties are, the more solid is the morality” (331). One could argue then that the acceptance of the need to protect one’s computer software in the service of the greater good of the university (to protect the systems of others, reduce the demand on technical staff, etc.) is a moral choice. This choice is made when the consciousness of the writer has shifted to include the ideas of the technical staff.This is a form of organic solidarity, as it is not necessary in the mechanical sense. The writer could give up software and go back to the pen, thereby eliminating the concerns of the technical staff. This would not only reduce the productive capacity of the writer, but would also remove her from organic solidarity with others in the university. The move from less to more division of labor is an artifact of social development requiring the specialization of labor.This development is not an individual or a moral choice; it is a social force to which we adapt for the purpose of continued social progress. This shift develops in response to the adaptive needs of individuals and groups within a given society. Moving from one form

Distributive Justice

31

of solidarity to another requires a shift in consciousness from local common concerns to one that includes the concerns of other workers within a structure. This shift in consciousness occurs in response to the new social realities that require more varied interaction and is not necessarily an individual choice, though Durkheim would argue that it is moral if it serves social cohesion. Along with these developments in social structure there emerged certain conceptions of justice, law, and notions of contract. Repressive law was characterized by some loss inflicted on the offender, some pain and suffering. This included loss to life, liberty, fortune, property, and honor. It is akin to present-day criminal law. Repressive law was most often found in societies with less division of labor. Restitutive laws, on the other hand, focused on “the re-establishment of troubled relations to their normal state” (Durkheim 1964b, 69). These are more in the form of civil, constitutional, administrative, and commercial laws. Their emphasis has a nonpunitive focus. These laws became more abundant with the greater division of labor in society. If we consider the complexities inherent in the ever-increasing specialization of labor and the expansion of our collective conscience to include new ideas, it follows that more complex notions of justice must also develop. For Durkheim, it was the contract that was “par excellence, the juridical expression of co-operation . . . the contract is the symbol of exchange” (1964b, 123, 125). And, hence, justice was to be understood in the context of the type of contract in existence, which in turn was based on the form of society, reflecting the general degree of the division of labor in a society. In the less developed form it was the blood covenant that assured justice. Each exchanger would duplicate the blood ties of family by exchanging drops of blood, for example. One could also share common food or drink.The real contract was where each exchanger simply exchanged without ceremony.The solemn contract included a declaration in words and an oath summoning up some divine being for enforcement (e.g.,“So help me God”).The consensual contract, or contract by mutual consent, was a more recent invention and separated the invocation of the divine from verbalized promises. It came about due to the new pace of the developing commercial order and invoked will. Each exchanger was assumed to be free to make an exchange. But, for this contract, Durkheim recognized that even though two people might freely enter an exchange relation, one may have greater abilities to impose his will on the exchange than the other. For example, common workers had little to say about the terms of the work contract they enter.“Take it or leave it” was the employer’s stipulation. This led to Durkheim’s ideal contract, the contract of equity, or the just contract. Justice, for Durkheim, should not revolve around consent. Instead, it should be connected with social value. According to Durkheim, social value has three components:“[1] the sum of efforts necessary to produce the object; [2] the intensity of the needs which it satisfies; and [3] the extent of the

32

Social Justice

satisfaction it brings.” Thus justice exists where “the services exchanged have an equivalent social value” (1964b, 382, 383). Just exchange is only where inherent inequalities (i.e., differences in muscular dexterity, temperament, etc.) are reflected in the exchange. Even though justice might seem to flow from the consensual contract, for Durkheim it is only where equivalent exchange of social value exists that a genuine, just contract is exercised. In his words, “If one class of society is obliged, in order to live, to take any price for its services, while another can abstain from such action thanks to resources at its disposal which, however, are not necessarily due to any social superiority, the second has an unjust advantage over the first in law” (1964b, 384). He went on to say that it was with the “abnormal forms” of the division of labor where the greatest disparity in justice exists, even though, ironically, consensual contracts might be the most respected in law. Abnormal forms are occasions where external conditions (i.e., advantage of inheritance) offset the natural accommodative relations developing to the ever-growing division of labor. One form, anomic, is where a great incongruence exists between these adjustments. Here there are too few norms that are adequately assuring equilibrium in a society. A second form is where the rules and laws themselves constrain workers into roles that are not fitting to them. Here too many rules abound that constrain individual development. A third form is where workers are deprived of fulfilling activity. In the abnormal forms, there may indeed be justice based on mutual consent; however, the just contract, the contract of equity, will be subordinate to it. Under anomic conditions, labor is divided to such an extent that little solidarity remains between and among workers. Durkheim (1984, 291–308) explains that this results in both the reduced power of workers to revolt for better wages and a reduction in the ability of producers to gauge the need for goods on the market. Forced divisions of labor also undermine solidarity.This occurs when social forces, such as unequal distribution of access, prevent workers from choosing labor and instead force them into work for which they are not fit. Labor is not divided by natural aptitude but by predetermined statuses such as inherited wealth.This weakens the collective conscience and produces “subversive tendencies” (315). Similarly, the deprivation of fulfilling work through overspecialization weakens solidarity and the moral order. One can easily recognize these abnormal forms in our current social structure.Take a moment to consider these three abnormal forms and identify them within your own life or community.We will revisit these forms and their impact on justice in later chapters. Max Weber (1864–1921) With little dispute, the writings of Max Weber have been among the greatest influences on a large variety of topics in the social sciences. In Economy

Distributive Justice

33

and Society, a two-volume work published after his death,Weber’s key thoughts on law were developed as they related to contractual justice. It was here that he developed his notion of the forms of law and legal thought and sense of justice that inhere within each. Weber was concerned with the various institutions that developed with the rise of capitalism. He dismissed uni-causal explanations, particularly exclusively economic explanations; rather, he always advocated a multi-causal approach.The central force for capitalist development was rationalization. He used this term in different ways. At times he saw rationalization to mean the systematic codification of laws. At other times he saw it to mean increasing differentiation and coordination toward greater efficiency or productivity.This development was due to a coincidence of historical forces: “two forces operating side by side . . . on the one hand, capitalism interested in strictly formal law and legal procedure . . . on the other hand, the rationalism of officialdom in absolutist states led to the interest in codified systems and in homogeneous law” (Hunt 1978, 109). Market forces have an interest in formulating law in a formal manner because these formalities assure predictability, accountability, and manageability. Consider the legal specialties that have developed around these formalities; the variety of financial regulations alone abound.The state, on the other hand, has interest not only in market forces but also in broader social forces and must attempt to balance those with rationality and consistency.The state can claim equality before the law only if laws are consistent and based on rational reasoning. The common interests of the market and the state produce formal rational legal systems. Alongside this development was a historical transformation in the forms of contract. In earlier times, in societies organized on the basis of clans, kinships, and household communities, the fraternal contract was premium. Any exchange with another meant a dramatic change in relations.The other would now become “somebody’s child, father, wife, brother, master, slave, kin, comradein-arms, protector, client, follower, vassal, subject, friend, or, quite generally, comrade” (Weber 1978, 672). Here, too, there existed collective responsibility; individual liability was not the dominant outlook. Kin were responsible for contracts made by family members, and the community assured the fulfillment of contracts. In latter societies, especially those marked by the capitalist mode of production, the notion of collective responsibility dissipated and notions of individual liability became dominant.This was markedly so with the emergence of the market economy, commerce, and the competitive marketplace.Weber (1958) expertly describes the impact of Puritanism on individualism. His text draws out the relationship between religion and economic development and documents the importance of both on social life and social understandings. The

34

Social Justice

religious traditions that privileged the individual and individual responsibility were especially important to the development of capitalism, which also privileges individual responsibility and action over the collective. It seems consistent that if one is to stand alone before God for judgment in the afterlife that one should be held accountable individually for judgment before the court or in contractual relations. The capitalist economy demanded a plethora of momentary exchanges, and the purposive contract was discovered for specific transactions. So too was the juridic subject in law, the assumed rational, logical, and self-directing subject, which is recognized in the notion of the reasonable man in law. A juridic subject was an abstract bearer of rights. Now a new notion of the subject and new notions of responsibility connected with the forces of rationalization, the rise of capitalism, central states and their need for coordinating administration, as well as the demands of the competitive marketplace. Individual responsibility was elevated to a central place in law and in principles of contractual justice. Weber, however, was skeptical about genuine justice in the forms of contractual justice that may exist.“The result of contractual freedom, then, is in the first place the opening of the opportunity to use, by the clever utilization of property ownership in the market, these resources without legal restraints as a means for the achievement of power over others.The parties interested in the power in the market thus are also interested in such a legal order” (Weber 1978, 73).Thus, the increase of contractual justice does not necessarily bring greater freedom or fairness. Contracts clearly formalize and articulate expectations within the agreement. However, this does not guarantee that the expectations or the agreement are just. Neither do contracts guarantee that the conditions under which the agreement was made are just. Formal qualities of law are not the basis of understanding justice unless one accepts legal formalism as the determining model for rendering justice. After all is said and done, it is the given property distribution in a society that will determine overall freedom, level of coercion, and justice. It is the supporting role of ideology in the form of legitimizing principles by which subjects are pacified into accepting the form of contract in existence. According to Weber, “every highly privileged group develops the myth of its natural . . . superiority” (953). Most of the time, the negatively privileged group accepts the given order because of the existence of legitimation principles abound in societal-wide ideology. Contractual justice, then, is reflected in the type of legal order and form of legal thought that is dominant.“Formal rationality,” or the formal legal system most prevalent in capitalist forms of society, privileges the juridic subject and forms of legal thought identified as syllogistic reasoning and deductive logic. Given core axioms, such as constitutional rights, then, decisions and justice can be arrived at by a mechanical, linear, and logical analysis to a conclusion in law. Said in another way, we start with a major premise, apply it to the

Distributive Justice

35

minor premise or facts of a case, and deductively, in a step-by-step fashion, arrive at a conclusion in law. In other words, the right to equal access to education, for example, is protected through a linear legal process that considers whether equal access is being denied, concludes that it is being denied, and finds that this denial is unjust. Formal rationality is focused more on a form of freedom that works within the specific constraints posed by law; it looks at equality of opportunity, formal equality; it does not entertain equality of outcome nor how people are distributed in a political economy. Other forms of justice may compete. In substantive rationality, outside principles, criteria, ethics, and notions are employed— “outside” meaning outside the formally recognized principles in law.Thus affirmative action is based on substantive rationality. So to is comparable worth, which concerns challenging work practices whereby the only distinguishing factor is the position title, where the actual functioning is the same. Doing justice entails drawing from principles that are not necessarily recognized in the official body of laws. Substantive rationality may disallow for the equal access of some groups to educational facilities if it is found that principles or ethics outside of the law are being violated. For example, the Reserve Officers’ Training Corps (ROTC) was banned from several college campuses during the Vietnam war era when students protested that the exclusion of homosexuals from the military violated their stated campus principles of inclusion. This reliance on principles of inclusion as outlined in the campuses’ equity statements was used to exclude the ROTC based on the military’s exclusionary practices. The campus equity statements were outside the formal law yet were utilized as a basis to invoke justice. Another form of law and justice is substantive irrationality. Here some outside principle is invoked, and little in the form of long-term rationalization is sought in law. Irrationality is used here not as a judgment of appropriateness, but as a descriptor to distinguish this form of law and justice from that which requires rationalization. A jury decision-making process is a case in point. At the end of the trial phase the jurors are instructed by the judge what charge and criteria to employ in determining guilt or innocence.This is formal rationality. However, once the jurors return to the jury room for deliberation it is more often a mixture of formal rationality and substantive irrationality, with the latter playing a more dominant role. In other words, it is the unique worldviews and assumptions of various people and ethnic and cultural groups that may play a greater role in the determination as to what is just. This notion exists in many societies that use khadi justice, where some religious figure is the sole determiner of each infraction and its resolution.Therefore, no rationalization or formal code is available. An outsider knows neither the principle being invoked nor its particular application in a concrete situation. A benevolent dictator, for example, would claim a nuanced understanding of his subject’s desires and would distribute resources accordingly.

36

Social Justice

The fourth form of justice according to Weber is formal irrationality. Here some formal principles of justice might be invoked, but only the authority knows how to interpret these principles. This appears in decision making that relies on an oracle, magic, or revelation. Justice is concretely determined by the decision-making authority but is applied differently to individuals. Contractual justice entails the interplay of principles of rationalization and principles of formality. Rationalization means applying some criterion to all like cases; formality means making use of criteria that are internal to the legal system (making use of external criteria would make it low in formality or substantive).A decision is seen as fair where societal members generally accept the form of law, legal thought, and the sense of justice imbedded within it. They see it as legitimate, as an order worthy of their orientation and behavior. Nevertheless, for Weber justice is ultimately an issue to be determined by the unequal distribution of property in a society. Karl Marx (1818–1883) Along with Durkheim and Weber, Marx stands out as one of the most influential thinkers in the social sciences. He was not interested, directly, in the form of law. But issues of justice were central to his writings. All phenomena, including law, ideology, and conceptions of justice were ultimately connected with a particular mode of production in existence. For example, he writes that a contract “is just whenever it corresponds, is appropriate, to the mode of production. It is unjust whenever it contradicts that mode. Slavery on the basis of capitalist production is unjust; likewise fraud in the quality of commodities” (Cain and Hunt 1979, 138). Marx’s guiding principle in historical and political economic investigations was his focus on the mode of production. In the social production of their existence, people inevitably enter into definite relations, which are independent of their will, namely relations of production appropriate to a given stage in the development of their material forces of production.The totality of these relations of production constitutes the economic structure of society, the real foundations, on which arises a legal and political superstructure and to which correspond definite forms of social consciousness. The mode of production of material life conditions the general process of social, political and intellectual life. It is not the consciousness of people that determines their existence, but their social existence that determines their consciousness. (Marx 1967, 20–21) In this view, the base is the economic system, the superstructure is the totality of belief, consciousness, law, ideology, ethic, principles of justice, etc. The base is said to determine the superstructure. The four pure forms of the modes of production described by Marx were slavery, feudalism, capitalism,

Distributive Justice

37

and communism. Socialism was a category between capitalism and communism. Within the base, two elements existed: (1) the forces of production, or means of production, which include technology, natural resources, and skills and knowledge, and (2) relations of production, or socioeconomic relations, which involve how people actually interact in a patterned way. It is said that the forces of production shape the relations of production. Given an assembly line, for example, specific relations develop. Given the internal combustion engine, particular relations of production develop. When forces and relations of production are in relative accord, there is equilibrium, or stasis.When forces of production change too rapidly, there is a gap, a contradiction between these and the relations of production, called an antithesis. Within this contradiction change will emerge, either peacefully or, where the contradictions are the most extreme, by outright revolution. This is the notion of the dialectical materialism: thesis—antithesis—thesis—antithesis. It is the motor of historical change. Marx also says that when these contradictions are extreme, the mode of production itself changes into new forms.These are objective conditions.These contradictions in the mode of production, such as overproduction and/or economic crises, are the concrete conditions for revolution. However, Marx was also adamant regarding the subjective conditions for revolution. These conditions are related to class consciousness, or the knowledge held by the revolutionary class (or the working class under capitalism) that something can be done to change the social conditions and that they/we are the class to produce that change. In other words, it is necessary to recognize not only a “class in itself ” but also a “class for itself.” Hallas (2003) recounts Trotsky’s description of the development of a revolutionary consciousness within the working class.This consciousness requires experience in class struggle. Lenin (1989) suggested that work within labor unions and general political work with and for the interests of the working class are ways to experience that struggle. Marx informed our understanding of the objective and subjective conditions for revolutionary change. Notions of justice must be seen in terms of the mode of production in existence. What is seen as fair is specific to a particular mode of production. People are offered definite relations that are independent of their wills. Consciousness, then, follows one’s existence. In feudalism, for example, the serf or peasant in a hierarchical form of society is subordinate to the lord. One’s rights, privileges, and notions of justness follows one’s position in the hierarchy and does not necessarily follow as one moves to another village or town. The issue of what constitutes justice can be interpreted in at least four ways in Marxist analysis: instrumental Marxist, structural Marxist, structural interpellationist, and constitutive Marxist. Instrumental Marxist analysis argues that those with economic power also have political power. In fact, in the more rigid form of instrumental Marxist analysis this group is a capitalist ruling class

38

Social Justice

that is homogeneous in its interests to maximize profit and is conspiratorial in its functioning to do so (see Quinney 1974). The state, law, criminal justice system, and notions of justice are then organized to promote the interest of the ruling class by way of ideological state apparatuses (i.e., school, family, media). Justice, in short, is what the ruling class defines from its self-interested position to maximize profit (surplus value). In times of increasing contradiction or social crises, this maximization of profit can also be interpreted as maximization of exploitation (declining wages/increasing work hours). Depending on the level of class-consciousness, this may be interpreted as unjust and be followed by social change. However, under stable conditions the maximization of profit will be seen as just within a capitalist structure. Structural Marxists see things differently. Notions of law and justice emerge from commodity exchange (Pashukanis 1980). Marx, in the first 100 pages of Capital, explains the notion of commodity fetishism where the concreteness of things exchanged, their use-values, are transformed behind people’s backs into abstractions, exchange values. Pashukanis, who appeared after the 1917 Russian Revolution, rose to preeminence in the new dictatorship of the proletariat directing the socialist state. He developed, from Marx’s commodity exchange logic, the notion of legal fetishism. To develop the commodity exchange perspective, we start with two commodity owners entering a competitive marketplace.Through the constant exchange of their commodities something mysterious happens, with profound effects. Initially, a commodity has use value—it corresponds to two differences that inhere within it: differences in the amount of labor needed in its production; differences in the concrete needs to which it corresponds. However, with the constant exchange of commodities, new appearances (phenomenal forms) emerge. That is, the two commodities are brought within an equation of equivalence: two pounds of butter equals four gallons of milk; two of this equals four of that.This is a mathematical ratio. It is money that becomes the universal equivalent for value. Henceforth, the use value recedes from consciousness, replaced with its ratio of exchange.We now have exchange value. The concreteness of things, the uniqueness of things, is now transformed into a quantitative relation. Differences disappear. So, too, Pashukanis tells us, does the unique, concrete person in capitalism. With the constant exchange of commodities, certain appearances take form to which lawyers give idealized expression (e.g., verbal form): first, the appearance of free will as each exchanger assumes it of the other; second, the appearance of equality as each at the instant of transfer assumes it of the other; and third, proprietorship interests, as each assumes the other is the owner of the commodity being exchanged.Thus the formal notions of freedom, equality, and proprietorship interests emerge in this instance. The subject is now transformed, much like the commodity into an exchange value, the juridic

Distributive Justice

39

subject, a legal subject in law with formal rights. This is the notion of legal fetishism, which is seen as homologous to commodity fetishism. In both cases, differences and concrete existence (qualitative differences) is replaced by abstract quantitative terms. Thereafter, justice is measured in terms of applying an equal measure (criteria) to unique persons. In other words, an equal measure is applied to differences. For Marxists, an equal standard applied to differences is inherently unequal (unjust). In the structural version of Marxism, then, notions of justice emerge from these commodification processes. Fairness in contract dealings is only an outcome where reasonable men and women prevail as juridic subjects in law.This is in line with Max Weber’s model of formal rationality and in line with Durkheim’s consensual contract.The person becomes an abstraction that can be simply plugged into various principles of law to see to what degree he or she is in conformity with the reasonable man or woman in law. A person becomes a mathematical average. The third Marxist model could be referred to as the structural interpellationist perspective. In late capitalism—that is, in the advanced monopoly capitalism that is said to have emerged in the early to mid-1900s—the state had to become more actively involved in overcoming the internal contradictions that threatened it. It also had to deliberately develop legitimation principles that supported decision making.Thus, in law the principle of interest-balancing now prevails. The court justices weigh the government’s interests against a particular person’s or group’s interests and determine the appropriate balance. The notion of the formal, abstract subject is now being replaced with the notion of interpellated rights: various groups in society are now relegated to positions (i.e., status) with particular rights respected in law. Consider how the notion of “persons” found in the due process clause of the Fourteenth Amendment is continuously redefined by the higher courts. Status now determines rights respected in law. Justice in this model becomes much more contentious. It is mobilization of interests and struggle that accounts for particular rights and stabilized expectations of justice. In a Marxist analysis, this mobilization of interests is based on class interests and may be an expression of capitalist interests or working-class interests. When corporations seek protection from one set of laws as individuals and exceptions from other laws as corporations, they are seeking a particular status in keeping with their interests. This is an example of a mobilization by the capitalist class in its own interest. When a labor union seeks recognition in a workplace, it is seeking a particular status in its interest. If the union is democratic and representative of its members, it would be an example of a mobilization in the interest of the working class. A fourth and more recent Marxist-inspired model is the constitutive model. In this view, base affects superstructure, but superstructure affects base. Each is

40

Social Justice

constitutive of the other, and the two elements of the mode of production can no longer be easily separated, each inheres in the other. Legal consciousness and what constitutes “justness” is an ongoing process. In Ewich and Silbey’s study of struggles within legal structure, they argue that “as individuals express . . . their consciousness, they draw from and contribute to legality . . . [P]eople relied on culturally available narratives of law to interpret their lives and relationships” (Ewich and Silbey 1998, 247).Thus in this perspective, justice undergoes an active and ongoing constitutive construction in everyday storytelling.When faced with conflict, subjects resort to cultural recipes in combination with what is understood as law.There is, in short, coproduction of the meaning of justice. The incorporation of the idea of conflict into a Marxist analysis is important given Marx’s writings concerning the centrality of conflict in social arrangements and the necessity of struggle for social change. Marx’s understanding of justice as based on the mode of production was also informed by the class structure.As he and Engels wrote in the Manifesto of the Communist Party,“The history of all hitherto existing society is the history of class struggles” (Marx and Engels 1973, 108). It is through this struggle that Marx places the impetus for revolution in the mode of production and the evolution of human consciousness. Marx was clearly aware of the interplay between struggle, change, and consciousness. As Marx saw it, class struggle develops the consciousness of those involved in struggle, therefore leading to increased possibilities for social change through revolutionary processes (Hallas 2003). These processes further develop the consciousness of those involved. These ideas clearly inform Ewich and Silbey’s (1998) conception of justice as a co-production. However, because consciousness reflects social conditions, collective understandings of justice will be rooted in the social conditions of the time. Marx has also postulated an understanding of history based on the mode of production which informed his understanding of the emergence of justice principles.“Right can never be higher than the economic structure of society and its cultural development conditioned thereby” (Marx and Engels 1973, 19). He had predicted that with the increasing contradictions in advanced capitalist modes of production there would be (given necessary subjective conditions) a transformation to socialism, which in turn, with its own contradictions, would transform into communism. In capitalism, principles of justice would center on notions of formal equality. In other words, an equal measure (formal equality) would be applied to unique (different) people. (Note how the uniqueness of people is subordinated under a common measure.) In socialism, “the narrow horizons of bourgeois thought” would still prevail, but the principles of justice would be more genuinely applied, with two qualifications: “he who does not work, neither shall he eat” and “an equal amount of products for an equal amount of labour” (Lenin 1949, 150). Here the residues

Distributive Justice

41

of the equality principle would still exist. In the higher forms, the communist mode of production, principles of justice would revolve around “from each according to his abilities, to each according to his needs” (Lenin 1949, 152–163; Pashukanis 1980, 324).Thus justice principles would revolve around acknowledging differences: differences in abilities, differences in needs.1 Toward a Social Justice Mode l According to David Miller, to develop a social justice understanding “is to discover the underlying principles that people use when they judge some aspect of their society to be just or unjust” (1999, ix). In his three ideal types of modes of human relationships—solidaristic community, instrumental association, and citizenship—particular forms of justice are connected, respectively, to need, desert, and equality.These are abstractions, developed more for illumination than for literally explicating specific moments. However, by looking at a particular mode of human relationship we can then see what demands of justice people make on one another. For Durkheim, the development from less division of labor to more entailed a change from mechanical to organic bonds of solidarity; collective to individual liability; and from the blood covenant to the consensual contract. For Weber, the development from precapitalist to capitalist society entailed a change from collective to individual responsibility and a change from status to contract (e.g., the abstract bearer of rights, the juridic subject). For Marx, people enter definite relations in a particular mode of production that are independent of their will. For Pashukanis, the emergence of the abstract bearer of rights follows developments in commodity exchange in a competitive marketplace. In late twentieth-century capitalism, however, there was a full-circle return to status. One’s location in a particular recognized group in law determined one’s rights, obligations, and notions of justice. Miller, on the other hand, wants to orient us to more general, abstract principles of social justice, along with the problematic nature of modes of human relationships that are their supports. He also wants to indicate how tensions and conflicts exist when people find themselves in more than one mode of human relationship. He does not dispute the three previous classic theorists; in fact, one can see that he derives a considerable amount of substance from them. His first mode is solidaristic community, in which there is a sharing of a common ethos and identity in a relatively stable group. It entails much direct interaction with the other, with the consequent generation of mutual understanding and trust.Thus people find themselves in solidarity due to a shared culture, kinship, or acquaintanceship. In premodern society solidaristic community was found in the village community. In modern society it is more prevalently found in the family. This form of solidarity is found less in other forms of association—for example, work organizations. Within

42

Social Justice

solidaristic communities, justice is defined in terms of need.“Each member is expected to contribute to relieving the needs of others in proportion to ability, the extent of liability depending upon how close the ties of community are in each case” (Miller 1999, 27).2 This understanding is reminiscent of Marx’s expectations for justice within a communistic society (from each according to his ability, to each according to his need). The second mode of relationship is instrumental association. Central here is utilitarianism: people relate to each other in terms of various goals, aims, and purposes that can be ideally realized working with others (27).The principle of justice that emerges is that of desert.“Each person comes to the association as a free agent with a set of skills and talents that he deploys to advance its goals. Justice is done when he receives back by way of reward an equivalent to the contribution he makes” (28).A person’s desert is related to the goals of the particular association. The criterion of desert, then, can be operationalized as how much one contributes to the goals and how much one is rewarded. Implicit is the notion of proportionality: greater contributions should receive greater rewards. This mode is consistent with Weber’s formal rationality, outlined earlier in this section. The third mode of human relationships is citizenship. Human beings relate with others not only in terms of solidarity and/or instrumental activity but also as bearers of abstract rights (e.g., expectations and obligations defined in law) that identify their status as citizens (30). Here the principle of justice would be formal equality.“Each person enjoys the same set of liberties and rights, rights to personal protection, political participation, and the various services that the political community provides for its members” (30).Thus citizenship is a status. It encompasses, for example, the notion of the reasonable man in law. Each of the three ideal types often overlap as people find themselves in more than one form of association within particular relationships.These overlapping relations produce tensions and cries of “unjust” as an unexpected standard of justice is assumed and practiced. In other words, given the more fluid nature of associations—solidaristic, instrumental, and equality—a given situation may suggest one principle of justice being more operative than another. Consider the solidaristic form of justice experienced within families. Members rely upon each other and support each other because of their kinship bond reflecting Miller’s first mode. However, the genesis of a family in modern Western society is typically a marital contract that formalizes relational expectations.This contract is entered into by two free agents with the common goal of mutual benefit. The contract reflects Miller’s second mode of human relationships. One can see the overlap with the third mode in the rights and benefits provided by the community for married couples because of their status (in the United States, this is reflected in access to healthcare and retirement benefits, among other things).

Distributive Justice

43

Herein lies the dilemma: with two people in conflict drawing from different modes of relations, which criterion is relevant and operative? Miller suggests we develop a “pluralistic theory of justice” that would be contextually sensitive, where the three criteria would be “held in consistent balance with one another” (41). This is increasingly apparent with issues of globalism and multiculturalism, where a particular criterion might clash with another (246).3 Recognition or Re distribution? In Redistribution or Recognition? Nancy Fraser and Alex Honneth (2003) debate the appropriate relation of recognition to redistribution in developing a distributive justice framework. Honneth advocates a recognition approach rooted in Hegelian philosophy (the struggle for recognition), where distribution is seen as being derived from recognition. Fraser, on the other hand, sees the two as co-fundamental and mutually irreducible dimensions of justice. In other words, neither category is privileged, but work together. Honneth argues that identity politics—the struggle across the globe for recognition of unique ways of being and of unique cultures—provides a suitable starting point in understanding a bona fide conceptualization of justice. In short, some conception of the good life must be incorporated in principles of distributive justice prior to understanding adequate notion of distribution or redistribution of resources. His critique of Fraser is that her American bias concerning the politics of identity based on race, ethnicity, and sexual difference cannot be a model for the experience of Europeans, especially those from France, Great Britain, and Germany, where identity politics do not play the same dominant role as in the United States. For Honneth, a recognitionbased justice must incorporate some founding principles. He identifies three elements of recognition: love, law, and achievement. Care and love, if not provided early in a child’s upbringing, will produce dysfunctional forms of recognition of the other. Recognition and respect for the autonomy of the other in the form of the equality principle must be assured in law in terms of specific rights. And persons must be able to attain social esteem by their individual achievement. He also entertains the possibility of a fourth founding principle that recognizes individuals as members of cultural communities, but after some analysis he restates his position that love, legal equality, and merit/ achievement should be the elements of justice based on recognition. These would ultimately contribute to individualization and to social inclusion. People would not only undergo continuous self-actualization/realization, but would also be respected in a society with their unique differences. In short, one recognizes the other while also being recognized by the other. It is only when each of us recognizes the other that self-realization may be enhanced. Nancy Fraser sees things differently. She wants to focus on the distribution of resources as well as claims to recognition, especially those oriented around

44

Social Justice

race, sex, ethnicity, and gender differences. She states from the outset that recognition does not need to go into specifying the constitutive elements, but rather must be seen as a matter of justice in itself.Thus if a person is denied status as an equal in society because of institutionalized forms of denial, then that is unjust in itself.There must be parity of participation, she tells us, and institutional changes that foster it. In short, on the recognition element of justice, it is not, Fraser tells us, based on self-realization but on justice itself.This, however, is only one element of justice.The other deals with redistribution of resources. According to Fraser,“a theory of justice must reach beyond cultural value patterns to examine the structure of capitalism. It must ask whether economic mechanisms that are relatively decoupled from structures of prestige and that operate in a relatively autonomous way impede parity of participation in social life” (35).The two principles, one based on recognition, the other based on distribution, are connected. She traces these principles as already implicit in “folk paradigms of justice,” or our everyday intuitive understandings. She tells us her project is rooted in pragmatism and discourse ethics— pragmatics because she privileges contexts; discourse ethics because she does not found her principles on foundational principles (a form of essentialism). By providing parity in participation, justice emerges out of the process and each recognizes in ongoing discourse the other as equal.This has some affinities with Habermas’s call for an ideal speech situation and the potential to establish consensus. In other words, specific components of justice would emerge out of this state of affairs, and one does not in advance have to describe what they in fact are, as in Honneth’s essential notions of care/love, legal equality, and merit/ achievement. Fraser also tells us that globalism has intensified differences and inequalities, and hence the salience of a two-dimensional notion of justice is necessary. Her approach does not need an ethical dimension of justice, the good life that Honneth sees as an essential component; rather, participants in parity will decide what the good life is in pragmatic encounters, in discourse in social institutions respecting parity of participation. Honneth’s response would be that, yes, Habermas’s initiative toward linguistically mediated interaction (discourse ethics) is important, but it is unclear from where the eventual insights will come, whether from discourse itself or from language’s formal properties as a language (247). He further argues that not all is linguistic, not all gets directly communicated in formal language; some forms of recognition simply exist in physical gestures. In his view, any participatory parity includes implicit ethical principles of the good. Parity does not exist in a vacuum. Fraser argues that we need not state at the outset foundational elements of justice. Instead, we should let them emerge in context, pragmatically, in discourse where each person in the encounter has institutional assurances of parity.

Chapte r 4

Retributive Justice Distributive justice has to do with how resources in a society are distributed fairly. The study of retributive justice, however, starts with a fraction committed and then attempts to devise the just response to it. Retributive justice can be used in two senses: it can refer to an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth type of punishment or to a response to harm that includes retribution. Our general heading stands for the second sense. De finition of Crime The definition of crime that is most often assumed in the discussions of retributive justice is the legalistic definition (see Tappan 2001, 31). This is the dominant conceptualization employed by the U.S. criminal justice system. It reads: “Crime is an intentional act in violation of the criminal law (statutory and case law), committed without defense or excuse, and penalized by the state as a felony or misdemeanor.” For a crime to be so legally, one must show that both mens rea (state of mind; criminal intent) and actus reas (the act) existed, that a particular law was violated, that there was no defense or excuse (duress, insanity, necessity), and that there is a formal penalty attached (a misdemeanor is anything punishable up to a year and the time spent is in jail; a felony is punishable by more than a year and time spent is in prison). Several alternative definitions have recently emerged due to the perceived narrowness of the legalistic definition (see Henry and Lanier 2001a). Schwendinger and Schwendinger (2001) have provided the following: “any person, social system, or social relationship that denied or abrogated basic rights to anyone are criminal.” Thus persons, social systems, or social relationships that deny in some way these basic rights to others are criminal. Another more recent approach is the crime prism (Henry and Lanier 2001b), which indicates how crime is commonly perceived and the conventionally understood acceptable responses. It indicates the differential response to and understanding of crimes of the powerful as opposed to crimes of the powerless. The constitutive definition defines crime as “the expression of some agency’s energy to make a difference to others and it is the exclusion of those others who in the instant are rendered powerless to maintain or express their 45

46

Social Justice

humanity” (Milovanovic and Henry 2001, 86). By “agency” is meant “those who invest energy [excessive investors] in denying others through harms of reduction or repression” (86). Agents might include human beings, social systems, groups, agents of social control (i.e., police), the state, etc.Two forms of crime are specified: crimes of reduction (reducing a person from a status he or she once had) and crimes of repression (denying the person the ability to selfactualize).The issue here concerns the justness, the fairness of a response to a human being’s actions. To answer this appeal, some justification for punishment or particular intervention must be provided. The definition of punishment itself is vague and illusive. Antony Flew (1979) has provided a useful beginning in specifying five elements. First, “it must be an evil, an unpleasantness, to the victim” (32).The victim referenced here is the victim of the punishment and supposed perpetrator of the crime. Second, it must be defined as an offense in the sense that the punishment would be offensive to the recipient.Third, it must be directed to an offender. Fourth, it focuses on human agency in inflicting penalties. Many penalties (negative consequences) for conduct exist, but it is only where a state or some institutional body inflicts the pain and suffering that there is punishment. In other words, in everyday activity individuals can blame circumstances, accidents, and God for their misfortunes, but it is only where human agency (i.e., the will of a state through its representatives) inflicts pain and suffering that there is punishment. And, fifth, some designated authority, some legitimately conceived body and its constituted laws are necessary for its infliction. Traditional Philo sophie s of Punishme nt In arguing for a justification for punishment, one is providing a reason for a particular form of intervention (Flew 1979, 35). The reason offered is connected with the definition of crime employed and supporting assumptions of what is defined to be just. Deterrence This philosophy of punishment assumes individual free will, responsibility for actions, hedonism, and utilitarianism. Individuals have choices available and rationally decide to act one way as opposed to another. Many of these assumptions were developed and stabilized during the Enlightenment period. Cesare Beccaria best expressed many of these voices in his book On Crimes and Punishment (1764).The so-called classic school of criminology, which was derived from it, embraced many of these core assumptions (circa 1700s to early 1800s). In this model individuals are constantly engaging in rational calculations to maximize benefits. Accordingly, deterrence theory assumes if this is so, then all the sovereign needs to do is to make it clear that for certain contemplated activities certain negative consequences will be forthcoming. Since

Retributive Justice

47

humans weigh benefits versus pain, they will move toward pleasure maximization. In this model, people punish to threaten. It is thus future oriented. Punishing someone (an acknowledgment, of sorts, of the failure of this logic) is a means to deter others (e.g., general deterrence) and to deter that person from committing future crimes (e.g., individual deterrence). In this model justice is captured by the notion “let the punishment fit the crime.” For deterrence theorists, punishment is not a good in and of itself; it is an evil. But it is good to the extent that it deters future harms and it is a “moral educator” (Hawkins 1979, 120). Retribution In this view, society punishes people because they have broken the law and are culpable and deserving of punishment. It is backward-looking to the extent that the lawbreaker’s degree of culpability is examined. It is not forwardlooking in terms of primarily justifying punishment in terms of the future good. This justification assumes individual responsibility, free will, hedonism, and a rational calculator (utilitarianism).As was the case with deterrence theory, many of the core assumptions of human nature were developed and stabilized during the Enlightenment period. In this justification a lawbreaker deserves punishment in proportion to the crime inflicted. It, too, calls for “let the punishment fit the crime.” Justice demands equal suffering. In this model the language is one that includes culpability, deserts, blameworthiness, atonement, and expiation. From Webster’s Dictionary,“expiation” is the “act of making satisfaction or atonement for a crime or fault; the extinguishment of guilt by suffering or penalty.” “Atonement” means “the state of, or act of bringing into concord, restoration of friendly relations.” In its most raw statement, retribution is lex talionis, an eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth.The question is always, given the person’s degree of culpability in committing a crime, what is the appropriate desert? Rehabilitation This justification assumes that a person is determined by forces beyond his or her control. These forces can be internal (biological), external (environmental factors), or both. One is seen as a product of one’s environment. Free will does not exist.1 Hence, mens rea should wither away; it does not make sense in this model, since all human beings are determined. If they are determined by forces beyond their control, the natural consequence should not be punishment but rehabilitation, since they did not will their crime.This approach is forward-looking in so much as the concern is to reform the person for the future good. In this model the call is “let the punishment fit the criminal.” This acknowledges individual variation. The so-called positive school in criminology embraced this model during the mid 1800s up to the early 1970s.The development of the sciences and the

48

Social Justice

scientific method in the mid to the latter part of the 1800s led to the belief that for all phenomena, including crime, there must be some antecedent cause(s) in existence. The ideal was to discover the laws that govern human interaction. Crime is a symptom in this model; the assumption is that there is some underlying disease.This is the medical model.Thus, experts (psychiatrists, psychologists, social workers, and others) are more involved in the criminal justice system’s concern with what to do with the offender.There is a wide exercise of excuses, justifications, and defenses such as duress and insanity in this model. The entrapment defense, for example, acknowledges the potential overbearing and determinate nature of particular police-created environments (sting operations).The insanity defense also has a wide appeal in this approach. In this view, varied sentences allow the prison system needed time to work and rehabilitate the offender.The time necessary for rehabilitation would vary depending primarily on the offender and his or her psychological makeup. Hence, indeterminate sentencing (open sentencing) is a derivative of this logic.A person would be sentenced to, say, five to fifteen, two to twelve, or ten to twenty years. The rationale is to give the authorities, now called corrections, time to work with the individual. Decision for release then moves to a parole board.The overall response in this model is ostensibly therapeutic, not punitive. Social Defense (Incapacitation) The final model justifies intervention or response in terms of protecting society.The offender is seen as a danger to the society as a whole.The concern is with the person with dangerous tendencies (e.g., sexual offenders) and/or violent tendencies.Various laws try to focus on sexual psychopaths, defective delinquents, the criminally insane, sexually dangerous persons, and sexually violent persons. Instruments are valued that can predict dangerousness.2 In this model, the response is less concerned with why one has committed a crime and more with how to protect society from similar acts.The language employed by the sovereign, then, is quasi-medical. One asks,What is the appropriate measure, consequence, or provision that is compatible with this offender so that society can be spared being victimized? In Crime, Responsibility, and Prevention, Barbara Wooton argues against looking at the motivation of the offender in the determination of how to respond to the offender.“If the object of the criminal law is to prevent the occurrence of socially damaging actions, it would be absurd to turn a blind eye to those which were due to carelessness, negligence or even accident. The question of motivation is in the first instance irrelevant” (1979, 168). She argues that the person who has been found totally irresponsible or “wholly incapable of controlling his action,” is still a danger to society. It is the future risk that is the concern of society.The verdict of guilty but insane is exemplary.

Retributive Justice

49

Wooton therefore advocates a two-step model. The first trial would concentrate only on the question of whether the suspect did the crime or not. This is a case of strict liability.The second stage would determine the appropriate response or measure. For some, it may be rehabilitation; for others, it might be punishment; yet for others, some combination of measures. In this model, according to Wooton, there would be a blur between prison and hospital. Perhaps the clearest use of social defense in contemporary society is with convicted sexual offenders upon release. Given their high recidivism rates, many states now place their whereabouts, their pictures, and some details on a Web site open to the public.3 A related contemporary practice has to do with indefinite civil commitment proceedings against a convicted sexual offender who is about to be released at the expiration of his criminal sentence (see Kansas v. Hendricks 1997; Kansas v. Crane 2002; and White 2004). In other words, a convicted offender can serve his criminal sentence only to find at the end that the civil commitment proceedings lodged against him will now keep him incarcerated indefinitely as a sexually dangerous person until he has proven he is no longer dangerous (see also People v. McDougle 1999; People v. Burns 2004). Proce dural Justice: The Battle Mode l Criminal justice in practice witnesses competing models in justice rendering. Two models developed in a widely influential book by Packer (1998) described the values supportive of each. The first model, termed the due process model, looks very much like what Weber described as formal rationality.The second, the crime control model, looks very much like substantive rationality or even the substantive irrationality model. Packer argues that these are two extremes along a continuum. Nevertheless, as ideal types they are useful in understanding the dynamics of justice rendering in criminal justice systems. He does caution that various actors in the criminal justice system—police, lawyers, judges, prosecutors, and lawmakers—often in their daily activities do not consciously reflect on and articulate the values intrinsic to each; nor should they be seen as incorporating all values at a particular time. Crime Control Model This model places the highest value in repressing criminal conduct. It is concerned with ferreting out crime as quickly and as trouble free as possible (Packer 1998, 12–16). Not enforcing laws leads to disrespect, promoting plentiful transgressions. In this situation, a person’s overall liberty is in jeopardy. Thus the criminal justice system must valorize efficiency to identify suspects, to screen those who are probably guilty, to procure guilt, and to process the offender as quickly and definitively as possible. In order to be successful, this model must maximize efficiency rates (i.e., clearance rates) in apprehension, convictions, and dispositions. Speed and finality,

50

Social Justice

according to Packer, are what provide high conviction rates. “Speed, in turn, depends on informality and on uniformity; finality depends on minimizing the occasions for challenge.The process must not be cluttered up with ceremonious rituals that do not advance the progress of a case” (13). Informality in police interrogations and in further processing is said to move the assembly line best. And uniformity assures efficiency: “Routine, stereotyped procedures are essential if large numbers are being handled” (13).What best fits this model is an assembly line:“The image that comes to mind is an assembly line conveyor belt down which moves an endless stream of cases, never stopping, carrying the cases to workers who stand at fixed stations and who perform on each case as it comes by the same small but essential operation that brings it one step closer to being a finished product, or, to exchange the metaphor for the reality, a closed file” (13).Thus decision making by the various officials who process the case must operate routinely.The assembly line must not be stopped, nor slowed down, otherwise efficiency will be jeopardized. The working presumption throughout this process is one of guilt, contrary to the value of presumption of innocence until proven guilty. Each operative who makes a decision to move the case along does so by determining the probability of guilt or innocence. The underlying presumption is that the everyday practices of police and prosecutors are reliable indicators of probable guilt.There is a valorization in confiding with police and prosecutors in their informal determinations of guilt. One example of informal proceedings, with working presumptions of guilt operative and efficiency as a value, is plea bargaining. In large city courts 90 percent or more of the cases have guilty pleas and most are because of plea bargaining. It is an informal process in which the prosecutor and defense counselor attempt to come up with a deal in which the defendant pleads guilty in exchange for a more lenient sentence. To move the assembly line along in times of challenge, the prosecutor can make better offers for the defendant to plead guilty. Due Process Model This model has very different notions of justice. According to Packer, “If the Crime Control Model resembles an assembly line, the Due Process Model looks very much like an obstacle course” (16). In this model, formality, not informality is of the highest value. Justice demands higher principles than efficiency.There is constant vigilance concerning the possibility of human error, in reportage, in witnesses recollections, and in interpreting physical evidence. “The Due Process Model insists on the prevention and elimination of mistakes to the extent possible” (17). Since formal fact-finding proceedings are always open to appeal and reconsideration, the demands for finality in this model are low. Rather than conducting informal processing, the value is on

Retributive Justice

51

adversarial fact-finding procedures where opposing parties, the prosecutor and the defense counselor, battle it out for the truth at every critical stage of the proceedings. The due process model’s underlying working presumption is innocent until proven guilty. Thus there is a valorization of the high standard of proof beyond a reasonable doubt. In much contemporary discussion on capital punishment, there is a call for an even higher standard when the death penalty can be inflicted: guilt without doubt.This model operates to protect the factually innocent and convict the factually guilty. Packer’s metaphor is one of quality control exercised in factories: “The Due Process Model resembles a factory that has to devote a substantial part of its input to quality control.This necessarily cuts down on quantitative output”(17). The due process model is wary of governmental power. It recognizes that the stigma of being convicted of crime and the collateral damage that follows (restrictions on voting, holding office, certain business transactions, etc.) can be substantial and lifelong. Efficiency can lead to abuse: “maximal efficiency means maximal tyranny” (18).Thus efficiency is sacrificed to a degree to assure that maximal liberties are maintained. The due process model places a priority on formal equality. Financial differences should not be the basis of justice rendering.Thus legal access should be available to all; in cases of the indigent, government resources need to be drawn upon.Thus, before entering a plea, the defendant should have available to him or her some legal representation. Nevertheless, Packer states some pessimism about the relation of representation and financial means and to justice rendering:“It [his equality norm] has made its appearance on the scene comparatively late, and has therefore encountered a system in which the relative financial inability of most persons accused of crime results in treatment very different from that accorded the small minority of the financially capable” (21).4 Finally, Packer states, there is skepticism in this model about justice rendering. Cries of injustice must therefore remain an ongoing concern and a basis of continuous scrutiny of decision-making processes as a check on power. Proce dural Justice: The Family Mode l In 1970, John Griffiths wrote a provocative challenge to Packer’s central assumptions. He found the crime control model and due process model to be limited approaches that incorporated the idea of a battle metaphor; hence, they could be termed battle models. He suggested a family model as a third model, although he did not see this alternative being attainable in its pure form. Nevertheless, it was a suggestion offered as a way of breaking out of the limited thinking about how justice could be otherwise served—more humanely, more conciliatory, more just.

52

Social Justice

Griffiths began his examination of Packer’s battle models by addressing their underlying unexamined assumptions. First, Packer is steeped deep in retribution theory as a philosophy of punishment.“The function of the criminal sanction,” Packer wrote,“is to help prevent or reduce socially undesirable conduct through the detection, apprehension, prosecution, and punishment of offenders” (1968, 293). Second, Packer’s model rests on an understanding of the relationship of the individual to the state in terms of irreconcilable differences of interests, of struggle, of battle. Much of this derives from Hobbes (Griffiths 1970, 416). For the crime control model, the threats to social order and welfare are generated by self-interested human beings pursuing their self-interests. The crime control model ostensibly is primarily protecting society by favoring it in the rules of battle. In the due process model, on the other hand, the threat comes from the use of state power.Thus rules are more favorable for the accused. In either model—the former being an assembly line form of justice, the latter posing an obstacle course—the battle metaphor, along with constitutive linguistic terminology, is celebrated in conventional understanding, discussion, and policy making.5 In short, Packer assumes, “disharmony, fundamentally irreconcilable interests, a state of war” (371). A family model would need a new vocabulary a new language. Griffiths’s beginning point of analysis in the practice of justice rendering is to assume “reconcilable—even mutually supportive—interests, a state of love.” Griffiths looks at dynamics in the family. He notes that punishment does indeed exist. Offenses are “normal, expected occurrences.” But “punishment is not something a child receives in isolation from the rest of his relationships to the family; nor is it something which presupposes or carries with it a change of status from ‘child’ to ‘criminal child’ ” (376). Similarly, drawing from sociological evidence, Griffiths argues that “crime” and the “offender” are categories, statuses, created and stabilized in society.6 In his review of the literature, “criminals are just people who are deemed to have offended—that we are all of us both actual and potential criminals—that ‘criminals’ are not a special kind and class of people with a unique relation to the state” (374). In a family model, these formal and abstract categories should wither away. The battle model outcome is to separate, categorize, compartmentalize, and often stabilize identities. In the family model, on the other hand, when a child is punished by a parent, each knows afterward that they will continue to live as before (376). In the battle model there exists an exile function: the person is categorized and through a series of “status degradation ceremonies” is diminished in being (stigma) and vanquished from the community. “Our attitude, after his conviction, stamps him with his special status, is one of

Retributive Justice

53

indifference” (370). In the family model there would be no exile function, no strict confinement in a particular criminal status. But to do all this, several attitudes need changing. First, a basic faith must exist with public officials to act in good faith. Second, new roles for the defense counselor should include attitudes that are cooperative, constructive, and conciliatory.“Together with the representative of the state, defense counsel would direct his energies toward assisting the tribunal to come to that decision which best incorporates and reconciles the interests of all concerned” (383). Third, an attitude of respect for rights, dignity, and individuality should exist. “An offender would be perceived first and fundamentally as a person, rather than as a member of the special category of ‘criminal’ ” (384). Conflict is indeed inevitable in a complex society with various interests clashing, and it is apparent in punitive proceedings. But one must, says Griffiths, separate from the fiction that consensus, continuous harmony, and identity of interests can be established. Even so, it is still possible to work for reconciling interests within a framework that does not give significance to a battle. For transgressors who are punished, it can be made clear that their well-being is our concern, that we will not separate ourselves from them, and that they will be reintegrated back into the community. Griffiths concludes by acknowledging his proposed family model is only an ideal toward which we may work. However, he does support active rethinking of how we render justice beyond battle logic. Proce dural Justice: Actuarial Justice Actuarial justice concerns the premium on prediction in criminal justice processing. It has affinities with the crime control model. In this model, the criminal justice system focuses on maximizing efficiency in processing. Externally, it is focused on minimizing risks and maximizing safety. It argues for security and prevention and has ushered in risk management. Rather than a focus on such conceptions of justice as equity and on individualized justice, the focus is on statistical analysis and probability theory (Kraska 2004, 280, 303). The central figure in this model is the actuary, who is a specialist in assessing risk by statistical examination, particularly by looking at people in the aggregate. The term “actuary” is borrowed from insurance company’s usage. Adherents argue we already do these risk assessments in traditional criminal justice processing in such standards as probable cause, beyond a reasonable doubt, preponderance of evidence, and clear and convincing.A number of theorists have noted actuarial foci development in recent years (Ericson and Haggerty 1997; Feeley and Simon 1994, 2004; Haggerty and Ericson 2006; O’Malley 1992, 1996, 1999, 2004; Kraska 2004; Zinger 2004). Some have built

54

Social Justice

on recent insights concerning the “risk society” (Beck 1992) in late modernity. Others have traced the developed of actuarial justice to developments in capitalism (Rigakos and Hadden 2001).With 9/11 and the passage of the Patriot’s Act, the United States has surely increased its centrality in decision making, surveillance, profiling, selective/preventive detention, and prosecution. Actuarial justice has been exemplified in recent developments in tort law. Prior emphasis on individual responsibility (i.e., focus on fault and negligence) has given way to no-fault and strict liability.The emerging actuarial discourse is concerned with management of risks and social utility. We are witnessing crime fighting that focuses on hotspots and high-risk, career, and long-term offenders.We are witnessing this actuarial discourse being played out at every level. A new penology has emerged that categorizes, segregates, and watches more intensely and ubiquitously. The new managers are versed in operations research, systems theory, and statistics (Feeley and Simon 2004, 303, 313). Their concern is less with individuals than aggregates.Actuarial justice has been brought to bear on preventive detention (see also United States v. Salerno 1987), drug courier profiles, drug testing, recidivism, probation, and parole (Feeley and Simon 1994).Actuarial risk assessment tools include base expectancy scores, level of supervision inventory, salient factor scores, statistical information on recidivism scale (see Dolan and Doyle 2000, 304). It has also been applied to managing sex offenders, particularly sexually violent persons and sexually dangerous persons (Logan 2000; see also Kansas v. Hendricks 1997; Kansas v. Crane 2002; and White 2004). A sexually violent person is someone who has “been convicted of a sexually violent offense and who suffers from a mental abnormality or personality disorder that makes the person likely to engage in predatory sexually violent offense” (see U.S.C. 14071(a)(3)(C); see also Logan 2000). More recently, actuarial tools have been applied to fighting cyber crime (Van 2005). Van has noted that software is being developed to detect credit and Medicare fraud and hackers using a statistical package for the social sciences. A number of critiques of actuarial justice have materialized in the literature, many of which concern the notion of a false positive. A false positive is a person who has been predicted to be dangerous in some way but turns out not to be so. These studies have been rather extensive in the clinical area (see the reviews by Dolan and Doyle 2000 and also earlier cases: Baxstrom v. Herald 1966; Monahan 1984; Steadman and Cocozza 1974).The general results are an alarmingly high occurrence of false positives. Consider, for example, the classic study by Steadman and Cocozza (1974) that noted a false positive rate of 80 percent (i.e., only 20 percent had been reconvicted after a four-year follow-up study, with most for nonviolent types of harms). Dolan and Doyle (2000, 2004) summarizing Hart (1988a, 1988b) have noted deficiencies in actuarial instruments: downplaying individual variations, ignoring professional expertise, using

Retributive Justice

55

static variables, and failing to specify important variables and their relative importance. The reader should consider the full ramifications of those incarcerated under indeterminate sentences or preventive detention rationales. In sum, actuarial justice has as its motto: “Walk softly and carry a big . . . calculator” (Rigakos and Hadden 2001, 75). In this procedural form of justice, the relevance of individual factors have been eclipsed by aggregate analysis. Re storative Justice Restorative justice has had a long history.7 It has gained momentum since the early 1990s and now is a much-discussed topic worldwide, with various implementations of its theoretical underpinnings. In one of its early framings restorative justice stood for not only acknowledging harms committed by persons, but also the desirability for the active participation of victims and offenders in attempts to resolve the conflict (Eglash 1977). The use of restorative justice can be traced back to the ancients. In those early years of civilization (prior to state societies), the majority of harms were not considered harms against the state or the collective, but as a harm specifically inflicted on a victim and/or his or her family.The offender had to make amends with the victim and the family (Van Ness 1990). In contemporary society, many indigenous groups still cling to this mechanism (see Van Ness and Strong 2002, 8–9). A change in ancient thinking is largely attributable to the Norman invasion of Britain. The king was to replace local and church methods of repair. In the twelfth century, the notion of the king’s peace was established and harms done were now seen conducted against the king and his peace (Berman 1983;Van Ness and Strong 2002, 10–13). In this scenario, the victim was to become secondary in the process of making amends. It was the state that was offended and had to be appeased.The focus switched from making the victim whole to deterring future offenses. Thus rituals of public torture, fines, and the death penalty now became the state’s response. In the eighteen century, the idea of rehabilitation was discovered, which was to remain as an ideal in Western countries, including the United States, until perhaps the early 1970s. Foucault (1977a), too, has explained that the early forms of public torture and corporal punishment were generally replaced during the latter part of the 1700s. Inflicting pain on the body gave way to attempts at understanding the soul of the lawbreaker. The rehabilitation model fell in disfavor in the early 1970s.8 The movement returned to the classical school of thought, with an emphasis on responsibility, free will, deterrence, and retribution theory. But the 1970s and 1980s saw large increases in crime and imprisonment. Recidivism rates soared. It was out of this climate that alternatives were sought. Restorative justice began to develop an appeal particularly in the early 1990s and continues to grow strong to the present.

56

Social Justice

Several movements in particular led to the establishment of restorative justice, including experiments in informal justice programs, restitution programs, victim’s movement, mediation and conferencing programs, and social justice programs advocated by the Quakers (Van Ness and Strong 2002, 16–27). According to Howard Zehr in Changing Lenses (1990), we either see things by way of a retributive justice lens or a restorative justice lens. “Crime is a violation of people and relationships. It creates obligations to make things right. Justice involves the victim, the offender, and the community in a search for solutions which promote repair, reconciliation, and reassurance” (181). There are currently several forms of restorative justice. Among the most prominent are victim-offender mediation programs, where the victim and the offender meet with trained mediators to seek resolution. Family group conferencing is another important form and was legislated in New Zealand in 1989. It is now used in Australia, the United States, and in Europe.With family group conferencing, there is a facilitator, not a mediator, who coordinates discussion between the offender and the victim, as well as family members, other groups, and police. With victim-offender panels, which are prevalent, victims face a group of offenders who have committed a similar crime to those that the victims have suffered, such as drunken drivers (Van Ness and Strong 2002, 57–68). There are five general elements to a restorative justice encounter: meeting (the offender and victim meet face to face); narrative (both present their particular story); emotion (each expresses anger, fear, sorrow); understanding (each begins to empathize with the other); and agreement (some kind of resolution is attained).There are four elements to a successful resolution or amends: apology, behavioral change, restitution, and generosity. A central focus is reintegration. This means “re-entry into community life as a whole, contributing, productive person.” Reintegrating communities (support groups) are especially important. Another central value is the inclusion of the victim in various stages of criminal justice processing (Van Ness and Strong 2002, 68–69, 81, 106, 110). Various objections (conceptual and practical) have been actively discussed by those who advocate restorative justice programs (see Van Ness and Strong 2002, chaps. 8–9).9 Van Ness and Strong provide compelling answers to these questions. Preliminary studies have indicated substantial success rates (in terms of happiness with results, recidivism rates, and feeling of involvement, among others) that far exceed those attained by traditional criminal justice programs (Braithwaite 2002, chap. 3). Justice in Re storative Justice Defining what constitutes justice in restorative justice programs has taken on several forms, from a zero tolerance for punishment (violence still exists whether committed by an offender or in the name of correcting an offender), to a decentralized form which includes some forms of punishment (sanctions), to seeing it as a necessary element in shaming the offender.

Retributive Justice

57

Restorative Justice: Needs-Based Justice In Restorative Justice, Dennis Sullivan and Larry Tifft (2001) have provided a model of justice that is heavily derived from a Kropotkin-based anarchist perspective.10 Any form of violence, whether committed by a lawbreaker or in the name of responding to a lawbreaker for deterrence or retributivist purposes, is illegitimate.The latter are “power-based methods of corrections.”According to Sullivan and Tifft, “the best way to respond to violence and other forms of harm—whether defined by the state as harmful or not—is to respond to harmsituations primarily in personal terms, in terms of the suffering and misery they have created for those affected by the violence.”Thus healing by way of “apology, forgiveness, and reconciliation” can take place in forums where those harmed can share their stories of loss to one another. Ostensibly the methods would rely on those “that are standard practice in the world of mediation and conflict resolution” (viii). Underlying the model is the supreme value of voluntary participation. We are left, however, without further operationalizations concerning the specifics of this process and the nature of the forums. Restorative Justice: Restorative Proportionality Van Ness and Strong’s (2002) version does include some sanctions, or punishment, but it would not be unilaterally inflicted by state authority; it would be decentralized and creatively developed at the community and interpersonal level by those directly impacted by the harm. Their version incorporates components of Sullivan and Tifft’s proposal but attempts to operationalize the process and type of necessary programs. The first issue in the determination of justice concerns multiple parties (victims, offenders, communities, and government) pursuing multiple goals (redress, fairness, healing, and rehabilitation) (159–63). This issue, too, faces conventional criminal justice practices and poses substantial challenges. But it is precisely because restorative justice is holistic in orientation that it ostensibly can deal with multiple parties and goals. And ultimately, justice is defined in terms of fairness: “the community process of responding to crime focuses equally but distinctly on the needs of the victim and the offender for healing and rehabilitation” (162). This leads to the second issue of potential disparities in sanctions. “Will similar offenders receive dissimilar sanctions for the same act? . . . [and] will similar victims receive dissimilar reparation even though they suffered from the same criminal act?” (176).The authors seem to have situated the dilemma in the classic insoluble conflict posed by Weber—that is, the conflict between formal rationality and substantive rationality. This issue revolves around proportionality. Van Ness and Strong argue that restorative justice programs are similar to retributivist’s philosophy in so much as it is backward-looking (retrospective)—focusing on the degree of culpability of the offender. For the retributive model the call is for the punishment to fit the crime, which implies

58

Social Justice

proportionality.Van Ness and Strong’s focus, however, is on a restorative proportionality (the term was devised by Walgrave and Geudens [1996, 375–376]). Van Ness and Strong argue that the focus would be less on traditional retribution theory (retributive proportionality) and more with the “link between the severity of the material, relational and social harm caused by the offense and the degree of restorative effort required by the offender” (Van Ness and Strong 2002, 177). Justice, here, demands that the victims, offenders, and immediate community are best situated to do this justice rendering in encounter sessions. But what of guidelines? Inspiration can be drawn from two sources: first, current tort law, based on common law, has established a body of information whereby harms have been translated into monetary terms while considering liability factors as well as mitigating and aggravating issues (178).The second inspiration is from recent deserts theory development. This draws particularly from the work of Von Hirsch (1993). He explains how paying off one’s debt can be translated into various commodities; in other words, penalties can be brought within some equivalent measure and hence substituted for each other while still retaining the notion of proportionality (desert) in the response to harm. Thus deserts “could be established by determining the seriousness of both crime and punishment based on how each impedes the standard of living of the typical person” (Van Ness and Strong 2002, 178). Van Ness and Strong are quick to point out that Von Hirsch focuses on typical harm inflicted by typical persons, whereas restorative justice individualizes within a holistic perspective. These two sources of guidance would be introduced by the mediator/coordinator/facilitator. This would allow the disputants to adjust their understandings or claim that a variance is necessary due to the uniqueness of the situation. These sources of guidance can also come into play during overall evaluation of the particular restorative justice program to asses to what degree agreements developed correspond with some proportionate schema and how they compare to traditional practices in the formal criminal justice system. Where differences in economics exist (i.e., differences in how much a person earns), perhaps a version of the day fine used in a number of European countries could be implemented (Wright 1982). Given two offenders and similar harms, one making $500 a day, the other making $25 per day, a day fine, which reflects the seriousness of the offense, might be, say, five days. Thus the first offender pays $2,500, the second $125 for the same offense.Van Ness and Strong’s extension of this logic would be that, given a typically seen restitution, where the offender cannot pay the designated fine because of economics, an established compensation fund will make up the difference, and where another offender pays more than the expected, the balance would be placed in the compensation fund (179). In short, justice in this model would certainly see some remnants of what Weber calls the insoluble conflict between justice principles stemming from

Retributive Justice

59

formal rationality and those from substantive rationality (or irrationality). Restorative justice proponents seem to want to build in some rational measures, standards, and criteria in response to formal rationality ideology, while at the same time seeing “justice” as more unique, situational, and self-enclosed (substantive rationality/irrationality).11 Restorative Justice: Reintegrating Shaming Braithwaite, in Crime, Shame and Reintegration (1989), and more recently in Restorative Justice and Responsive Regulation (2002), sees punishment as integral to his model of restorative justice.This is in marked contrast to a needs-based justice as developed by Sullivan and Tifft. For Braithwaite, shaming is an essential ingredient in the response to the lawbreaker. His model has a component of retribution; it is backward looking, and shaming is in proportion to the culpability and violation.The model’s second component is reintegration, hence the combined term “reintegrative shaming.” For Braithwaite tolerating crime is not a solution, and shaming is necessary to show the community’s displeasure for the act; at the same time, restorative justice does not want to be drawn into dynamics that sustain the status of an offender.Thus, shame and respect should work together. Shaming can take on two forms. One form, stigmatizing shaming, casts a more permanent status on the offender, with lifelong consequences, argue labeling theorists. In other words, the status degradations ceremonies attached to processing, convicting, and sentencing does not have a decertification process whereby the human being returns and is restored to a full-fledged community member. Reintegrative shaming, on the other hand, is where offenders are responded to in no uncertain terms, sometimes even quite harshly. But after paying their dues, after suffering the shame, they are reintegrated into the community without the status of offender. Braithwaite’s theory predicts low crime rates where reintegrative shaming is the norm, and high crime rates where stigmatizing shaming exists.The latter exists because the person is more likely to find opportunities for self-expression in deviant subcultures or in illegitimate opportunity structures. Braithwaite tells us his theory can work with both harms committed by the powerful (i.e., corporate offenders) as well as by the powerless. Braithwaite’s second book builds on his first, although departing somewhat from the shaming framework. In developing guidelines for justice in practice, based on a “republican normative theory,” Braithwaite says that “because equality for victims and equality for offenders are utterly irreconcilable, the more practical justice agenda is to guarantee victims a minimum level of care and to guarantee offenders against punishment beyond a maximum limit” (2002, 12, 126; Braithwaite and Pettit 1990).Thus the underlying conception of justice in his republican theory and restorative justice program is that of maximizing freedom while minimizing domination. For Braithwaite, deserts

60

Social Justice

theory is not a guideline and should not be part of the program (Braithwaite 2002, 126–127). “Rather, restorative justice should settle for the procedural requirement that the parties talk until they feel that peace has been restored on the basis of a discussion of all the injustices they see as relevant to the case” (126). In comparison, beginning our response with the question of “what is the correct punishment?” leads back into traditional criminal justice ideology where differences and voice are obliterated. Braithwaite also rejects notions of proportionality in punishment, and he even rejects the reliance on notions of abstract attributions of individual responsibility (129). He makes a distinction between passive and active responsibility. Passive responsibility is where one holds a person responsible for certain activity; it is an act of domination; it can be perceived by the person to whom it is attributed as domination and as a way by which the attributors pronounces their innocence and blamelessness and thus provide an excuse for not taking active responsibility in making things right.Active responsibility, on the other hand, is the virtue of taking responsibility for putting things right. In this schema, active responsibility is encouraged.The offenders begin to see the consequences of their harm inflicted. “A wrongdoer taking responsibility is a morally superior outcome than being made to be responsible by an imposed sanction” (129). Restorative justice creates a space within which active responsibility can take place and wrongs can be righted. According to Braithwaite, this space should not be restricted in terms of many of the traditional ideologies of the formal criminal justice system if genuine dialogue is to flourish.12 In this direction, Braithwaite argues the challenge is to develop institutions that are less dependant on lawyers, less reflective of the rich, and less occupied with anger (245). In traditional practices the victim and offender suffer additional hurts and escalation in anger, whereas evidence presented in restorative justice program indicate emotional healing takes place both with the offender as well as with the victim. Braithwaite closes with a call for careful and critical examination of the direction restorative justice programs are currently moving. Indeed, globalization, he says, is having a major effect in the further development of restorative justice. But there remain impediments. For example, feminist critiques indicate domesticating stories of violence where mediation efforts may become methods of domination (Cobb 1997; Coker 1999).The mediation makes private what should be public, resituating conflict from public awareness to the realm of the private and hence the invisible, and this reinforces gender hierarchies where men control important resources and women do not (Astor 1994).A counterpart to the feminist critique appears within critical race theory. Major structural changes in paving the way for restorative justice need to be addressed, and Astor advocates social movement to embrace the call (263).

Chapte r 5

Toward Transformative Justice

Restorative Justice For those theorists attempting to develop an alternative to the criminal justice system, restorative justice has provided an alternative vista. But, by itself, as currently constituted, it has raised a number of criticisms, especially from those advocating a transformative justice.Transformative justice theorists seek not only to respond to the immediacy of the conflict or harm but also to situate it in a broader framework addressing structural issues. In so much as restorative justice does not deal with structural issues, it has been accused of being system supporting, be it unknowingly.The glaring question is “Restore to what?” If, for example, structures and a particular form of community organizations reduce or repress the search for self-development and actualization, then, the transformative theorists argue, simply to restore relations to this previous state is by itself contributing to the sustaining of reductive or repressive practices.1 An example of restoration to repression versus transformation to justice may be contained in the reaction to Hurricane Katrina, which devastated New Orleans and much of the southern United States in August of 2005 and beyond.While the hurricane itself was destructive, the flooding that followed the failure of the levy system in New Orleans was perhaps the most injurious force. Also, glaringly harmful and more globally damaging was the abandonment of the city’s and region’s poor to fend for themselves in the face of these natural and human made disasters. Restoration following a hurricane typically occurs at the individual level with the replacement of lost goods and housing by insurance, governmental assistance, and/or other individual/group efforts.The restoration of individuals was compounded in the wake of Katrina given the neglect of the levy system and necessity of restoring it to a far better condition in order to assure future reliance. Further, the restoration of trust required far more than the replacement of goods and assurances that the levy system was safe.This recovery effort 61

62

Social Justice

instead may in fact have required a transformation of a system that neglected its infrastructure at the great expense of citizens (especially the poor, among which African Americans and other non-whites are overrepresented) to a system that places human need and safety at the center of decisions. This transformation would require the rejection of all racist notions that may be or are infused in the structure that allowed such harm to occur. Restoration to the previous condition is far from adequate for justice. Because recovery from Hurricane Katrina is ongoing while this text is in progress, an analysis of the justice of the outcomes are not available.Therefore, instead of offering an analysis, we invite readers to consider the progress made at the point of their reading. Has there been a restoration? To what extent has restoration occurred? Has a transformation occurred? Have these restorations and/or transformations brought justice? If not, what is necessary? Consider these questions again after finishing this chapter to see if your ideas have changed. For the transformative justice theorists, particular components for restorative justice may, with some modification, also be elements of a transformative justice.Apart from detailed responses by advocates of restorative justice to raised concerns, several other more structurally oriented concerns have been raised. The first concern addresses the domestication of harm. Harms are reconceptualized as conflict, and victim rights are reconceptualized as victim needs. Diminished is the very nature and extent of the harm inflicted. The second concern highlights the further institutionalization of power inequalities; for example, male domination is reinforced because males have greater resources at their disposal. And the third concern critiques making private what should be public. In other words, harms done to women are denied public awareness by being channeled into more informal processing. Harms are seen as private affairs and therefore denied public awareness, discussion, and potential change. Thus, some feminist critiques would see restorative justice as maintaining continued repression of women in the guise of an alternative to the formal criminal justice system. The second line of critique comes from sociological-oriented theorists in the tradition of conflict resolution who oppose alternative dispute resolution (ADR). ADR arguably is not indistinguishable from restorative justice. For Scimecca (1991), ADR is inherently about social control. He summarizes six specific criticisms. First, he argues that ADR lacks a consistent underlying theoretical framework that explains the nature of conflict.“ADR emphasizes the how to deal with conflict, and in most instances without any real theoretical justification for when and why to use conflict intervention techniques (274).2 Second,ADR is focused on the notion of the individual and individual responsibility without looking at structural inequalities and its contribution to the conflict. The individual is seen as inherently rational and able to rationally

Toward Transformative Justice

63

resolve conflicts. If no resolution is reached, then it must be based on irrational individuals. Third, ADR often is more concerned about misunderstandings than inequalities and power differentials in structural arrangements.3 This narrow focus leaves power differentials and inequalities unexamined, unattended, and unchallenged. Fourth, ADR centers on the neutrality of the mediators/ facilitators in proceedings, who are concerned with compromise, but the ideology is inherently supportive of the status quo.4 Support of the status quo may be problematic to those concerned with structural injustices and inequalities. Fifth, ADR is more concerned with opening up opportunities for professionals and well-paid jobs. Sixth, ADR has been usurped by professionals; few direct connections with community grassroots organizations materialize. Scimecca qualifies this criticism in advocating more expansive use of professionals who have training in collaborative problem-solving skills in conflict resolution programs. Such professionals have the necessary skills to sensitively and skillfully handle structural issues. Those advocating conflict resolution rather than alternative dispute resolutions have a different emphasis. For example, Burton (1979; see also Scimecca 1991) sees conflict resolution as making use of collaborative problem-solving. A neutral third party facilitates two disputants in mediation efforts, and the goal is to get to the root of the problem (Scimecca 1991, 264–265). In other words, the disputants are interested not only in resolving the immediate conflict but also in understanding the source of the problems and the possibility of preventing it from happening in the future.5 A third group of critics come from the postmodern tradition or those who are its supporters. Pavlich (1996), for example, applying Foucault’s (1977) idea of disciplinary mechanisms whereby subjects are pacified and normalized (e.g., trained to accept system directives, rules, and roles), argues that victim offender mediation programs are ultimately system supporting (see also Arrigo et al. 2005, chap. 7; Schehr 2000). Mediators help encourage agreements that are consistent with dominant interests, values, norms, and other ideologies (celebrating work, merit, property, authority) (Schehr 2000). Arrigo and Schehr (1998) have argued that victim offender mediation programs rely extensively on a master discourse within which system-sustaining frames of reference are rehearsed, thus assuring predictability and stability in the programs. In other words, victims are encouraged to verbalize their hurts in the language of mediation (reconciliation, healing, restitution, responsibility, etc.). This language is already ideological and points to certain outlooks (see also Acorn 2004; Pavlich 2005). Cameron, applying Foucault’s notion of disciplinary mechanisms, has shown how Western restorative justice programs function as a discipline of silence. In her examination of a number of Canadian court cases that have made use of sentencing circles—a variation of restorative justice in which the

64

Social Justice

judge, victim, offender, and others participate—she finds that the female victim of violence in the family finds little verbalization in the judge’s narratives of the case. The underlying assumptions with which the justices make use, too, are often reflective of traditional two-parent, heterosexual families. Also, the female victim, in an ironic twist, is often held responsible for restoring the offender and for the prevention of further harm to herself (Cameron, forthcoming). A fourth basis of critique questions the notion of a needs-based justice. According to Kropotkin, needs are defined in terms of maximizing the “expression of the voice of each [person] . . . the well-being of everyone involved in a given social situation is taken into account: that is, everyone involved is listened to, interacted with, or responded to on the basis of her or his present needs” (1924, 113). Each person has unique needs, and justice is done when they are reflected in social interactions and structural arrangements. Other groundings for needs exist. In Maslow’s (1954) hierarchy of needs, each person is born unique with certain potentialities and is not necessarily driven by greed and hedonistic factors. Lower level needs (i.e., physiological and safety needs) have to be fulfilled before higher level needs (i.e., belongingness and esteem needs) are activated.When individuals are at the pinnacle of this hierarchy of needs, they self-actualize, which is experienced as a natural good feeling (e.g., peak experience).When lower level needs are blocked, repressed, or denied by situational, community, and/or structural arrangements, individuals engage in reactive behavior. Yet another version of needs appears in some of the literature on conflict resolution. Burton, for example, has developed nine universal human needs.6 The theory is that a set of universal needs exists, and when they are thwarted, conflict arises. The notion of needs, however, has been critiqued by Miller. He raises two general issues. First, how would a needs principle operate in a society of relative scarcity, by which is meant a society in which given individual demands and resources are not adequate? He refers to Marx’s (1977) notion of “from each according to his ability, to each according to his need” and indicates that some theorists read this justice principle as being operative in a society of abundance, not scarcity.7 “My interest is in the use of the principle to establish claims of justice in circumstances where needs have to compete with other demands, and where there is no guarantee that all needs can be met” (Miller 1999, 204).A needs principle, then, must be able to “deal with conflicts among different people’s claims of need” (205). Miller’s second reservation concerns a person’s understanding of what needs may mean. Can people collectively in society, or in some segment of society, agree on the definition of needs? These two questions lead to several others.Which claims, in the first instance, count as needs? (229).Which needs invoke the necessity of justice? How are priorities established, given various

Toward Transformative Justice

65

qualifying claims? Doesn’t the invocation of needs suggest some “interpersonal criteria for deciding what counts as a need” (205)? Thus, for Miller, the idea of “to each according to his needs” is problematic. Not that it is fatal, but it must address these issues. Certainly, Miller’s reservation is a call for response. Finally, a fifth group of critique appears under the rubric of paradoxes of restorative justice. Pavlich has argued that restorative justice is a “simultaneous attempt to offer a substitute for criminal justice while predicating . . . [itself ] on (and so imitating) existing criminal justice arrangements” (Pavlich 2005, 14–15). He calls this the imitor paradox. His specific examples include that the very definition of harm that restorative justice uses is predicated, in the final analysis, on traditional criminal justice ideas, even in a more expansive format than offering a new way of defining harm (35); that its central thrust is often an appeal to a medical model and thus the focus is on technical issues, not ethical (35, 41); that restorative justice’s concern with narratives of restoration obliges it to construct victim identities in a particular way within which a particular discourse will be seen as appropriate (49; see also Acorn 2004), or, in other words, victims and offenders must be prepared for playing a subsequent appropriate role in mediation efforts (ibid, 54, 57); that empowering the victim does not include challenging social conditions and injustices but in direct victimhood itself and how to deal with it (60); that restorative justice attempts to convince the offenders of their individual responsibilities, and to accept them, which is a predicate for further restoration and reintegration (69, 81–82) and is precisely what the traditional criminal justice system attempts to do; that restorative justice programs, with their emphasis on the individual, are hard pressed in dealing also with the realities of certain communities with complex forms of gang violence and other social problems and hence restoring communities is hardly a pursued goal (100); and that restorative justice’s notion of community assumes a consensual model and becomes potentially a model advocating the superiority of one over another form of community (102). In short, restorative justice, although seemingly offering many benefits around restoration, healing, empowering, and changing lenses, ultimately and paradoxically reproduces many key assumptions of traditional criminal justice. Transformative Justice The notion of transformative justice has had a less developed history than that of restorative justice. Perhaps Ruth Morris (1994) was one of the first to popularize the term. More recently,Van Ness and Strong (2002) looked beyond restorative justice to include transformation of persons, perspective, and structure, although many could argue that it is not a fully developed view. Sullivan and Tifft (2001) have often been better connected with advocating transformative justice, even though they also advocate a form of restorative justice built on a needs-based conception of justice.8

66

Social Justice

It becomes clear in reviewing the literature that when the word “transformative” is used in connection with justice, it is more often related to how individuals and communities undergo change through healing processes.9 The question of structure providing the framework within which we exist, however, remains unexamined. Morris (1994), a Quaker investigator of the Canadian justice system, advocates looking at the nature of and response to crime in terms of its potential in providing insights about causes of crime and hence steps needed to prevent it. In other words, in responding to crime we also can learn about its etiology; in the response, people are transformed. For Morris, the key distinguishing factor of restorative justice is that transformative justice focuses on the causes of harms requiring healing. She argues that traditional restorative justice approaches are short in the response needed. She also considers structural forms of injustices such as racism. She explains the transformative component as follows:“transformative justice includes victims, offenders, their families, and their communities, and invites them to use the past to dream and create a better future” (2001, 1). In this sense, there is a future-directed component that connects with the past and the present of the harm and its response. Van Ness and Strong’s foray into a transformative component of restorative justice focuses on transformation of persons, perspectives, and community. Transformation of persons means that the parties involved in mediation efforts undergo change.They begin to feel healed and empowered.Transformation of perspectives means creativity in resolving harms. It incorporates risk, but through risk taking and creative response older patterns of responding to harm are changed into ones that heal and transform. It recognizes imbalances of power and of poverty.These inequalities can be political, economic, and social. “Just as individuals must accept responsibility for their acts, so societies must assume some responsibility for the inequalities that plague them . . . to discern imbalances, inequities, or disparities that result in less justice for some, and to seek remediation and even transformation of those structures” (Van Ness and Strong 2002, 246). However, although they briefly mention structure as a component, their version of restorative justice is, functionally speaking, primarily operative at the personal and community levels. Perhaps the clearest expression and ongoing development of a transformative justice approach is offered in Sullivan and Tifft’s work. Noting that the notion of restorative justice on its face is too restrictive, they argue for extending the focus “to take into account the ‘transformative,’ economic, and structural dimensions of justice: that is, the social-structural conditions that constrain our lives and affect the extent to which any one of us can live restorative lives” (Sullivan and Tifft 2001, 34, 94–97). They argue for a more holistic approach to include personal, community, and structural components in our dealing with harm. Justice exists, both distributively and retributively when

Toward Transformative Justice

67

structures are responsive to our needs (95). Hence, their call is for a needs-based justice. Both rights-based justice and desert-based justice, they argue, simply accept given social hierarchical structural arrangements.Thus their emphasis is on a transformative justice that is still restorative but “seeks to affect socialstructural, institutional arrangements, while simultaneously helping those whose lives have been affected by interpersonal conflict” (x).They are concerned with both healing and transforming social institutions (i.e., the school, family, community, workplace; in short, a needs-based economy). Vistas: Toward Holistic Mode ls The term “transformative” in the context of restorative justice all too often privileges the change the person is seen to undergo, at times extending this change to the community. However, a more complete meaning of “transformative” entails change at the structural and discursive levels. Donald Black (1976) has briefly outlined four possible responses to harms (see table 5.1).These models operate at the individual level and arguably at the community level. The penal style and compensatory are collectively seen as accusatory styles. Here there is a zero-sum game (all or nothing) as to responsibility and punishment/payment; both have a winner or loser.The therapeutic and conciliatory models are collectively seen as remedial styles.They are “methods of social repair and maintenance, assistance for people in trouble.” It is not a question of a winner and loser, but “what is necessary to ameliorate a bad situation” (Black 1976, 4). Rather than zero-sum, it advocates variable-sum activity where responsibility for action is variable. Clearly, the conciliatory style implicates restorative justice discussions. Black also indicates how these various styles of social control behave. In other words, the response is patterned. When we look at “stratification” (e.g., the differences in wealth arranged hierarchically), penal law is more likely to operate in a downward direction Table 5-1 Four Styles of Societal Responses

Penal (criminal law)

Compensatory Therapeutic (civil law) (rehabilitation)

Conciliatory (mediation)

Standard

prohibition

obligation

normality

harmony

Problem

guilt

debt

need

conflict

Initiation of case

group

victim

deviant

disputants

Identity of deviant

offender

debtor

victim

disputant

Solution

punishment

payment

help

(accusatory styles) Source: Adopted from Black (1976, 5).

resolution (remedial styles)

68

Social Justice

(e.g., law applied against the lower income person) and the compensatory and therapeutic model in an upward direction (e.g., law applied against a higher income person). Conciliatory law “varies inversely with stratification” (30): the greater a society is stratified, the less likely a conciliatory style is employed and the more likely the penal, compensatory, and therapeutic model is employed. Examples of differential imposition in the highly stratified U.S. society are easily imagined.The penal response to illegal drug use by the poor as opposed to the therapeutic responses to illegal drug use by the middle class and/or wealthy is one such example.While the poor are more likely to be sentenced to prison terms than treatment programs when caught using illicit drugs, the middle class and the wealthy are more likely to receive sentencing to treatment programs (if any sentence is imposed) than to be sentenced to prison. Consider other examples of differential imposition. When we look at the degree of intimacy and integration, what Black calls relational distance, he predicts that the greater the relational distance, the more likely the use of the penal, compensatory, and therapeutic styles; whereas, the less the relational distance (e.g., friends, intimates), the more likely the conciliatory style will be employed. And his behavior of law predicts that those on the margins of society are more likely to have the accusatory style imposed on them, whereas those more integrated will have a conciliatory style employed against them.10 Close scrutiny of these models indicate that they operate at the individual level but also begin to implicate the community level. Henry and Milovanovic (1996, 189) have extended the response to crime to include structural dimensions.We adopt a version of theirs (see table 5.2). Incorporating Black’s four models we can extend the responses to harms to include structure, thereby producing six types of response.11 The radical accusatory model would implicate the whole of society for harms done by individuals.12 Thus, what is necessitated is a radical transformation of society itself. Perhaps the Marxist model in chapter 3 is exemplary. There it was said that with the change from the socialist to the communist mode of production a new principle of justice would arise:“from each according to his abilities, to Table 5.2 Types of Responses to Harm

Level of Intervention Agent (the person)

Social-relational (community)

Structural (society)

Accusatory Punitive accusatory

Compensatory accusatory

Radical accusatory

Remedial

Conciliatory remedial

Reformist remedial

Therapeutic remedial

Source: Adopted from Henry and Milovanovic (1996, 189).

Toward Transformative Justice

69

each according to his needs.”What would be of a high premium is sensitivity to differential abilities and needs. Justice would be very much in accord with Weber’s notion of substantive rationality, or even substantive irrationality, in so much as abilities and needs are unique and hence could not be brought under any equivalent measure. In other words, each person is his or her own standard. Impositions of criteria or standard that are universal would be seen as repressive.13 The reformist remedial style, on the other hand, attributes societal pathology to structural sources, but there is optimism that they can be reengineered by various adjustments of the core institutions, resulting in less harm. In other words, some version of capitalism might still be accepted, but resources, benefits, and rewards would be redistributed in a more equitable manner.14 The two more structural models see the human being situated within the context of community forces, which in turn exist in the context of structural forces (see fig. 5.1). Justice, in a transformative model, must acknowledge the interplay of all three levels in both distributive and retributive forms. For example, when a person commits a harm, the response is directed not only to her or him but also to the community and structural arrangements. A harm inflicted, then, could be conceived of as a litmus test for dysfunctional social arrangements. In responding to harm we ask how we may sensitively consider the totality of circumstances within which it is committed. In comparison, when traditional criminal justice processing focuses entirely on the individual doing the harm it is also saying that he or she alone is the responsible agent. Here, structural arrangements behind poverty, discrimination, and inequality

Structure

Community

Human Being

Figure 5-1. Holistic Model of Human Being, Structure and Coproduction.

70

Social Justice

remain beyond incrimination. Let us provide some vistas toward transformative justice. Ewich and Silbey’s The Common Place of Law (1998) provides a preliminary for understanding how justice principles exist in practice and are interconnected at three levels.15 They argue that legality (and we argue justice) is not a phenomenon that simply takes place in top-down fashion, where recipients merely act out its mandates. Rather,“legality is constituted through everyday actions and practices” (43). In other words, people in various everyday practices continually construct conceptions of legality and what is just, in various contexts. Constructing reality is based not only on societal-wide mandates in law and formal principles of justice but also on their nuanced understandings and iterations in contexts. Structure, following Sewell (1992), must be defined in terms of cultural schemas and resources that together produce patterns in social interactions. Consciousness is not an effect of structure but a constitutive part of it.That is, it is both produced by structure and coproduces structure. Legal consciousness is played out in storytelling. In their study, “people relied on culturally available narratives of law to interpret their lives and relationships. . . .They combined elements of different schemas with scraps of their own biographies to forge distinctive accounts of events and relationships” (247). A similar logic exists with the development of notions of justice. David Matza, in Delinquency and Drift (1961), shows how the very techniques of neutralization that juveniles use in excusing their crimes, or providing legitimate reasons for committing crimes, can be traced back to legal conceptions that have trickled down to their particular subcultures. In their eyes, justice is not being transgressed in many of their infractions. In some cases, they are doing justice in their very infraction (e.g., rightful retaliation). Similarly, Schwendinger and Schwendinger (1985, 13) have shown that youths often incorporate an instrumental rhetoric (discourse), which is a form of moral rhetoric (a sense of rightness/correctness) but highly stripped of standards of fairness. This rhetoric is further traced to a survival rationalization that is imbedded within capitalist economy. Between the competitiveness of capitalism at the macro level and the decision-making at the micro level lies this discourse, along with various others, within which everyday activity is structured. Thus, justice in practice, much like law in practice, is a coproduced phenomenon. In its everyday production, it too reinforces dominant conceptions. Conceptions of justice move fluidly among the three levels of human being, community, and structure and draw elements of its definition from the iterative everyday practices within each. It is this component (discourse) that is minimized in Van Ness and Strong’s (2002) summary of restorative justice (recall, in their transformation discussion they focus on individuals, perspectives, and structure), even though they do

Toward Transformative Justice

71

suggest an “alternative hypothesis” concerning norms: that they are “best revealed in the course of conversation.”They even suggest that we might look at the form of discourse in the media and those of elected representatives in that they might “give us a skewed and inaccurate perception of our norms and values.”And they go on to say that “for a more accurate picture we would need to look at more intimate discussions carried on by the participants themselves, not by representatives” (244). And this is what is highlighted by Ewich and Silbey (1998), Matza (1961), and Schwendinger and Schwendinger (1985). Following are three examples of emerging transformative justice notions within a reformist remedial perspective.The first is more micro in orientation; the second, more meso; the third, more structural. Each can be critiqued, however, for not more fully incorporating the other two.16 Schehr’s (2000; see also Arrigo et al. 2005, 112–113) examination of a victim offender mediation program as applied to juveniles suggests an additional component: critical literacy. In other words, using the insights of critical pedagogy, he advocates that mediators should not remain neutral, but should attempt to provide the dynamics to both empower the clients as well as to create a milieu where marginality and disenfranchisement are relevant components of discussion. Thus a space is created within which mediation both deconstructs and reconstructs understandings of harm in the context of political, economic, and cultural institutions.17 Paulo Freire (1972, 1985) called this conscientization, a process by which the disempowered would develop a more critical consciousness that is more sensitive to micro-macro connections and the discourses which are their expressions.Thus,“by exposing youth to critical literacy as a component of restitution, the seeds of a transformative transpraxis could be planted” (Arrigo et al. 2005, 112).18 A recent example of a potential transformative justice program, one consistent with the reformist remedial style, that incorporates a middle level of intervention (meso level)—one between community and structure—was developed by Christine Parker (1999). Although her emphasis is in a more traditional restorative justice, it has implications in developing a transformative justice from the ground up. Her definition of justice is “those arrangements by which people can (successfully) make claims against individuals and institutions in order to advance shared ideals of social and political life” (49). Her principle is means-oriented more than ends-oriented; it deals with access and opportunity to make a claim and to be listened to in a meaningful way. She argues that in late modernity (post mid-1980s) legal disputes are increasingly centered in organizational contexts where power inequalities exist—that is, in schools, workplaces, families, governmental organizations, and community organizations.19 Parker’s criterion of justice revolves around maximizing freedom as nondomination (see also Braithwaite 2002, 127; Braithwaite and Pettit 1990).20

72

Social Justice

Her specific proposal is for developing access to justice plans that should be incorporated in all large organizations.These would require an organization to, first, in consultation with those most likely to be affected, come up with a common list of possible injustices; second, establish restorative justice programs to focus on these injustices; and, third, set up machinery that assures access to these forums. She also advocates that some type of external monitoring take place to see if previous years’ records of injustice have been improved. Increase in nondomination and increase in justice is indicative of an improved record. The model encourages the development of a multiplicity of decentralized restorative justice sites, with the state being an outside monitor rather than the forum for the initial discussion of harm. As Braithwaite explains, “access to justice becomes less something the state provides, more something the state regulates others to provide” (2002, 255).Where a particular organization is not making progress, where it continuously experiences cases of similar nature, or where citizens continuously seek civil and criminal remedies, the organization will undergo closer scrutiny and penalties may be established. The emphasis on decreasing domination as justice through access to justice plans could conceivably produce dramatic changes at various levels: persons, community, perspective, discourse, and structure. In short, it is a suggestion that promotes a transformative rather than a restorative justice.The ground-up approach provides the possibility of rethinking justice, moving away from desert-based and rights-based forms of justice, and decreasing the overall harms in existence, including those committed by the state in the name of reducing harm. A new discourse could emerge and in all likelihood attain a degree of stability that reflects the various practices of justice rendering in multiple sites. A sense of empowerment could also emerge, as people harmed, regardless of rank, see that they have an ability to make a claim, have it meaningfully engaged, and have more genuine resolutions. At the structural level, momentum could be built whereby we begin to deconstruct hierarchical work environments, begin to construct more fulfilling and less dominating forms, and become more willing to engage people’s unique needs. At a more macro level (structural), Roberto Unger’s False Necessity (1987; see also 1996) considers possible alternative structures in which new principles of justice would emerge. He calls his model superliberalism and an empowered democracy, and it incorporates economic and legal change as well as structural changes at the workplace. His core economic suggestion is to establish a rotating capital fund available to teams of workers for restricted use. The low interest collected in its use would support its administration and encourage otherwise neglected “risk-oriented or socially responsive investment” (34). Unger also recommends “role jumbling” and “role defiance” at the workplace (564). Job enrichment, for example, would come by way of the availability of diverse roles rather than overspecialization in one, particularly

Toward Transformative Justice

73

where the job requires fewer skills. In other words, specialized work roles are seen as antithetical to exploration, transcendence, growth, and creativity. According to Unger, we should institutionalize the maximal capabilities of experimentalism. He also advocates a deviationist doctrine. Since structures tend toward ossification, Unger believes there should be increased ability to criticize, with immunity, those very institutions that are the center of our lives and have huge potential powers of domination. Hence, he recommends destabilizing rights that protect their enactors.“The first and basic constructive principle is that the security of the individual should be established in ways that minimize both the immunity of institutional arrangement to challenge and conflict and the ease with which some individuals can reduce others to dependence” (513). In other words, not only should institutions be open to critique where each issue is genuinely allowed a forum for redress, but the person who does challenge should not be at risk (e.g., protection established for whistleblowers).This would lead to increased conflict but also to increased assurances of protection. Hence, four core rights are part of this package: first, immunity rights would protect the person’s challenge by providing zones of privacy; second, destabilizing rights would provide the right for people to challenge given social arrangements, whether at the workplace or outside of it; third, market rights would provide funds for teams of workers to initiate otherwise risky businesses; and, fourth, solidarity rights, which would initially be based on good faith loyalty or responsibility and then refined as various conflicts are resolved. Ostensibly, solidarity rights would undergo continuous review and at all times be subject to challenge and revision. Justice principles could also be based on these pragmatic responses. This model suggests inductive processes—for example, ground-up specifications of what constitutes justice rather than deductive logic (formal rationality), which imposes abstract and even standards downward. It is more pragmatically oriented. Perhaps Unger is also thinking in terms of abduction. Such thinkers as Peirce (1931) argue that actual processes entail both (see also Schum [1994] on abduction in discovery in law).21 Unger’s model argues foxr increased imaginary play, creativity, challenge, and assurances of nondomination, but at the same time it would increase the occasion for conflict. Conflict, however, in this model would be an opportunity to understand more genuinely the other as well as the self through the other.The individual would gain the “ability to entertain fantasies about possible self-expression or association and to live them out. Its goal is the strenuous enlargement of enacted possibility” (Unger 1987, 579). For Unger, “the citizen of the empowered democracy is the empowered individual. He is able to accept an expanded range of conflict and revision without feeling that it threatens intolerably his most vital material and spiritual interests.”

74

Social Justice

Unger also suggests that the impact would be a revised notion of community.There will be a shift away from the sense of community that is based on “the sharing of values and opinions and the exclusion of conflict,” to an acceptance of “heightened notions of vulnerability, within which people gain a chance to resolve more fully the conflict between . . . their needs for attachment and for participation in group life and their fear of the subjugation and depersonalization with which such engagement may threaten them” (562). Thus conflict is both a threat but also something with productive possibilities. Conflict under the conditions offered by Unger—the empowerment of individuals within a community—would necessarily take on a different character than current conflicts, which take place in a highly stratified and often disjointed social structure. Unger does not tell us how precisely these conflicts will be handled, but a transformative justice model, a reformist remedial model, seems quite compatible with his thoughts. He predicts greater occurrences of conflict but assumes their resolution without specifying the appropriate mechanism. He does suggest that alternative forms of justice would arise from an alternative empowered democracy.

Chapte r 6

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges to Developing Forms of Justice

Multiculturalism and globalism are realities of our current society. Whether one is actively engaged in these processes or not they affect our social world and therefore our understandings of justice and social justice. Multiculturalism can be understood as the coming together of a variety of cultures within a space and time. Distinctions in culture can be expressed through language, religion, cuisine, family structure, lifestyles, and attire.While multiple cultures have existed throughout history, the overlapping of cultures was previously less common.The development of mass transportation, transnational industries, the Internet, and the pressures of immigration have allowed for an unprecedented convergence of cultures. Like many new experiences, multiculturalism has created new challenges and opportunities within societies. Abu El-Haj (2002) warns of the usages of culture to reassert old racist notions in new ways. Her works specifically challenge our understanding of Muslim and Arab communities, but can be applied to many uses of the term “culture.” At this point it is important to know that while understandings of law and justice may be seated within cultural contexts, placing the blame for specific injustices upon a culture is problematic. As we will find through our examination of the literature, injustices are often imposed by social structures regardless of the language, religion, cuisine, or family structure of those inhabiting the structure. Globalism expresses itself in our understanding of our place on the planet. While as individuals we may identify our citizenship within national boundaries, few corporations are fully bound within national borders. Even nations themselves are more likely to express themselves globally through organizations such as the United Nations, the World Bank, the International Monetary Fund,World Trade Organization, the G8, and other organizations.1 The global character of capital (money invested for the purpose of profit) is especially 77

78

Social Justice

important to the understanding of globalism (see Aronowitz and Gautney 2003). Global capital and capitalism will be important to our considerations of the challenges to developing forms and ideas of social justice.

Globalism and Multiculturalism Globalism has been defined in a variety of ways in the literature. Miller (2001, 246) defines globalization as “the process by which national political boundaries are eroded in such a way that people’s life chances everywhere increasingly depend on the workings of a global market over which states have little control.” Burbach (2001, 21) talks about how the “global economy exercises a transcendental importance in our lives and societies.” Beck (2000, 20) sees globalization taking place when “borders become markedly less relevant to everyday behaviour in the various dimensions of economics, information, ecology, technology, cross-cultural conflict, and civil society.” His key dimensions include the economic, work organization, culture, civil society, ecology, and communications technology. And for Barlow (2002, 2), “globalism is the spread of a very wide range of ideas and practices, principally economic ones, beyond the boundaries of individual nations into the world arena.” Multiculturalism also is in need of definition. Miller (2001, 246, 252) defines it as “the process whereby a variety of groups within existing states— religious groups, ethnic groups, groups defined by gender or sexual orientation, and so on—increasingly assert their separate cultural identities and demand that those identities be given political recognition.”Thus multiculturalism concerns the growing recognition of diverse societies and cultures and diverse principles of justice. Globalism has also been explained in terms of a historical movement. For example, Burbach (2001) identifies four epochs.The first epoch (ca. 1492–1789) is marked by the appearance of capitalism and its spread from Europe.This can be equated with about the time of Columbus’s voyages to the Americas. The second epoch (ca. 1789–1900) occurred during the French Revolution and is connected with the rise of the bourgeoisie and the development of nationstates.The third epoch (1900–early 1970s) was a time of monopoly capitalism. Contemporary society, according to Burbach, marks the arrival of the fourth epoch. It is the epoch of globalization. Beck (1999, 1–2) provides another periodization. First modernity is “based on nation-state societies where social relations, networks and communities are essentially understood in a territorial sense.” During this period, in other words, people oriented themselves with national states.The second modernity arrived perhaps in the 1980s, and the previous notions of self-enclosed states became unglued (Beck 2000, 21). Competition, conflict, and power differences necessitate new relations. Borders become porous.The world is now a stage.

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges

79

Two additional aspects of globalization are important for further consideration: the Internet and a global risk society. Sometimes referred to as a “global information economy” and sometimes the “information age,” the epoch of globalization is also characterized by the spread of the Internet and consequently of values, practices, ways of being, attitudes, and understandings (Barlow 2002; Burbach 2001; Castells 2001; Aronowitz 2003).2 The economy and the Internet in fact now form a feedback loop, whereby each drives the other, and “the two symbiotically feed off each other” (Barlow 2002, 3; Burbach 2001, 51). Some of the new economic elite have been referred to as the new high-tech robber barons (Burbach 2001; see also Hardt and Negri 2002, 2004).The earlytwentieth-century robber barons in steel, automobile, oil, and chemical industries are increasingly supplanted by those in telecommunication, computers, online selling, and software. Struggles by those opposing various global conditions, whether Al Qaeda or Zapatistas, also have access to the advances provided through new technologies. The second aspect of globalization is the nature of risks (Beck 1992, 1999, 2000). Increasingly, hazards are having international affects.The nature of risk is such that it is becoming more and more incalculable: we cannot completely account for the possible hazardous effects of products we produce and their byproducts (1992, 22).These could be ecological, nuclear wastes and catastrophes, pollutants, or environmental damage. As we can see, many clearly argue that there are major problems with globalization.There are some, however, who argue for the benefits of globalization (Sen 2002, Barlow 2002).3 Supported components include the following: that it has been a vehicle for the dissemination of science, technology, and knowledge generally; that it encourages democratic practices worldwide; that yearnings of freedom have been provided a strong support; that discussions of what constitutes justice has taken on a global arena and hence sensitivity to multiculturalism has become more keen; that jobs have been created in otherwise poor countries, notwithstanding the often exploitive practices of some industries; that poverty has been somewhat abated because of the influx of foreign investments; that even antiglobalists are becoming global in their organization and denouncements. Alan Greenspan (2001), chairman of the U.S. Federal Reserve Board, said, “Globalization has been a powerful force acting to raise standards of living. More open economies have recorded the best growth performances; in contrast, countries with inward-oriented policies have done less well.” Certainly however, the antiglobalists would have a few words of difference. Others (Hardt and Negri 2000, 2004) indicate that globalization is two-faced: on the one hand, new hierarchies, divisions, and mechanisms of control are being produced; on the other, new opportunities for cross national contacts, discussions, and sharing of diverse peoples have developed, thus

80

Social Justice

potentially producing both an appreciation of difference and a new sense of a global community. Principle s of Distributive Social Justice Miller (2001) offers a comprehensive analysis of the three principles of social justice—need, desert, and equality—while contemplating the possibilities of these principles within current multicultural and global societies. He contends that globalization and multiculturalism require that we reexamine the principles of social justice and the means by which social justice might be achieved. According to Miller, social justice requires that everyone’s needs be met according to a common standard of need. In a multicultural global society, coming to a common agreement about what each needs and developing the institutions to meet those needs are complex tasks. The prospects for needs provision and desert distribution is problematic, according to Miller, because of individual notions of needs and deserts that may not agree with the common notion and the resulting pressure upon those individuals to seek their own needs and deserts. Miller describes current liberal democracies as balancing the social justice conflicts with state provisions for some needs, such as state-funded medical care, while allowing others to purchase medical services through the private market. While attending to the compromise for those at the upper end of needs and desert attainment in his discussion, little is provided in the way of critique of this arrangement which may infringe upon the needs of all in service to the deserts of the few. The medical market is a good example of such infringement in current society.Those with basic medical needs are often left wanting because of understaffed public hospitals.At the same time, those able to pay for private medical care have little trouble locating multiple specialists to attend to their needs (necessary medical attention) and/or deserts (elective medical services). Social justice also requires just deserts for individual effort.Assuring desert would require equal opportunity to the conditions necessary for success (quality education for example) and nondiscriminatory practices. Miller also argues that competition must remain so that those able to best supply others’ demands would be rewarded for such. He further argues that the effects of luck would need to be minimized to prevent the accumulation of benefits not based on effort or talent.While he admits that desert would lead to inequality, he suggests that these inequalities would be just and less severe than currently existing inequalities. Along with suggesting the justness of less extreme inequalities, Miller is pessimistic about the possibilities for equality within the global market. He argues that the declining nation-state and new primacy of international markets makes policy-oriented corrections to inequalities unlikely and further

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges

81

argues that interference in market-driven inequalities may infringe upon efficiencies (Miller 2001, 260). Miller includes equality before the law or equality as citizens, as required for social justice.Within a multicultural global society this principle is necessary to ensure that citizens recognize their membership in an inclusive community with a common goal of achieving social justice principles. He provides a critique of the notion that differences in culture lead to differences in values regarding justice. He finds that few such differences exist within multicultural societies (see Boekmann, Smith, and Huo 1997).While new immigrants may express some disparities in ideas, these are quickly assimilated as persons take on the ideas of their new existences. He also provides evidence that while there is agreement between men and women, rich and poor, regarding ideas of distribution according to merit, those on the lower end of the current stratification model (women and the poor) are less likely to see the current meritocracy as just or fair.This suggests that while ideas are shared between diverse groups, the realities of each do not match the other, thereby creating incongruence between ideas of justice and the realities experienced by those at the lower end of the stratification structure. Miller does propose that since commitment to a particular group plays such a large role in how the group defines justice for itself, and since it is less likely to see outsiders as privileged to also having access to this standard, the real challenge would be in developing new identities of citizenships that are inclusive rather than exclusive. Some have argued in the same direction and advocated a “global civic culture” (Barlow 2002, 16). The Internet has been offered as one of its promoters (Barlow 2002, 4, 6; see also Castells 2002). Miller concludes that defending the ideals set out in the principles of social justice should not fly in the face of the real social changes that encompass globalization and multiculturalism. Instead, he argues that we should reconsider our ideas of social justice and whether they are compatible with the new global realities. New Global Realitie s and the Principle s of Distributive Social Justice Much literature exists regarding the process of globalization and its impact on social justice. Less literature directly examines multiculturalism and justice. However, the globalization literature often subsumes or assumes multiculturalism within its examination.While the following is not an exhaustive review of the literature in these areas, it is a representative review that offers an understanding of the challenges inherent in our current global existence and ideas about creating social justice in this complex world. Watson (2002) described global capitalism as the immiseration of the working class on a global scale through profit seeking sped up by new

82

Social Justice

technologies no longer requiring place in the same way. Governmental and nongovernmental agencies have been effectively used by profit seekers to support the capitalist enterprise. This usage has been successful given neoliberal claims that there is no alternative to global capitalism and neoconservative claims that this aggressive form is progressive.Watson notes that neoliberal claims are false because labor can exist without capital but capital cannot exist without labor (38).The falsity of neoconservative claims of progress through globalization is apparent for the majority who have lost ground economically, but less apparent to the minority at the top of the economic structure who have profited greatly and retained political power. Ravallion (2003) offers an analysis of a variety of data that substantiate growing inequalities through globalization and explains the contradictory reports of decreases in poverty rates in some areas while many remain in abject poverty. Further, he shows how those rising above impoverishment are not gaining as much as they might in a more planned economy. Watson warns that post-Marxist ideas of localized capitalism are doomed to failure because equal power is not possible under capitalist hegemony. He claims instead that “capitalism is still the issue” (41). Globalization from below is offered as a way forward toward more just economic distribution, greater equality, and assurance of meeting basic human needs.This project, according to Watson, will require workers to overcome capitalism in order to plan and organize society in the interests of the majority. Lenin (1975) used the term “imperialism” to describe the sort of globalization present at the turn of the last century.While the terms differ, the injustices are quite similar. Lenin described the movement of capital across national borders as necessary to the continuing growth of profit.As Lenin clearly pointed out almost ninety years ago, the export of capital is not undertaken with the intent or outcome of raising the living standards of either the people in the exporting or importing countries, but exclusively for the purpose of increasing profits for investing capitalists. Similar to Watson (2002), Lenin (1975) indicated that what he described as imperialism was in fact capitalism, though in its declining phase. Justice will require the replacement of capitalism with an economic system organized in the interest of people rather than profit (socialism). This, according to Lenin, would be the cure for the economic injustices created by imperialism/capitalism. Martin (2003) examined the overlapping ideas of justice held by Marxists and liberation theologists. They include a recognition of global capitalism as the driving force of oppression and economic decline of the many and wealth accumulation among the few. Also overlapping are ideas that justice must include the meeting of basic human need and the prevention of destructive development. Martin also shows that Marxists and liberation theologists both include revolutionary action within the range of options for overcoming

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges

83

the violence and oppression imposed by capitalism. While neither group of thinkers/activists glorifies violence, each finds it an appropriate tool for overcoming the ravages of capitalism (Hardt and Negri 2000). Of specific concern to Martin is the need to respond to the impact of globalization on the peoples and lands of Latin America. His article not only compares Marxism and liberation theology, but also shows how these traditions can come to work together across their divergent views regarding religion. Religion is often aligned with culture and can impact upon the development of society. Martin’s work indicates that the forces of globalization have actually aligned those who sharply critique religion and those who find it a transformative force onto the same side of the anticapitalist battle. Ferrara (2003) offered an approach to human rights that he argues is not subject to the variety of complications inherent in globalization and the multicultural reality. He finds that in order to escape the unexamined objective connection (essentialization) of justice to moral precepts which may be appropriate for some populations/circumstances but not others, political understandings must be included.These political understandings must be encoded in law to assure equal rights. His judgment approach further suggests that justice should not be managed by those serving the status quo; is protective of human rights; and articulates the international order required by justice. Charlesworth (2000) considered the questions of culture and national sovereignty and found that neither needs to be a barrier to feminist internationalism. As she points out, the oppression of women (and others) has been and still is often defended as local or cultural practice not to be violated by outsiders. She, like Ferrara, calls for a political analysis of oppressive practices in order to uncover the interests involved in defending oppression.This analysis can lead not only to the recognition that oppression is often defended in order to protect economic or political benefits, but also to the uncovering of the realities of tradition and culture that are often masked by oppression and may inspire respect and trust within and between groups. The history of the United States and the values of those within its boundaries are instructive here. Is the United States a slave culture? Are those within its boundaries committed to the injustices of slavery? These questions may seem out of place currently; however, consider their place in history. Did slavery serve the citizenry of the United States? Or, was it a practice defended on national/state sovereignty grounds to protect the interests of a few southern plantation owners?4 Charlesworth (2000) particularly pointed out the need to understand the barriers to justice for women created by states and their legal positions. It is also important to consider these barriers and the possibilities of their deconstruction/ replacement for general social justice. In other words, globalization and multiculturalism bring both challenges and possibilities for social justice. If we find

84

Social Justice

a way to replace oppressive regimes with just international constructs, we may serve social justice in our struggles to deal with these challenges. Consider the struggles against slavery in the United States and the service to social justice inherent in both those struggles and their ultimate outcomes. Cahill (2003) examined globalization as it impacts the understanding of ethics and biotechnology. She wrote that given the global implications of disease and health, we must move beyond individualistic understandings of the world and accept justice as the ethical norm.As she explained, justice “requires equality, solidarity, and attention to the basic material and social needs of all peoples” (42). Cahill further asserted that the attainment of justice would require change to the current social and economic structures. Benatar (2001) offered a similar analysis of international economic apartheid. He suggested that a discussion of global justice has begun but must continue and must address the economic inequalities created and sustained by the current market system. Rao (1999) argued that justice cannot be achieved without equality.Within a global economy that intensifies inequalities within and between nations, he further argues, equality must become a cooperative and international project. As Rao noted, support for economic equality must be understood not only as self-interested but also as a social good that serves all.Through collective action, people become aware of this good and support the outcomes of justice and equality. According to Rao, we have not yet come to the time when international cooperation for justice and equality is eminent, but he also warns that we are beyond the time when inequality and injustice can be treated as national (rather than international) issues. Noël and Thérien’s (2002) research illustrated the link between local and global justice. In their analysis of European attitudes and policies they found that where poverty and inequality were low (such as Denmark) attitudes and policies toward international redistribution were positive and strong. At the same time, in nations such as France where poverty and inequality were higher, though not as problematic as in the United States, which was not included in the study, support for international redistribution was weaker. These authors conclude that first achieving justice at home achieves support for global justice most effectively. Meeting needs and supporting equality must be realized within nations first and then internationalized. Gledhill (2001) examined the “third way” for ideas addressing the injustices of increasing inequalities and poverty that have accompanied increasing globalization.While he is not supportive of either the neoliberal or neoconservative agendas, he is also critical of the third way. As he explains, this way is overly demanding of those experiencing declines in wages and standards of living, expecting that the least privileged give up any countermarket or illegal strategies for survival and instead commit more fully to the capitalist enterprise. At the same time, this way calls upon those gaining economic ground to become

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges

85

more concerned with the plights of those at the bottom and increase their civic responsibility. In other words, the structural programs associated with a global economy should be addressed through the individual acceptance by those at the bottom of the economic strata and the increased charity by those at the top of the economic strata. Gledhill does not accept the third way as the way forward or even a true alternative to neoliberalism.As he explains, this way fails to address the issue at the heart of the global economy, declining wages. He illustrates the decline in wages both in the United States, even in the high technology industry, and in Mexico, even in the industrial sector, and suggests that there is a way forward and it must address declining wages and working conditions. Korzeniewicz and Smith (2000) offer an optimistic view for the possibilities of social justice in Latin America. While these authors admit the problematic nature of reconciling global capitalism with social supports, they argue that nongovernmental organizations (NGOs) working within communities for progress maintain enough independence from supranational organizations (SNOs), which work outside of communities typically in service to global capitalism (the World Bank, for example). And they have developed appropriate relationships with political activists within labor unions and other organizations to push for increased attention to issues of poverty and inequality. Unlike Watson (2002), who rejects the assumption that capitalist markets are necessary to economic development, Korzeniewicz and Smith accept the neoliberal ideology of TINA (there is no alternative), suggesting that market-driven development can coexist with social development if those markets are held accountable by NGOs and activists concerned with educational opportunities, medical services, and other basic human needs.These authors suggest that there is a new understanding by SNOs that continually increasing impoverishment and inequalities threaten market economies and that these organizations could be influenced by NGOs, labor unions, and others to work toward social justice. Aiyer (2001) offers an analysis of neoliberalism in the Americas that includes consideration of militarization and criminalization as tools of democratization. In his article, he outlines the impact of neoliberal policies throughout the Americas highlighting the increases in inequalities and poverty throughout the continent. These increases in social injustice are, according to Aiyer, side effects of the increasing global nature of capitalism in the form of imperialism and are directly maintained by policy decisions within the United States that sway policy elsewhere. The privatization of formerly state institutions decreases employment, wages, and access to basic human needs, such as land, education, and healthcare. What remains firmly in the hands of the state are criminal justice and military functions. Aiyer argues that these functions are key to the program of neoliberalism in service to imperialism.As he asserts, swaying attention toward

86

Social Justice

issues of law and order, especially around the war on drugs, allows for increasingly strong responses from the state, which result in the criminalization of inner city youth and rebel groups alike.As the United States increases its prison population (in 2005 it was over two million), it isolates especially young minority men from political engagement and social interaction. U.S. policies also pressure trade nations to similarly ramp up their drug wars and imprison their own populations. The United States further utilizes its military force in the war on drugs and to stabilize low intensity conflicts. Low intensity conflicts allow for the continuing presence of the U.S. military and the ongoing funding of the military apparatus, which is highly profitable for military contractors. Yet U.S. interventions into these conflicts are unsuccessful in their expressed goals of reducing the drug trade and/or democratizing a region. Intervention into the conflicts of other nations also disallows local solutions to these conflicts. These operations negatively impact the poor in the regions of occupation and in the United States (through decreased funding, access to public sector jobs, and social support programs, and through escalation in criminalization/ imprisonment). Criminalization occurs through widening the net—that is, illegalizing more behaviors and increasing punishments for illegal behaviors— and isolating poor and working class communities from work and opportunities once supplied by the withering state. Chase (2003) argues for serious consideration among academics regarding the role of scholarship and teaching in the pursuit of social justice. He suggests that engagement in scholarship focusing on the needs of activists and communities is necessary. Further, he suggests that going beyond teaching critical thinking or teaching in a critical manner and training students to become activists and organizers will serve the needs of social justice. Given the attacks on public space for protests following September 11 (Marcuse 2002), the recent infringements on academic freedoms, and the vilification of activist scholars, Chase’s suggestions are both necessary and challenging. Michael Hardt and Antonio Negri’s Empire (2000) and its sequel, Multitude (2004), draw from revisionist Marxism, postmodernist analysis, informatization (dominance of services and information), and postcolonial theory, amongst others (see critiques in Passavant and Dean 2003).The authors indicate two faces of globalization: one face is about the global spread of divisions, hierarchies, and new methods of control; the other reflects new potentials created for cooperation, collaboration, diverse encounters, and dialogue. In short, “it provides the possibility that, while remaining different, we discover the commonality that enables us to communicate and act together” (Hardt and Negri 2004, xiii). The new global order is about empire, a sovereignty that has no boundaries, that has succeeded the notion of a nation-state. Empire is akin to the previous forms of monarchical and aristocratic powers, perhaps best represented

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges

87

in the Roman Empire (Hardt and Negri 2003, 109). Though nation-states continue to maintain a certain degree of control and regulation in economic, migration, legal, and cultural values, the ultimate authority is becoming ever more externally driven (110).The notion of a social contract, contractual justice, is mythology. Echoing Derrida, its foundations are based on a violent act (114). How, then, will justice emerge? Hardt and Negri offer the notion of the “multitude,” a term that can be differentiated from other ideas of the human being, such as the “masses,” “people,” and the “working class.”The multitude “is composed of innumerable internal differences that can never be reduced to a unity or a single identity— different cultures, races, ethnicities, genders, and sexual orientations; different forms of labor; different ways of living; different views of the world; and different desires” (xiv). And herein lies the challenge:“for a social multiplicity to manage to communicate and act in common while remaining internally different” (xiv). Here, too, lies the possibility of new forms of justice.The multitude is about continuous invention, experimentation, new forms of life, and hence it offers the possibilities of the people yet to come. According to Hardt and Negri, change comes by way of active resistance, direct confrontation, revolution.“In Empire, ethics, morality, and justice are cast into new dimensions” (Hardt and Negri 2000, 20). Conceptions of justice will be based on immeasurable factors rather than trying to bring everything under an equal measure, such as in formal equality.“Values will be determined only by humanity’s own continuous innovation and creation” (356).The courts of empire will gradually move away from adjudication and sentencing to an organ that will “dictate and sanction the interrelation among the moral order, the exercise of police action, and the mechanism legitimating imperial sovereignty” (38). It is this, too, that will be the object of the multitude’s struggles. Distributive and Retributive Justice in a Global Orde r The development of the notion of justice in a multicultural global order poses many challenges. We want to look at two specific approaches, the first focusing on distributive justice, the second on retributive justice. David Miller (2001) has offered us some of the key issues in terms of the possibilities of just principles developed from a needs, desert, and equality perspective. John Braithwaite (2002) has offered the idea of a global restorative justice program. David Miller: Desert, Need, and Equality in a Multicultural Global Society Miller’s (2001) conceptions of desert, need, and equality as principles of social justice are grounded in the understandings of people. Much of the literature deals with issues of need and equality.The issue of desert, however,

88

Social Justice

is not often explicitly considered in the global order. While it is clear that desert is a concept needing attention in our understanding of justice, the current levels of poverty and inequality throughout the world may be pushing this notion aside. Perhaps desert (like dessert) must be left for after the main concerns of need and inequality (the broccoli, if you will) are settled. It is not a lack of respect for the needs of desert to justice that this issue is set aside for the moment.We will, however, put our attention to need and equality in this summary. Need, as Miller (2001) points out, is a contested notion that changes from person to person or place to place.This does not, however, prevent a common definition or understanding. Poverty is commonly understood as an economic condition that does not allow one (or a family) to maintain basic human needs (food, clothing, healthcare, housing). Even within highly diverse multicultural settings, these things can be agreed upon.While the actual dollar amount below which a person (or family) must drop to be considered impoverished varies, the understanding is common and can be applied across place and time with varying numbers of dollars (or other currency). Meeting needs in service to social justice then would require that all persons/families have access to all goods necessary to human existence.A minimalist would argue that this revolves around basic service, health, education, and physiological needs. A maximalist would extend this to include quality of life issues. The current form of globalism as it is expressed in the globalization of capital, as much of the literature indicates, has reduced the ability of many in the world to meet their basic needs.As Gledhill (2001),Aiyer (2001), and others have shown, this is not due to global laziness or inability, but is due to the downward pressure on wages (among those lucky enough to find work) and the disappearance of the work of many. While global capitalism can be easily seen as counter to justice, escaping this reality is not nearly so easy. Let us for the moment separate the notions of globalism and capitalism (though one is the impetus for the other in the current system). Globalism in and of itself is not necessarily problematic. When we consider the exciting developments possible through global exchange, the notion of moving into nationalist isolation is unsettling if not impractical.The transportation systems made possible by and for the needs of global capital have also served to shrink our planet to a travelable and understandable size.The development and great expansion of the Internet has also made the world much smaller in time and space. The exchange of ideas, goods, scientific discoveries, and health remedies, among other positive global attainments, make globalism itself progressive and perhaps necessary for social justice. Globalization for the purpose of moving capital in the interest of profit, however, is quite different. It is this form of globalism that appears problematic and counter to social justice. It is not the provision of factory jobs to people

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges

89

in Mexico that is in and of itself problematic. It is the provision of those jobs with the understanding that profits must always rise (meaning that wages must fall) that sets injustice into place. Jobs in service to profit rather than in service to human need is the problem with global capitalism. Inequalities within and between nations have grown substantially in the past twenty years (Aiyer 2001). Globalism and multiculturalism in themselves have little to do with this reality. Market-oriented policies meant to ease the movement of capital and lessen state spending and intervention are, however, directly related to these growing inequalities.As the state reduces spending on social supports, those with the greatest need go with less, and those previously depending on the jobs serving the interests of the public become unemployed or take lower paying jobs. Similarly, goods and services once provided by the state (free quality education, for example) must now be purchased in the market, decreasing the living standards of those at the bottom further.At the same time, those who do not depend on wages but instead invest capital gain significant profits as both wages and taxes fall (Aiyer 2001). Equality as a principle of social justice is then endangered by global capitalism, but not necessarily by globalism or multiculturalism. Miller (2001) suggested that the state has a place in supporting the attainment of needs but also suggested that strategies for gaining social justice should not fly in the face of current globalization. However, current neoliberal policies call for reductions in state spending, and the institutions that oversee structural adjustment programs often require austerity measures that prevent assurances of meeting needs. His suggestions for attaining more equality (though not absolute equality) depend upon competition within the market to assure that those who perform best will receive their just deserts. He further contends that mitigating the impact of luck would assist in lessening current levels of inequality. Others have different ideas about meeting needs and supporting equality. Watson (2002) argued that capitalism is the enemy of equality and justice, and must therefore be overcome, as did Lenin (1975). Martin (2003) is optimistic about the alignments between divergent groups that seek to battle capitalism in service to justice. Ferrara (2003) and Charlesworth (2000) both contend that political understandings of justice, injustice, and cultural norms are required to find justice. Cahill (2003) and Benatar (2001) look to structural change as the means for attaining international justice. Rao (1999) and Noël and Thérien (2002) have shown that national and international equality and justice are connected and must both be addressed. Gledhill (2001) asserted that attention to wages and working conditions is primary to addressing human need, equality, and justice. Korzeniewicz and Smith (2000) call for unity between NGOs, labor unions, and others interested in social justice to sway the current agenda toward meeting human need and lessening inequalities. Aiyer (2001) suggests

90

Social Justice

a reassessment of democracy in the Americas, calling for more attention to the abusive tendencies of militarization and criminalization that develop out of neoliberal policies. Maskovisky (2001) calls for modes of empowerment for the poor so that they may free themselves and demand their own needs, while Lake (2002) suggests a return to state intervention. Marcuse (2002) calls for more attention to those in need and less attention to corporate interests. Chase (2003) suggests a new activist agenda for academics and their students. There are many ways forward. Social justice, however, requires that we move beyond our current state of global poverty and inequality. John Braithwaite: Globalization and Restorative Justice In another chapter we developed Braithwaite’s vision of restorative justice, which was more bottom-up; that is, following Parker (1999), it suggested that we decentralize justice practices.The government’s role would be a watchdog that assures decentralized programs are moving toward more empowerment, less domination, and more justice, especially for otherwise disenfranchised people. In Restorative Justice and Responsive Regulation (2002), Braithwaite also addresses global justice by using the same principles of restorative justice, with the inclusion that there should be a top-down component—preventive diplomacy and mechanisms for mediating and curtailing conflicts. He recognizes the potentials for the recently developed International Criminal Court of the United Nations but questions its efficacy, since it is in the same direction of our traditional criminal justice system that relies predominantly on a system of abstract rights and potentially is replete with all the problems associated with it (recall Weber’s concern with the “insoluble conflict”—the difference between formal and substantive outcomes).5 He is concerned with the scope of conflicts both international as well as national that claims hundreds of thousands of lives, hardly deserving of the label “low intensity conflict.” He does provide evidence for the usefulness of mediation in international conflicts. For example, Touval and Zartman (1985, 1989) cited eight cases in particular where mediation efforts led to agreements and peace; Nelson Mandela’s and Desmond Tutu’s (1999) restorative justice work in South Africa restored peace between black and white; and the truth and reconciliation committees in South Africa, El Salvador, Chile, and other countries is well in line with restorative justice principles. But many international mediation efforts have not produced acceptable results, and this is where Braithwaite’s work on global justice sheds light. Calling his global restorative justice “responsive international peacemaking,” Braithwaite suggests a pyramid that could be a guide. He refers to it as “A Responsive Regulatory Pyramid of International Diplomacy” (Braithwaite 2002, 195). The first priority in dealing with conflicts, located at the base of

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challenges

91

his pyramid, is some form of restorative justice. If that fails, we move up the pyramid by employing international powers and the United Nations to persuade the disputants to engage in peacemaking. If that fails, then a resolution by the Security Council of the United Nations is in order.6 If that fails, then sanctions are imposed. Shaming, as was the case with Braithwaite’s original model, is also part of this package. If that fails, then military action by the United Nations is in order to persuade the disputants to return to the tables and negotiate. Braithwaite has indicated that because of the United Nation’s unwillingness to follow through on these steps, we continue to have long, drawn-out conflicts, with hundreds of thousands of people being injured, crippled, killed, faced with health crises, and starved. We cannot stay idle while neighboring states slaughter hundreds of thousands of people. Without any movement by the disputants, it is the global community that must immediately and decisively intervene. Braithwaite then develops his bottom-up approach to restorative justice in the global order. He argues for a more pragmatic form of justice.The international community, the growing global order, must be quick to insist warring factions attempt genuine restorative justice toward peacemaking. Rather than necessarily seeking scapegoats for prosecution, the international community can push versions of the truth and reconciliation committees. Here, much like restorative justice programs that were envisioned for more garden variety crimes, Braithwaite sees a healing process that is essential to global peacemaking. Forgiveness is an essential part of this package (203). Of course, the issue of a growing world risk-society as envisioned by Beck (1992, 1999, 2000) sees other forms of international harms—including ecological, environmental, and pollution—that also need to be addressed.According to Beck, the long-range nature of many of these developing risks are incalculable.When damage does occurs, we enter inevitable conflict as to whom is at fault.7 Restorative justice would provide a forum for these discussions and some resolutions. Braithwaite does acknowledge that critical components of his initially conceived restorative justice program, interdependence and community, are also at the center of developing global restorative justice. But he does see with globalism that more interdependence is taking place as countries increasingly find themselves in essential relations with others. Similarly, with the idea of community. More and more, we are developing into an international community. Braithwaite, therefore, is optimistic, for these are two key elements that come into play when some shaming must be directed at unacceptable behaviors of some states or warring states. Thus emerging, in his view, is a global civil society, and thus an inevitably receptive one for the use of restorative justice as well as shaming. But where shaming is initially inflicted, states must

92

Social Justice

also follow with reintegration into the global civil community. The occasion for resolution could also be time for rejoicing the solidified bonds of solidarity that are the outcomes. In short, Braithwaite’s suggestion for global justice is to create a space, be it at a more local level or at an international level, in which alternatives can be engaged.8 Justice, in a multicultural global order, can revolve around discussion, forgiveness, and healing. Using primarily force only escalates its call and use. Restorative justice, for Braithwaite, is a pragmatic answer to growing and inevitable conflicts in a global order.

Chapte r 7

Environmental and Ecological Justice

Environmental and ecological concerns are separate yet closely related justice themes. Low and Gleeson (1998, 2) describe these related themes as “two aspects of the same relationship” and suggest that these aspects are “the justice of the distribution of environments among peoples, and the justice of the relationship between humans and the rest of the natural world.” Taylor (2000, 42) has even envisioned an “environmental justice paradigm” that would “link environment and race, class, gender and social justice concerns.” Some have been even more explicit about making the connections. Middleton and O’Keefe (2001, 16, 100), for example, argue that we must deal not only with symptoms (uneven impact of environmental hazards), but also with the causes—that is, with social injustice (see Agyeman, Bullard, and Evans 2003; Haughton 1999). Because the relationship between people and the natural world is defined and affected by the distribution of environments among them, and the distribution of environments between people is defined and affected by the relationship between people and the planet, this is in fact the same relationship. In this chapter we will accept this description and, except where explicitly separated, refer to environmental/ecological justice as the same justice relationship. In order to understand the complexities of the idea of environmental/ ecological justices, it is important to take a look at a selection of the literature that continues to inform debates around our understandings. Halsey (2004) offers an instructive critique of the criminological discourse concerning environmental and ecological justice. The general oversight of this area of study by criminologists is among his concerns; however, he attends mainly to the conceptualization of environmental justice within criminology. Of particular concern to Halsey is the binary nature of much of the debate, which places two opposing forces at odds with each other without consideration for other more complex sets of interests. For example, much of the literature contrasts the interest of capitalism and humanity or capitalism and nature. While this 93

94

Social Justice

understanding offers a direct sense of how to categorize and judge interests, it may actually limit our understanding of environmental justice. Halsey argues for a need to decategorize our perspectives and the discourse around our understandings of environmental justice.The very questions of the meaning of the terms and notions of nature and human nature are in need of serious and multiple considerations. Halsey suggests the path offered by Henry and Milovanovic (1996) in their conception of harm, which does not rely upon ideas of human nature or a universal subject.1 This conception of harm instead allows for a fluid understanding of harm as it shifts across time and place and is understood as an expression of power rather than a particular behavior. Expressions of power that induce or inhibit can be understood as harmful, according to Henry and Milovanovic.This conception opens our understanding of harm to include the silencing of those wishing to express their own desires. Allowing these expressions may in fact promote justice for the expressers and/or others. Seis (2001) offers an instructive example of both the usefulness and limitations of the sort of binary analysis Halsey (2004) critiques. Seis illustrates the conflict inherent between capitalism and the environment and underscores the importance of movements against environmental degradation across the globe. Certainly Seis is correct in his assertions that questions of environmental justice are political and in dire need of redress. His conclusions that social movements are appropriate in addressing environmental justice concerns in a political manner are also on target. Left unexamined, however, are some of the deeper questions regarding nature, harm, and humanity. This sort of critique may seem overly academic; however, consider the work of Najam and Robins (2001), which illustrates the dangers of leaving these questions unexamined.These two authors set out to explain the crises of the 1999 World Trade Organization (WTO) meeting in Seattle, which was met with mass protests outside the meeting and refusals by poorer nations of the South to accept the limits offered by the wealthier nations of the North. The article is useful in its assertions regarding the abilities of nations of the North to attempt to impose environmental agendas in their own interests upon the nations of the South and, failing this, to vilify the Southern nations as anti-environmental. Najam and Robins provide an example of either-or thinking while imposing the same upon their own analysis. It was in the interest and within the rights of the Southern nations to resist the imposition of environmental standards by other nations. It does not, however, follow that such resistance suggests an anti-environmental stance. Najam and Robins are clear on this. However, they are less clear concerning the limits imposed in their recommendations to the South.The authors illustrate a perception (not their own) of the South as opting out of the environmental movement through resistance to the WTO. The move forward

Environmental and Ecological Justice

95

suggested by the authors is to opt back in through a balance of sustainable development and sustainable trade.While the analysis of options is not entirely false, it is limited to and accepting of market-driven notions of environmental justice. A broader understanding of the harms done to the South, both environmentally and economically, through the impositions of the powers of the market and those who espouse its centrality, would offer a more complete understanding of environmental justice for both the South and the North. Agyeman and Evans offer a glimpse at the possibilities for future discourse that could open analyses and options for environmental justice. They argue that in Britain and less so in the United States linkages between social justice and environmental justice have informed and elevated the discourse of these movements in such a way that progress on both is possible. The authors are also concerned with the ability of the movements to frame understandings, ideas, and values appropriately for such progress (Agyeman and Evans 2004, 163).These links and discourses hold hope for the inclusion of those silenced by the binary nature of the current discourse, which is most often limited to a few voices speaking for market interests and a few voices speaking for the interests of others who often have no voice in developing these interest claims. Buckingham (2004) explicitly offers hope through the radical edge of the ecofeminist movement (see also Kheel 1995; Mies and Shiva 1993;Warren and Erkal 1997). As Buckingham explains, it is through this edge of the movement that women, minorities, and other excluded groups are able to influence not only the movements themselves, but also larger politics in general. Because the poor, women, and other minorities are excluded from the mainstream political discourse, it is through social movements that their voices are heard.2 Thus it is when the harm of silence to these voices is overcome that movement toward more just environmental policies necessarily informed by the newly empowered is possible. Also finding hope for a nonbinary and inclusive discourse around issues of environmental justice is Schlosberg (2004). He points to activists engaged in what he terms critical pluralism as showing the way for inclusion of varieties of identities, interests, and voices. This inclusion is necessary to not only do justice for those involved, but to ensure that the debate includes the multitude of interests. It should be clear from the devastation of rain forests that silencing the voices that best understand the importance of these ecosystems was an injustice to these people and to the planet.3 The calls to include disempowered voices is not merely a gesture of inclusion of these individuals (although this is reason enough to listen). On a larger scale, the summons allow for the inclusion of valuable information not available from other sources. A considerable amount of literature is beginning to develop around the idea of sustainable development (for an especially insightful anthology, see Agyeman, Bullard, and Evans [2003]). Increasingly it has become clear that to

96

Social Justice

talk of environmental justice is also to talk about social justice—that is, issues of fairness and quality of life are interconnected. Middleton and O’Keefe (2001, 100) have said “sustainability can mean nothing unless development is socially just.” Perhaps the clearest definition of a just sustainable development is “to ensure a better quality of life for all, now, and into the future, in a just and equitable manner, while living within the limits of supporting ecosystems” (Agyeman, Bullard, and Evans 2000, 2).4 In this direction, there has been some movement in advocating environmental rights (Adeola 2000; Agyeman, Bullard, and Evans 2003; Lipietz 1996; McLaren 2003).The just sustainabilities paradigm is especially concerned with the disproportional impact on the poor. They are at greater risk of experiencing environmental bads. Thus, for example, there is outright environmental racism, or “eco-apartheid” (Rees and Westra 2003, 100; see also Cole and Foster 2001). There are, however, authors who have argued that connecting environmental justice with social justice has to be carefully thought through. For Dobson, one set of key questions to answer is the following: What is to be sustained? Critical natural capital? Biodiversity? The value of objects that naturally appear? He adds another set of questions: What should the principle of distribution be? Need? Desert? Entitlement? (Dobson 2003, 89–90). In other words, is distribution according to need, desert, and entitlement compatible with environmental sustainability? If we take the first set of three questions and multiply them by the second set of three questions, there are nine specific questions to address in specifying more precisely what is meant by “just sustainability” (90, 94–95). Mille r’s Principle s and Environme ntal/Ecolog ical Justice Hobson (2004) argues that environmental justice cannot be separated from social justice. The environment is where the social exists and is the provider of the raw materials necessary to human (and other) life. Social justice would then seem to depend upon environmental justice.This is a question of distributive justice; namely, the issue of unequal distribution of environmental toxic substances and their effects (see Bullard 1997; Cole and Foster 2001).A social justice would include disparate outcomes, as they are related to gender, race, class, sexual preference, and intersections. Miller’s principles of social justice include need, desert, and equality. Applying these principles to the environment/ecology offers clarity for the purpose of sharing an understanding but also brings challenges.The following principles are among many important ideas and concepts currently contested. Environmental/Ecological Need What an individual and a society need in the form of environment/ecology may differ from place to place, time to time, and group/individual to

Environmental and Ecological Justice

97

group/individual. As with economic need (the poverty line), however, we are often able to agree upon definitions of need that can be applied across a group within a given time. Environmental/ecological needs might include such basics as clean water and air.The definition of “clean” would no doubt be contested, with interest groups on each side vying for lesser and stricter standards. While those profiting from polluting industries have an interest in greater tolerance of pollutants, others have an interest in lesser tolerance.What is clear is that somewhere between pristinely clean air and water and intolerable toxicity is the accepted standard. Setting that standard comes down to not only the environmental sciences but also the political influences at play. While the scientific standards for clean air and water can be agreed upon within the scientific communities, information regarding these standards and the criterion by which they are set must be available to the public.The mystification of standards allows for political manipulation from either side of the spectrum and leaves most citizens with little ability to judge proposed standards within a political or community setting.The history of tobacco is instructive to this argument. It was common in the 1950s to find tobacco advertisement in all forms of media extolling the virtues of cigarette smoking. Over fifty years of public health campaigns and increased regulation has affected the public’s perception of cigarette smoking but has certainly not ended the use of this carcinogenic product. Some would argue that continued smoking by older persons and new smoking by younger persons is an individual choice made with a fully informed understanding of the health consequences. Others find that advertising campaigns and continued denial by corporate interests of liability for cancer cases are problematic within the informing process. Defining the needs of environmental/ecological justice is necessarily a complex process.The scientific process may be fairly straightforward and simple; however, the social/political process is neither.The scientific community must be allowed to independently set healthy standards based on scientific evidence alone without the influence of powerful granting bodies or other interests.5 Guaranteeing the independence of this process could prove a challenge in itself. Assuming this challenge is met, once the scientific community establishes appropriate health standards, the public must be informed in an unbiased fashion of what these standards are and how they were decided. Once the public is informed of the standards, any variance from healthy standards may then be judged and responses developed. Need is also related to environmental/ecological justice beyond air, water, and other basic needs. Foreman (1998) suggests that communities must understand the costs of environmental regulations as well as the benefits. His text suggests that trade-offs must be balanced in making decisions regarding regulations and other legal restrictions on environmental usage. These notions of trade-offs have in fact been institutionalized in policies that allow one industry/nation

98

Social Justice

to purchase pollution quotas from other less polluting industries/ nations.This notion of balance and trading is currently utilized by industries that purposefully decide upon non-environmentally friendly and/or illegal production, with the understanding that any fines/liabilities imposed will be less costly than the potential losses in profits. If, however, a community, nation, or industry is in desperate need of the item being traded (employment, funding, trade credits, profits), can a fair agreement regarding trade-offs for environmental/ecological damage be reached? Can persons, nations, or institutions with unmet needs of other necessities of existence be responsible to make a fair trade for their environment/ecology? If not, then the meeting of all other needs must preclude any attempts to trade or balance environmental/ecological standards. Once individuals, communities, groups, and nations are fully informed and educated about the standards and criterion for healthy environments and ecological systems, and these persons/groups are without need for any necessities of life, a discourse regarding appropriate standards can begin. Prior to these conditions, any such discourse is bound to be fraught with misunderstandings and manipulations. Environmental/Ecological Deserts The desert of environmental/ecological justice is closely bound with need. Because all humans (as well as animals and the planet itself ) need a healthy and sustained environment and ecology, we all also deserve it. Do some deserve more health than others? Well, perhaps. Cigarette smoking may prove instructive here as well. If individuals with clear and understandable evidence of the carcinogenic properties of cigarettes choose to smoke despite this risk, are they deserving of clean air while smoking? Is it possible to ingest cigarette smoke and clean air at the same time? What about the cohabitants of smokers? Do they “deserve” clean air? Adult cohabitants might have the choice of finding other housing, but what about the children of smokers? Are the children of smokers more or less deserving of clean air than those of nonsmokers? Individual and familial trades against clean air are difficult. Social and institutional trades are even more complex. Polluting industries have historically hidden their polluting behaviors and the impact of these behaviors on the surrounding communities, workers, and the planet.6 If, however, complete information regarding the pollution and its impact upon communities, workers, and the planet were fully disclosed, how might agreement come about regarding the need for that pollution and who would deserve the pollution? Would the workers who need their jobs to maintain a standard of living deserve the effects of the pollution? Would the surrounding community, which might include workers from the industry and others, deserve pollution of their environment because they accommodate the industry in their neighborhood? Would the stockholders

Environmental and Ecological Justice

99

and/or company owners deserve pollution in proportion to their profit? How do we measure the deserts of the earth, water, plants, animals, and air? Preston (2004) offers some insight into this line of questioning. Although he is mainly concerned with reasonability and the limits of reason on environmental rights, he examines some extremes to make his point. He chose to examine radical vegetarian concerns for the health of animals. Do animals deserve protection in an environmentally just world?7 If, as some vegetarians claim, meat is murder, then perhaps they do. But, as Preston (2004) points out, claims to justice must be reasonable and judged so by the citizenry.8 Following our discussion of environmental need, then, it would be up to an informed citizenry to decide whether animals should be protected from inhumane factory farm conditions and/or slaughter. If we consider smokers and vegetarians, we can see that choices on each end of the health spectrum are left to individuals when it comes to individual consumption. However, decisions about the impact of individual choices on the social condition have created new protections for nonsmokers, such as nonsmoking businesses and workplaces. Given enough time and evidence of the desert of justice for animals, meat may eventually be defined as murder by a reasonable public.The current understanding of the relationship between cattle and humans, however, leaves us in a meat-is-dinner state of affairs. Desert, then, like need, must be decided upon by an informed public in a democratic and reasonable fashion. These decisions must necessarily follow and not preclude the discourse and decisions regarding environmental need. Environmental/Ecological Equality Equal access to a healthy environment is sorely lacking.Therefore, developing ideas about what this sort of equality would entail are important for moving beyond the current state of inequality and injustice. Equal treatment of the environment/ecology brings difficult questions regarding the human relationship to our natural environment. How do we assess equal treatment of plants, animals, air, earth, and water? If we are to abide by the justice principles outlined by Miller (1999), we must give serious consideration to the notion of equal environmental justice. Precluding equality, however, would necessarily be assessments of need and desert. We must know and be fully informed of the environmental standards needed for healthy human life and agree upon the deserts of persons and institutions before setting about to assure equal access. Once the needs and deserts have been established, policies and monitoring programs would have to be required to assure that environmental goods and burdens are equally distributed.Torres’s (2005) account of the movement to demilitarize Vieques, Puerto Rico, is instructive here. Some areas were used as bombing ranges by the U.S. military, and many hazards have been left. As

100

Social Justice

Torres notes, the movement against the environmental degradation of Vieques was strengthened with the call for access to a healthy environment.The unequal burden carried by the people of Vieques was evidenced by increased health risks. Educating concerned persons about these risks assisted in forcing the military out of Vieques. To assure that these or other burdens are not again inflicted upon Vieques, however, there must be assurances that the government will not discriminate against the island in its decisions regarding military and other polluting activities, and an international monitoring body must remain vigilant in protecting this area. Commitments to nondiscrimination and vigilant oversight would be necessary in assuring equal treatment of people and places. Because of historical inequalities, discrimination, and a lack of oversight, attaining equality is necessary before establishing equal environmental protection. Social Justice, Disparate Impact, and Two Fallacies Studies that show disparate impact—meaning certain groups are more likely to be adversely affected—have often been answered by two main ideologies (Cole and Foster 2001). The first ideology is that the very lifestyle choices of racial minorities are such that they choose to live near waste sites. But this does not explain why they do, only that they are likely to do so. It does not answer why poor African Americans or Latinos are segregated in cities and become recipients of various pollutants, or why farm workers are often poor and Latino.This ideology merely blames the victim and naturalizes disparate impacts; it leaves structural issues removed from discussion. The second related ideology is “market dynamics.” The argument goes like this: people are choosing to live in neighborhoods with toxic dump sites because they are rational economic calculators. Thus, they knew in advance the problems they would incur. However, this once again downplays structural choices available and elevates capitalist market ethos to a self-explanatory ideology. It hides racial discriminatory practices under the name of choice. It says nothing about how choice is narrowed for certain segments of the population. It says nothing of housing discrimination, redlining mortgage practices, and rental discrimination. It says, in short, nothing about the very legitimacy of market forces, whether they are just or not. And it allows a form of distributive justice that is seemingly self-explanatory and legitimate. Social Justice, Disparate Impact, and Intent A second narrative that sustains disparate impact, imbedded in law, can be traced to the notion of intent. Since the U.S. Supreme Court case Washington v. Davis (1976), in order to construe “race discrimination” one needs to show individual intent.The focus is on the bad apple. In the 1991 federal court case R.I.S.E., Inc. v. Kay (placing a landfill in a dominantly African American

Environmental and Ecological Justice

101

community), the justices stated “the Equal Protection Clause does not impose an affirmative duty to equalize the impact of official decisions on different racial groups.” This clause, it was argued, “merely prohibits government officials from intentionally discriminating on the basis of race” (Cole and Foster 2001, 64, 126–129). According to Cole and Foster (2001, 65), to begin to develop a social justice view on environmental issues we need an approach that “(1) retains a structural view of economic and social forces as they influence discriminatory outcomes, (2) isolates the dynamics within environmental decision-making processes that further contribute to such outcomes, and (3) normatively evaluates social forces and environmental decision-making processes which contribute to disparities in environmental hazards distribution.” Political Biase s in Environme ntal Justice De bate s Most, Sengupta, and Burgener (2004) examine the complexities and outcome differences associated with methodological choices. As they show, new complex technologies and software utilized by environmental researchers concerned with disparate impacts on minority populations lend an aura of authority that can veil poor research design. Beyond research design, conflicts in scientific agendas are also of concern. Fuller (2004) reflects upon the controversy surrounding a best-selling text by Bjørn Lomborg (2001) that contends environmental problems are regularly overstated by environmental scientists. While Fuller does not dispute Lomborg’s claims, he is concerned with the process by which scientific claims are reviewed for ethical rigor. Because of the competing groups aligned on each side of the environmental debate, ethics within environmental science appear particularly consequential. Claims made within the environmental literature often extend beyond the scientific to include not only the political but also the moral judgments of the author. Political biases are inherent in justice debates. Participants come to an issue with underlying philosophies of right and wrong, justice and injustice, whether they realize it or not, and their writing, including their subject and method of choice, is informed by these philosophies. Moral biases, however, are often less clear and not supported by a philosophical base. Donohoe (2003), for example, writes of an impending Malthusian disaster. He argues that our current tenuous state was created by several conditions, including overpopulation and overconsumption. He attends briefly to overpopulation as especially problematic within Africa, Asia, and Latin America. He also notes that the maldistribution of wealth is problematic and that it is the wealthy in the United States and not the U.S. population in general that is responsible for overconsumption. Donohoe is at once political and moralistic concerning the environmental condition. His concerns for overpopulation are left unexamined, while other

102

Social Justice

concerns are clearly supported by data and a transparent philosophy of equality and justice. Population growth in Africa, Asia, and Latin America are not necessarily problematic unless one has taken a moral stance against all population growth. A political argument for or against population growth necessitates a philosophical base informed with data to support the argument. To merely claim that increasing populations on some parts of the globe, especially when the areas identified as problematic are non-white, is neither useful nor appropriate in a scholarly debate. Even the more complex arguments relying on the interactions of population growth, affluence, and technology are problematic. While increased consumption is more taxing on the environment, it is not necessarily so, but is so because of the current modes of producing, distributing, and marketing consumables. Further, all persons located in high consumption areas are not necessarily overconsuming and in fact are at times impoverished. Fuller (2004) notes that the debate regarding sustainability and population growth is contentious. This debate does not necessarily require a far left and far right political divide. One may be on the left and find that it is necessary to allow persons throughout the globe to decide their own reproductive futures, even if this means population growth.This finding would be informed with a philosophical base accepting that meeting human need is primary for environmental justice. One may also be on the left and find that restricting birth rates is necessary to protect the environment.This finding is informed by a philosophical base that accepts the environment as primary and human need as secondary. When examining the environmental literature, as with any other literature, the reader must attend to the claims made and the data offered to support those claims. Further, readers must be aware of their own philosophical foundation and those underlying the consumed literature. Otherwise, the literature can appear quite contradictory and confusing. Once readers are aware of the methods, politics, and moral stances that inform the literature, however, they are able to disentangle the contradictions and take from the literature the knowledge that is sought.This knowledge is then useful in informing one’s own philosophies toward environmental issues and can assist in incorporating an understanding of environmental justice with other social justice issues and ideas. Findings of Environme ntal/Ecolog ical (In)Justice Evans and Marcynyscyn (2004) found that low-income children in upstate New York were susceptible to bad health outcomes because of their exposure to poor environments. Indicators for environmental risks for these researchers included crowding, poor housing quality, and noise. For many, this finding would suggest a social condition in need of address. Foreman (1998),

Environmental and Ecological Justice

103

on the other hand, seemingly rejects these concerns as nonsocial. He argues that such housing conditions are not a social concern but a private familial/ individual concern not rising to the level of a social or environmental justice issue.9 Hill (2001) is also concerned with quality of housing and environmental justice.When it was discovered that home sites in Ciudad Juarez, Mexico, were polluted and unsafe for habitation, the landowners were given incomplete and contradictory information regarding the safety of their lands. Because no reparations were forthcoming and the landowners could not afford to leave their homes, they chose to not only stay but also guard the remaining lands around them. Because of insecurities in housing, the investments already made in the area by these mostly poor citizens, and the manipulations by local politicians, those who had been sold plots of land in the landfill, carefully guarded these plots rather than organizing to demand reparations and relocation. This took the pressure off the local government, which instead of correcting this problem successfully used an environmental catastrophe to their own advantage, placing the responsibility for the polluted land back on the owners (i.e., blaming the victim). Housing is a basic human need that would surely be included in any social justice scheme of need. Finding and keeping safe affordable housing is often problematic for those isolated in poor inner-city communities and those isolated in poor rural communities. Evans and Marcynyscyn (2004) and Hill (2001) note the economic status of the subjects of their studies of housing as increasing their chances for suffering negative environmental impact. However, as Mills (2001) notes, race is the primary indicator of the placement of toxic waste sites (see also Been 1995; Cole and Foster 2001). Black communities are more likely than any other to be burdened with the wastes of others. Housing and environmental justice, then, are linked to both economic and racial inequalities.These injustices regarding equal access to safe housing are typically located within the borders of a nation. However, many environmental justice issues are borderless. Gbadegesin (2001) examines the impact of global waste dumping and the exploration activities of global corporations on the Niger Delta region. He reports that the dumping of toxic (including nuclear) wastes on the African continent by non-African nations is not at all uncommon and results in what he terms “toxic terrorism” for its impact on the health and well-being of the African populations. Non-African oil corporations also utilize the African continent for exploration purposes and fail to abide by environmental standards, leaving local populations to deal with the pollution without even the economic benefits ( jobs, for example) that might come from exploration by locally owned companies. While racism and economic injustices within nations can lead to great local injustices, these injustices exported on a global scale create global injustices.

104

Social Justice

Not only are environmental and health damages created, also endangered are local control, governmental protections, and democratic discourse. The North American Free Trade Agreement (NAFTA) has greatly affected the global economy and has within it legislation that has already and will continue to impact upon the understanding of environmental justice. Chapter 11 is a provision within the NAFTA agreement that frees corporate interests residing in the included nations from the environmental legislation of other included nations (Public Citizen and Friends of the Earth 2001). The basic premise of this portion of the NAFTA agreement is that nations should not be allowed to impede the profits of nonresident corporations through environmental regulations. Nations are allowed to make and impose regulations, but at a cost. If the local nation finds that these costs are too high, environmental regulations and the needs of local citizens may be sacrificed. These sorts of decisions occur within and without the NAFTA signing nations. Randeria (2003) explains that while globalization has an impact upon the relationship between the state and its citizens, that relationship is complex and often leaves citizens unprotected in unexpected ways. “Glocalization” is the term she uses to express the impact of globalization on local legal structures. The state of India is used as an example, but any nation is susceptible to the same pressures.When international pressures build upon a nation-state, that state often makes decisions not in the interest of the local citizens or in accordance with local law, but instead in the interest of global markets, investors, and institutions.The nation-state is not entirely irrelevant, but in fact, as in the case of the Narmada dam project in India, may choose to continue projects even after local uprisings have forced abandonment by the World Bank or other powerful institutions.10 The nation-state, as in the case of India, may then seek other investors for these damaging projects regardless of citizen need. Issues of globalized environmental harms infringe upon the natural environment and upon the created social structures such as local law. Within and without these local legal structures are often indigenous communities. In the United States, Indians have been spatially separated and legally separated from other citizens.This separation has created multiple injustices that we will not address here.What is of concern here are the appeals of indigenous peoples for not only environmental justice but also their own identities and futures. Sylvain (2002) offers an analysis of the understanding and usages of indigenism, which both promote protection of and violate the environmental needs of the groups thus identified. Of particular concern to the work is the San identity of indigenous people of southern Africa.While this identity imposes particular ethnic and cultural understandings, it also implies the necessity for protecting the land and water used by this group.At the same time indigenous identities (as imposed and/or claimed) have the effect of ignoring the complex history of this and other indigenous groups. As those labeled as keepers of

Environmental and Ecological Justice

105

indigenous culture seek social and economic justice, they must walk a fine line of remaining indigenous to maintain some protections while seeking their own paths to the future. As Sylvain (2002) explains, we must remain ever vigilant to understanding the imposed and generated identities of indigenous people while allowing these groups to make their own way without either unnecessary intrusion or paternalistic protections. Environme ntal Protection Age ncie s: Unite d State s, Unite d Nations With environmental hazards or potential hazards crossing boundaries—acid rain, green house effects, global warming, contamination of fresh water supplies, deforestation, and unestablished consequences of genetically modified foods— the search for social justice is taking on a global significance.Witness organizations are developing: the United Nations Environment Program, the Earth Observation Summit (2002), the Global Earth Observation System of Systems (GEOSS) ten-year plan, the U.S. EPA agency’s global warming initiative, and the Kyoto Protocol, among many others, attests to the new concerns for global environmental justice.11 Along with these initiatives are concerns with how best to deal with issues of retributive justice, particularly when dealing with transnational corporations (see Kalas 2001). Emerging are innovative ideas as to how to respond to national and international polluters. For example, the so-called internationally based Kyoto Protocol was established in 1997 as a method for dealing with greenhouse gases. The mechanism for diminishing adverse gases revolves around marketbased policies concerning credits that can be traded as commodities (see Evans 2004). An industry is provided a certain limit on emissions but can develop credits if it falls under the limit, which can be traded, sold, or saved. This is referred to as emissions trading. This approach has been used since the early 1980s in the United States with arguably some success in reducing pollution. The U.S. Environmental Protection Agency has also advocated conflict regulation (alternative dispute settlements) in responding to transgressors of environmental laws.12 Many authors, beginning from the early 1990s, however, question whether transnational corporations can adequately meet the challenge without a new vista. Recently, the call has been for the establishment of environmental rights (Kalas 2001, 15) or to some international right to a healthy environment. According to Lee (2000, 16), “the recognition of the right to a healthy environment is the first step toward providing environmental justice to many individuals harmed by the tortuous and sometimes criminal conduct of large multinational corporations.” He suggested the establishment of an International Environmental Court, which would create criteria for the assessment of risks, how to manage risk, and a scientific body to deal with technical points.

106

Social Justice

Given an acceptance to move ahead with the notion of an internationally recognized right to a healthy environment, many issues of justice must be resolved. Should the right be connected to individual claims? Group claims? Both? Western concepts are strongly connected with individual rights, but African and Islamic rights are more directed to the group. It would seem, therefore, that a Western notion must be integrated with a group notion of rights and justice. Lee (2000) hints about the possibilities with the notion of class action suits practiced in the U.S. court system, particularly in tort action. Consider Miller’s three conceptions of distributive justice (needs, desert, equality) in a global environmental context. Lee (2000) would argue for a universal standard of justice—a universal right to a healthy environment, a principle of justice resting on the equality principle. However, acknowledged are economic realities that undermine the establishment of principles of justice based on equality. For example, in the Universal Declaration of Human Rights established in 1948, universal standards are specified, whereas in the North American Agreement on Environmental Cooperation (established in 1993), binding the United States, Canada, and Mexico, standards are allowed to vary by country and hence by economic conditions. Accordingly, there is a functional equivalent of a regional principle of justice based on desert. Key to the establishment of a universal principle (equality) for environmental justice, according to Lee, would be linking the nature of the environment to the right of development.The Rio Conference on Environment and Development (1992) establishes this linkage between a healthy environment and the right to sustainable development. Consider some of the principles Lee reported (2000, 31 n. 194): Principle 1: “Human beings are at the centre of concerns for sustainable development. They are entitled to a healthy and productive life in harmony with nature.” Principle 4: “In order to achieve sustainable development, environmental protection shall constitute an integral part of the development process and cannot be considered in isolation from it.” Principle 12: “States should cooperate to promote a supportive and open international economic system that would lead to economic growth and sustainable development in all countries, to better address the problems of environmental degradation.” Principle 25:“Peace, development and environmental protection are interdependent and indivisible.” More recently, the European Union, in a Resolution on Industrial Restructuring and Relocation in the European Union (November 13, 1996), “sees an urgent need to shift the basis of the framework for international action on trade and investment from a relatively narrow focus on growth and preservation of free trade and investment, to the more complex goal of sustainable development,

Environmental and Ecological Justice

107

which means integrating economic efficiency, macroeconomic stability, social justice and environmental sustainability” (Lee 2000, 32 n. 206; see also Agyeman, Bullard, and Evans 2003). When we examine retributive principles of justice at the global level, we find that responses to violations vary by economics, politics, corruption, and ideology.Thus, we once again have an undermining of principles of equality. Lee’s (2000, 15) suggestion is to focus on the notion of “degradation” of an environment that is shown to produce serious health problems for a definable group of people, or a “ ‘disruption’ of a people’s way of life.”13 Both commissions and omissions would be constitutive of injury.As to unintentional omissions, because uncertainty sometimes exists in long range consequences, the precautionary principle should be applicable (see Kamminga 1996): no current violation has taken place, but there is a strong possibility of future harm stemming from the current activity.A precautionary principle could be developed that is anticipatory in nature that focuses on “state omissions that risk imminent and serious violation of [a] . . . well-defined standard” (Lee 2000, 16). As a consequence, state responsibilities would be implicated. In sum, the notion of a human right to a healthy environment has been repeated in a number of ways in various UN Conferences. Lee cites, most importantly, Principle 1 of the Rio Declaration: “Human beings are . . . entitled to a healthy and productive life in harmony with nature” (17). Principles of social and environmental justice will surely become increasingly globally defined.

Chapte r 8

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice One aspect of globalism and multiculturalism is the question of indigenous peoples’ forms of justice.1 Key struggles for indigenous people have concerned land, recognition, sovereignty, resources, intellectual property rights, and self-determination.With globalism, assuredly the question of other indigenous peoples will begin to become much more visible and audible. Ours is not an exhaustive list, but an introduction to some of the more glaring issues dealing with globalism, indigenous populations, and social justice. Indige nous Justice The definition of “indigenous” in indigenous cultures precedes any discussion of historical, political, juridic, and economic effects. The very definition of the term “indigenous” is itself controversial. Existing definitions often lead to the imposition of standards of human rights that might be undermining of indigenous people’s unique way of being (Niezen 2003, 18). The United Nations Working Group on Indigenous Populations defines indigenous peoples in terms of “priority in time; voluntary perpetuation of their cultural distinctiveness; self-identification as indigenous; experience of subjugation, marginalization, dispossession, exclusion, and discrimination by the dominant society” (Havermann 1999a, 21). In Australia they are often referenced as First People; in Canada, First Nations; in New Zealand, Maori; in the United States, native people and sometimes American Indians (Havermann 1999a;Wilkins 1997).2 Perhaps one of the most enlightening discussions on definitions comes from Niezen (2003). He sees three ways of conceptualizing the term: (1) in legal or analytical terms—identifying distinguishing factors of original inhabitants and developing them into distinct categories;3 (2) in practical terms—the U.N. Working Group on Indigenous Populations maintains an open-door policy for any who want to participate under the name of indigenous; and (3) in collective terms—although there is a clear difference between them and the particular state within which they find themselves, there is more often identification with 108

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

109

some regional group, and beyond this the actual definition remains rather unverbalized yet distinctively understood by members.The danger of the first is in the possible omissions; the danger of the second is that unexpected and questionable indigenous groups or individuals may profess their indigenousness as a mask for some other issue; the third definition suffers from the potential that some power groups will impose a definition. Thus, any discussion of indigenous peoples begins with controversy (see Fleras 1999). Indigenous peoples do have indigenous ways of knowing and ways of justice rendering. Much of this is communicated orally, without written records. Consider the aboriginals from Australia and their communication about their culture through dreamtime. Before being colonized, the Maori already had a form of restorative justice that did not rely on written law. In their response to harms, key elements were shaming (whakama), healing, and embracing—factors that are key to the development of contemporary restorative justice programs (Braithwaite 1999).Aboriginal peoples in Australia, Canada, the United States, and New Zealand rely on elders who are perceived as having heightened abilities, special talents infused with spirituality, referred to as “mana” by the Maori (53).4 The Maori also have tribal councils (runanga) and committees (komiti) to manage their affairs. Returning to Max Weber’s four ideal types of legal thought and their relation to justice, notwithstanding the postmodern critique that law and justice are separate entities, much of indigenous forms of legal thought and retributive justice can be seen in terms of substantive rationality or substantive irrationality. In other words, the elders do in fact have some sense of the overall ways of being and notions of law and justice, but decisions, in restorative justice formats, were based on concrete situations and thus not systematized in a formal law. Of course, with colonization, it was to formal rationality that the colonizers looked to substantiate their ways of being, values, ideology, and notions of justice over those of indigenous peoples. Te rra Nullius and Sove reignty The headline to a leading article in the Chicago Tribune on the middle east crisis read “Settlers in West Bank Fight Eviction” ( June, 20 2003, 1). One cannot cease being impressed as to the ideological underpinnings. “Settlers”? In the United States it conjures images of the West being settled. Conveniently forgotten is how indigenous peoples were dispossessed of their lands and legitimized in the name of the sovereign and law.5 The international arena has seen the rise of principles that justify the taking of indigenous people’s lands. After all, an otherwise rational international community of sovereign states could not steal the land. They would need to come up with some legitimizing principle for claims of ownership. One was invented. One of the most common legitimization principles is the principle

110

Social Justice

of discovery. The conquerors claim title to the land based on the assumption that either the land is (1) not being occupied, is without an owner, is deserted; or (2) occupied, but by an uncivilized people (Vitoria 1934; Vattel 1971; Green 1998; Fitzpatrick 2001).These scenarios have played out in the United States, Australia, and New Zealand (see Pockock 1992). Johnson v. McIntosh (1823) was the first crucial U.S. Supreme Court case applying the doctrine of discovery. It dealt with issues of sovereignty and native title. Justice John Marshall’s opinion was to set the stage for further ideological spin on the legal subordination of indigenous peoples (Wilkins 1997; Williams 1990). His much quoted decision speaks for itself: the American Indians “were fierce savages . . . whose subsistence was drawn chiefly from the forest . . . to leave them in possession of their country, was to leave the country a wilderness” ( Johnson v. McIntosh 1923, 590).The privileging of sedentary versus nomadic can also be easily traced to Enlightenment era thought and consequent modernist assumptions (Pockock 1992). Marshall’s opinion fell short of a fully blown principle of terra nullius but nevertheless provided the legal justification for the dispossession of indigenous people.The “actual condition” of the indigenous people was such that “it was impossible to mix, and who could not be governed as a distinct entity” (590).The denial of the indigenous native title was not conquest, according to Marshall, but due to discovery (Fitzpatrick 2001). And even with words of sympathy, Marshall ultimately deferred to the rule of law:“this is not the tribunal which can redress the past or prevent the future” ( Johnson v. McIntosh 1823, 590).6 In effect, tribal claims were henceforth reduced to a landlord-tenant relationship (Wilkins 1997).The sovereign state now stands as the landlord governing its tenants by the rule of law.7 Thus interiority—the bringing of ever more phenomena within the gravitational pull of normalizing forces under predominantly formal rational principles in law—now allows the further regulation, control, and exploitation of the colonized peoples through the rule of law.8 A related question is one concerning the notion of sovereignty—that is, how a state legitimizes its boundaries. Wilkins’s (1997) study of fifteen key U.S. Supreme Court decisions dealing with the American Indian argued that they have been engaged in producing masks covering or obfuscating violations of indigenous peoples’ claims. Some earlier cases, however, did acknowledge the sovereignty of indigenous peoples; see, for example, Worcester v. Georgia 1832 (affirming the legitimacy of Indian treaties); In the Kansas Indians (1866) (“the conduct of Indians is not to be measured by the same standard which we apply to the conduct of other people”); In Ex parte Crow Dog (1883) (the court recognized sovereignty by the tribes and said federal courts lacked jurisdiction in dealing with offenses committed by one indigenous member on another); Talton v. Mayes (1896) (“as the powers of local self-government enjoyed by the Cherokee nation existed prior to the constitution, they are not operated upon

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

111

by the Fifth Amendment”); United States v.Winans (1905) (“the treaty was not a grant of rights to the Indians, but a grant of rights from them—a reservation of those not granted”); and in Merrion v. Jicarilla Apache Tribe (1982) (which “held that the tribe had the inherent power to impose a severance tax on petitioners’ mining activities as part of its power to govern and to pay for the costs of self-government” [Wilkins 1997, 308]). In the New Zealand context, the state has increasingly recognized the unique forms of dispute resolution by the Maori supported by the elders, kaumatua (male) and kuia (female) (see Pratt 1999). But apart from these aberrations, according to Wilkins, the courts in the United States have continued to undermine and mask the sovereign status of indigenous peoples, and at best they have extended the tentacles of formal rationality into the everyday life of indigenous peoples in every manner. Onuf (1991) has suggested sovereignty has three components: unchallenged domination over a given territory; majesty, meaning legitimation principles that show the omnipotence of the state, or, in Deleuze and Guattari’s words, magical capture; and agency, meaning legislators and jurists who construct legal myths of the rule of law.Thus, with the notion of juridic capture one can see how Marshall’s opinion first subordinated the indigenous peoples to the rule of law of the sovereign, and second made them subject to the force of law. In short, it is tantamount to lawful state violence (see Patton 2000; Derrida 1987, 1989). Native Title The notion of terra nullius is coming to an end. Several higher court decisions around the globe have undermined its very logic and have ushered in a new imaginary and symbolic framework within which alternative discussion has and will continue to unfold (Patton 2000). In the Australian experience, the High Court decision in Mabo v. Queensland (1992) rejected the principle of terra nullius and granted native title (see Bartlett 1999). The following comparable treaties/cases exist: in New Zealand, the Treaty of Waitangi (1840) and the Treaty of Waitangi Act (1975) (see also the discussion by McHugh [1999]); in Canada, Calder et al. v. Attorney General of British Columbia (1973) (see also and the discussion by Asch [1999]); and the appeal court decision Delgamuuk v. British Columbia (1997). These have been seen as defining moments (Fleras 1999).There is, however, a retrenchment by the legislative branch (Myers and Raine 2001), not unlike the U.S. experience after the Supreme Court decision of Brown v. Board of Education (1954). The landmark Supreme Court decision (1954) defining equal access to education is an instructive example for two reasons. First, as in the case of defining indigenous rights through the cases cited above, this definition is essential to situating an understanding of justice within the formal realm.

112

Social Justice

Second, although the right to equal education has been defined and codified, it has also been violated through lack of action or support through other justice arenas. Kozol (2005) documents the continuing segregation in U.S. schools and the impact of this departure from the Brown v. Board of Education (1954) decision. In pursuit of indigenous justice, what has been recognized is native title, and this in itself is important, although not sufficient in guaranteeing that such title will be recognized. Land claims by indigenous peoples have been rethought in light of an understanding that they were never relinquished but forcefully taken away from them by colonizers. As Fleras states, indigenous peoples cannot be compared with multicultural minorities, those who immigrated, or descendants of immigrants. Rather, indigenous peoples represent peoples. They are descendants of the original occupants of the land, whose inherent and collective rights to selfdetermination over the jurisdiction of land, identity, and political voice have never been extinguished by conquest, occupation, or treaty, but only need to be reactivated as a basis for redefining their relationship with the State. Indigenous peoples’ claims go beyond the demand for equality and removal of discriminatory barriers. (Fleras 1999, 219) Indige nous Inte llectual Prope rty Rights Pervading U.S., Australian, and United Nation’s law on indigenous intellectual property rights is a tension between an individualistic and a communal notion of authorship.9 The notion of the individual author and its celebration as a central value in Western thought was developed during the Renaissance period. It is one of the core assumptions that has been stabilized in modernist thought. In copyright law, we only have to look to the middle of the eighteenth century to see this assumption’s incorporation into the notion of the modern author (sometimes referred to as the “romantic author,” see Riley 2000; Woodmansee 1992). In contrast, the pre-Romantic author was seen as the “master of a craft, master of a body of rules, or techniques, preserved and handed down in rhetoric and poetics, for the transmission of ideas handed down by tradition” (Woodmansee 1992, 280). From the early 1700s to the early 1800s there was a gradual transition from seeing the author as a craftsman who worked with other previous and contemporary artisans in jointly producing a product, to a view of an individualistic and imaginative inventor that alone was responsible for the product (Riley 2000;Woodmansee 1992). Much codification of intellectual copyright law followed this development. In the U.S. Supreme Court decision BurrowGiles Lithographic Co. v. Sarony (1884, 53, 58), “author” is defined as “he to whom anything owes its origin; originator, maker.”

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

113

The modernist notion of the individual author was challenged by Michel Foucault in “What Is an Author” (1977a). He specified that an “author” has historical specificities. Riley (2000) also indicated a contemporary tension in copyright law founded on the romantic author. Indeed, Woodmansee suggested a connection between indigenous communities’ notions of authorship with emerging postmodern renditions.10 In short, the romantic assumptions are being fundamentally challenged by postmodern thought; perhaps Foucault’s treatise on the death of the author being one of the most important. Nevertheless, the romantic author remains the core assumption of contemporary intellectual property law. The conflict between the two notions of author has been central in indigenous copyright law. Along with colonization and subsuming the native population to the axiomatics (e.g. core principles often defined by the higher courts as compelling state interests), indigenous populations were denied their worldviews by the constraints of the law under the guise of sovereignty.11 After all, terra nullius assumed an uninhabited land, or, where it was inhabited, inhabited by uncivilized beings. Discovery assured that the indigenous population would be denied their culture and its protection in law. In indigenous cultures, it is the group that is responsible for the production of its cultural artifacts. Much of the techniques remain communicated orally. Attributing authorship to a lone person is an alien way to think. But modernist analysis in law has it differently. Even where Western law acknowledges joint work it is still an assumption of several individual authors at work (Riley 2000).Thus it is virtually impossible to attribute individual authorship to the aboriginal who chants about the “dreamtime.”12 Consider Riley’s point: Cultural property is the very soul of Indian tribes.These creative works— whether creation stories, ceremonial songs, or medicine pouches— provide a window through which the Native world can be viewed. In a holistic society, an object’s meaning is defined by the context in which it is used. The world is not divided up into distinct pieces, but is interdependent, organic, and cyclical. Native people imagine the world–natural and supernatural, mundane and magical—as balanced, alive, and ever changing. (Riley 2000, 196) In short, a communal view of property rights (and knowledge and nature) assume an interconnected, dynamic, fluid, balanced, interdependent, cyclical, and holistic state of affairs.13 The Australian response to the UN Draft Declaration and the Berne Convention on indigenous intellectual property rights was to amend the draft resolution to force indigenous peoples into structuring and framing their differences into the existing dominant legal system (Grad 2003; Ransley and Marchetti 2001). In short, this has everything to do with juridic capture,

114

Social Justice

subjugating all conflicts within capitalistic legal axiomatics. Underlying Mabo is also a call for ultimately framing differences within the dominant legal system. In short, in both the U.S. and Australian responses, white rule is ultimately asserted (Moreton-Robinson 2001). Joint Work/Joint Authors A prima facie case seems attainable for arguing that joint work, protected by copyright law in the United States, could be extended to include community authorship (Farley 1997; Jordan 2001). U.S. federal copyright law (17 U.S.C. paragraph 201, 1994) provides that a property right “vests initially in the author or authors of the work” (emphasis added). Paragraph 101 defines “joint work as prepared by two or more authors with the intention that their contributions be merged into inseparable or interdependent parts of unity whole.”As Jordan (2001, 97) points out, “the collective work exception to authorship is applied by statute to ‘a work, such as a periodical issue, anthology, or encyclopedia, in which a number of contributions, constituting separate and independent work in themselves, are assembled into a collective whole.” Although seemingly adaptable to indigenous community rights, applications have been difficult as exceptions to individual notions of authorship. Inhering in copyright law is the notion of some original author. Tribal creations, however, have roots in groups from generations past. In any present manifestations they reflect some slight variance. And all this remains in a community context. As Turner (1997) explains, when coming to terms with human rights, we need not only grapple with the notions of rights but also with the meanings of “human.” Current Western ideas of humanness rely upon an understanding of an individual separate and apart from a social group.This understanding is neither relevant nor appropriate for other traditions: the human subject is not identified out of this context.Thus, no “original author” can be clearly identified ( Jordan 2001, 98). Jordan cites the example of the Hopi’s production of kachina dolls. The knowledge for its production goes back centuries and has no clearly identified historical author. Jordan entertains the possibility of arguing that a tribe could be conceived as an author and thus could apply for copyright protection. If this could be an acceptable legal extension, indigenous intellectual property could be protected. However, in traditional legal understanding (formal rationality), after a certain specified time, the right disappears as it becomes part of the public domain, hence undermining once again the tribal notion of continuity with the past, present, and future. Jordan also reviews the U.S. Native American Graves Protection and Repatriation Act passed in 1990. This legislation provides an extension to tribal artifacts but not to symbols. It does, however, open a space to consider tribal claims to objects, but not property rights. In this legislation there is

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

115

acknowledgment of communal property by the concept of cultural patrimony.The act defines this as “objects having ongoing historical, traditional, or cultural importance central to the Native American group or culture itself, rather than property owned by an individual Native American, and which, therefore, cannot be alienated, appropriated, or conveyed by an individual regardless of whether or not the individual is a member of the Indian tribe . . . and such objects shall have been considered inalienable by such Native American group at the time the object was separated from the group.” In this sense, according to Jordan, cultural property could be constructed as cultural patrimony. Grad (2003), however, questions whether the act is sufficient to provide a remedy for enforcing these rights. Many settlements for reclamations of objects are private affairs. Little legal precedent is set and thus theft issues remain delegated to more hidden negotiations. The doctrine of joint work still assumes a group of individual authors (Riley 2000).14 Moral Rights The United Nations has provided, by far, the most creative protections for indigenous peoples in the production and use of their cultural artifacts. The Berne Convention for the Protection of Literary and Artistic Work (1990) is a case in point. It creates a moral right in intellectual property. In 1989 the United States accepted this notion and subsequently incorporated this concept in the Visual Artist’s Right Act of 1990, which specifically deals with paintings, drawings, prints, and sculptures. It incorporates rights of attribution, with claim of authorship or not, and integrity, the right to prevent “intentional distortion, mutilation or other modification of work which would be prejudicial to his or her honor or reputation” ( Jordan 2001, 102). The most important initiative in the United Nations dealing with moral rights is the United Nations Draft Declaration on the Rights of Indigenous Peoples.15 The draft was specifically developed by indigenous peoples worldwide. It still remains a draft, subject to passage.The United States has been very reluctant to sign it, arguing that the legal structures of states should address the issue.The draft specifies moral rights for indigenous intellectual property (see Dietz 1993). Its heritage traces back to the common law of several European states—France and Germany, in particular. Dietz (1993, 199) notes that these rights are “perpetual, intellectual and imprescriptible” and protect the “personal, intellectual, and spiritual interests of authors.” Four specific rights fall under this schema (Dietz 1993; Jordan 2001): (1) the right to paternity, or attribution, which deals with authorship, and assuming “a family-like tie to its creator” (Grad 2003, 212); (2) the right of integrity, which deals with response to any distortions that compromise honor or reputation; (3) the right of divulgation, which deals with the right to make public what the author had previously made private; and (4) the right to repent, which deals

116

Social Justice

with the right to take the product out of public circulation. These rights are distinguished from property rights due to the “intensely personal nature of its creation” (Ledwon 1996, 69).“The created work comes from within the author and is a part of its creator” (Grad 2003, 212). There has been some question about mechanisms for correcting their violation. Some U.S. states have passed legislation for two moral rights in the visual arts: attribution and integrity.The Copyright Amendment Act of 2000 in Australia also includes these moral rights. Limitations with moral rights exist. Primarily, it does not protect folklore, including songs, customs, myths, and stories, which is mostly communally based and oral.The right of integrity is mostly limited to the lifetime of the person who created the product, with a usual time span attached. Thereafter it falls within the public domain. Accordingly, the generational aspect of the communal production is lost.The phrasing of moral rights remains individualistic (Grad 2003; Jaszi 1991). Although Australian and U.S. legislation and court decisions seem to be rectifying some of the injustices done to indigenous people’s intellectual property, it is unclear whether an eventual acceptance of the communal nature of indigenous people’s creative endeavors will take place. Indigenous peoples’ ways often fly directly against the very foundations of Renaissance-generated core assumptions incorporated into law. Perhaps, however, indigenous forces within an advancing technological society may be the producers of new understandings that, full circle, reproduce the preclassical joint-author (Riley 2000;Woodmansee 1992). There is a link between technological changes and the potential for a receptiveness of communal intellectual property rights. Woodmansee’s earlier work is seminal. In many ways, it suggests the death of the modern author, the sole creator, as we know it.The emerging notion of authorship is one situated at dissolving boundaries of law.Technological advances, by way of the Web and e-mail, for example, have provided a milieu for new forms of collaborative, interactive thought. “Modern [more precisely, postmodern] writing is about cooperation and the integration of ideas, fueled by the ease with which intellectual musings and textual discourse can be bounced from innovator to innovator through advanced technology” (Riley 2000, 195). Electronic technology is reviving the pre-Romantic author. In short, there are but few additional steps needed before reaching the notion of protected group rights. Resistance, no doubt, will be forthcoming. “By relying on traditional models of originary, clearly individuated authorship and creation, we may distort or stifle undreamed-of creative possibilities and block new directions in which innovative technologies and their applications may lead us” (Riley 2000, 196). In short, the call is for the development “of a more inclusive copyright paradigm” (196). In this view, then, recovering indigenous notions of communal work is in line with the evolving developments in the technological sphere and its call for a new paradigm of copyright law.16

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

117

We be r and the Insoluble Conf lict: Human Rights v. Cultural Re lativism? As discussed, Weber described four ideal types of legal thought: formal rationality, formal irrationality, substantive rationality, and substantive irrationality. He also explained three forms of domination, defined not as subjugation but as an orientation to some order guided by some principles (e.g., maxims).When we look at the plight of indigenous peoples we can see how the tension between formal rationality and legal domination and substantive rationality and traditional domination plays itself out in some complex ways. Niezen (2003), for example, poses the issue in terms of relativism on the one hand, and a global growing concern for human rights, on the other.The former has been equated with anti-essentialism in philosophical discussions; the latter, essentialism. Niezen argues that much of the formal rational and legal form of domination that comes with such UN declarations as the Universal Declaration of Human Rights, the International Covenants, and the International Bill of Human Rights, originates from societies well versed with bureaucracy, the rule of law, and rationalism. Indigenous peoples, however, more often communicate through an oral tradition, through elders, through myth (e.g., the dreamtime of the aboriginals in Australia), and everyday artifacts.The latter is more situated in traditional domination and substantive rationality/irrationality. And herein lies the dilemma. Should, for example, indigenous peoples, in seeking redress to grievances, express themselves in the written form of dominant groups and thus subject themselves to a transformation of their way of life? Consider the effects: undermining elders, privileging the written form over the oral form, establishing alien time frames, and separating phenomena into abstractions rather than assuming interconnectedness. What about excesses inflicted by indigenous peoples themselves? Consider, in the extreme, female genital mutilation, practiced by over forty countries and involving over 5,500 recipients per day.Typically, a three- to ten-year old girl has her clitoris partially removed. In extreme cases, the clitoris is totally removed, along with her labia minora and parts of the labia majora.The procedure is usually performed by a midwife, not a doctor (Annas 1999). Should outsiders impose an ethical principle that this is plainly wrong? Brosius (1999) warns of neutrality to such practices. Neutrality in the face of ongoing injustice is complicity. However, much care and consideration must be given when interpreting and otherwise judging activities outside one’s understanding.These judgments may be, and have been, used to the detriment of those under judgment and others. Turner (1997) offers a useful interpretation of culture and cultural practices that is instructive in such cases. As he notes, cultural practices themselves are not essentialist; however, the development of cultural practices are inherently human. It is the processes and structures through which culture and cultural

118

Social Justice

practices are developed then that are to be examined and understood. For example, in Mexico some individuals recognize the term “machismo” as including the oppression of women in positions of servitude and at times in abusive relationships. These sexist expressions, however, are not inherently Mexican, nor are they cultural. Sexism exists around the planet and has no essentially national character. It is, however, supported through social processes and structures.These forces of social production must be examined rather than the culture within which sexism/machismo is expressed.These examinations not only alleviate the need to judge the other, but also allow for a more holistic understanding of cultural practices as social productions rather than inherent expressions. Understanding social practices in this way also allows for the natural process of conflict arising from difference. The debate and discourse surrounding this conflict may then address the social structures and processes that produce the practice in question rather than attaching itself to the identities and humanities of those involved. In The Origins of Indigenism, Niezen (2003) examines the insoluble conflict between relativism and human rights. He reviews theorists such as Talal Asad (1997), who argues for more critical discussion on the unexamined assumptions of the meaning of such phrases as “cruel, inhuman and degrading treatment” built into such documents as the UN’s Universal Declaration. Consider, for example, religious flagellation, which brings to the fore the voluntary nature of such self-punishment. Niezen rejects both applied anthropology, which inherently advocates relativism, and postmodernist analysis. In being opposed to notions of universal human rights, Niezen argues, certain harmful practices of indigenous peoples themselves are allowed to continue. He also provides other examples whereby indigenous peoples engage in harms against their own; see, for example, Nancy Scheper-Hughes’s (1992) criticism of the exploitation and cruelty inflicted on Brazilian women in a shantytown she studied. In her words, should we “suspend the ethical”? These are dilemmas that need to be addressed. Hence, for Niezen, the question becomes “How can indigenous peoples be given the justice they deserve when there is confusion, both in general and in specific cases, over their place as victims, responsible actors, and violators of the human rights of their own people or others?” Said in another way: “The indigenous encounter with modernity is thus oversimplified, stripped of agency and the immediacy of suffering” (Niezen 2003, 110). Niezen’s careful analysis of the potential usefulness of human rights as universals would be tempered by including considerations such as contingencies, social nuances, and local perceptions. Niezen, privileging a modernist’s position, which we found in an earlier chapter to be rooted in the Enlightenment, would thus celebrate liberalism’s focus on equality and individualism, yet be tempered with the notion of group rights. He also recognizes that the meaning of a people is still problematic.17

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

119

Cultural pluralism, Niezen argues, drawing inspiration from Taylor (1994), has already undergone a profound global change away from privileging honor attached to hierarchies, to notions of justice more connected with notions of equal dignity reflecting social recognition and affirmation of equal worth. Postmodernist Jacques Derrida (see Chapter 9) suggests a notion of justice that was centered on a duty to the other, which seems compatible with the emerging notions of recognition and affirmation of the other. This in turn leads to recognizing the right to self-determination (Kymlicka 1995), which creates the dilemma of how to be both sensitive to and supportive of self-determination while being prepared for excesses used as justifications for reducing the other within or external to the group.18 The Weberian dilemma in terms of justice rendering seems insoluble. “There is no way to defend traditional societies without in some way transforming them— without, above all, taking on some of the trappings of bureaucracy and written law” (Niezen 2003, 142). In other words, the tools employed in protecting indigenous peoples and multiculturalism are the very tools that will change them in a particular direction, such as toward embracing formal rationality and core ideological assumptions generated from the Enlightenment, or by outright capture by the disciplinary mechanisms (Foucault 1977a). Human rights are about universals, about consensus, about formal standards: on their face, therefore, they are antithetical to the notion of relativism.19 In short, formal rationality encourages the written over the oral; the lawyer over the elder; the formal rationale over myth and dreamtimes; the individual, over the group; the abstract over the concrete. In reviewing the work of Michael Blake (2000), Niezen also brings up the notion of social change. Cultures do change, some indeed disappear. If so, “does not an enlightened and compassionate society have a moral duty to ease the inevitable transition, to bring the benefits of superior knowledge, faith, technology, and bureaucratic method?” (Niezen 2003, 129). But then this raises the issue of privileging the intervention by an all-knowing other, who often may be well versed in formal rational principles and highly receptive to legal domination. This is what Roberto Unger rejects in What Should Legal Analysis Become? (1996). Rather, he—like the Realists of the early part of the twentieth century and postmodernists Lyotard and Rorty—would instead insist on experimentalism, discovery, the emergents of the in-between, of boundary crossing, of the play of chance, irony, contingency, and of inductive over deductive legal reasoning. Po stcolonial Theory Postcolonial theory can be formally traced to the 1960s and the writings of Franz Fanon. Currently, the key thinkers include Gayatri Spivak, Edward Said, and Homi Bhabha.20 Even though the concept has a multiplicity of

120

Social Justice

meaning, the concept includes two key foci: (1) resistance to colonization, and (2) attempts to break away from the strong influence of colonial thought after independence and liberation. In this approach, principles of social justice are seen as being imposed by colonizers. The question then becomes one of rearticulating what has been or developing conceptions of justice of the people yet to come (Smith 1999). The emphasis of postcolonial theorists is on a critical examination of history, literature, film, dominant discourse (master narratives), and culture. European texts were seen as imposing and projecting their own desires and anxieties onto colonial peoples while masquerading as truth and the embodiment of rationality, logic, and objectivity. Postcolonial theory has drawn significantly from discourse analysis and some key postmodern thinkers, Foucault, Lacan, and Derrida, in particular. Marxist and revisionist Marxist ideas are also applied. More recently, there has been a feminist postcolonial approach (Lewis and Mills 2003; Switala 1999). Let us review key thinkers. Franz Fanon (1925–1961) was born to descendants from slavery on the Caribbean island of Martinique. His training included medicine, psychiatry, and philosophy. His book Black Skins, White Masks (1986), was a direct outgrowth of his experience as a black person in colonized Martinique (by the French at the time). He also wrote Wretched of the Earth (1967) after he developed leukemia. He had a major influence on third world revolutionary movements in the 1950s and 1960s, particularly on revolutionaries Che Guevara and Steve Biko, as well as anticolonial film directors and writers such as Ousmane Sembe,Tsitsi Dangarembga, and Ngugi Wa Thiongo.The Palestinian and Black Panther movements were also heavily influenced by his work. He drew from Marxist analysis but did not accept Lenin’s notion that the revolutionary party (i.e., the Communist Party) should lead the struggle. Rather, one should look within the ranks of those directly participating in the struggle, in their daily activities of opposition; they would formulate its principles. Fanon argued that white colonizers imposed an image on the black victims that was degrading, subordinating, and alienating. It was this image to which the black person had to adjust. And we must be wary, Fanon tells us, to simply replace white colonizers with European trained black bourgeoisie; for, surely, the legacy of colonial ideology will continue. Conceptions of social justice would thus arise from grassroots struggles to overcome the shackles of colonization. It cannot be developed top-down but must follow the logic of historical struggles–first, to overthrow the colonizers and, second, to replace the imbedded influence of colonization and its ideological elements. Gayatri Chakravorty Spivak (1942– ) was born in Calcutta,West Bengal, to a middle-class family and completed her formal education at Cornell University. Her first recognition was with her English translation of Derrida’s Of Grammatology. Her theoretical work draws from Marxism, feminism, and

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

121

Derrida’s deconstruction. There are also connections with Jacques Lacan, Michel Foucault, and Gilles Deleuze, although critical. She herself has often self-identified as a “Marxist-feminist-deconstructionist.” Her indebtedness to Derrida and his notion of deconstruction is quite apparent not only in her earlier translation of Of Grammatology, but in her book A Critique of Postcolonial Reason (1999), where she includes an extensive appendix to explain his main points. She is particularly interested in how marginalized peoples may enter dominant positions and subvert that which has been privileged (Landry and MacLean 1996). Spivak’s key points were justice and responsibility, the subaltern, and strategic essentialism. Her notion of justice and responsibility follow Derrida’s classic views, that justice has everything to do with orientation to the other, a duty to the other, in making room for the other to speak and be heard. She refers to this as an “ethical singularity” (1999, 384; see Landry and MacLean). In other words, each person tries to reveal all to the other but knows that we always are not doing so. Justice, then, is built on this duty to the other, to reveal oneself to the other. “Ethical singularity is approached when responses flow from both sides” (Spivak 1999, 384). Justice, then, follows the logic of the gift, explained by Derrida. It cannot be completely reflected in law, even while attempts are made to capture it in law. The second key point for Spivak, “can the subaltern speak?” has aroused much discussion. Drawing somewhat from Gramsci’s early writings (1971), the subaltern represents the dispossessed, the disenfranchised, the marginalized, the voiceless; it is the Other. Those colonized are subaltern; they have been denied their voice. Spivak asks how they can speak in their own voice. There seems an impossibility to speak otherwise. The colonized must make use of dominant discourse to express themselves, hence finding themselves imprisoned within its logic. For example, to argue race, class, and gender discrimination, one gives legitimacy to these terms as if they have some real objective existence. But to not to do so, how is one to argue discrimination exists? As soon as the subaltern attempt to gain a voice they must make use of dominant discourse and thus, ironically, they vacate themselves from their subaltern speaking position.21 What can be done? This leads us to a third major idea, that of strategic essentialism. Spivak, committed to the deconstructionist method that questions essentialism, some objective truth, suggests that the subaltern may, nevertheless, develop agendas for social change and for defining social justice.The strategy is to assume dominant positions within various hierarchies and discourses for strategic purposes, yet maintain a critical distance from these assumed positions. By doing so, they may undermine hegemonic discourse from inside out. Thus, in this strategy, some agendas and organizations may develop to challenge dominant power.The danger, of course, is being seduced by the positions assumed.

122

Social Justice

Other ways to come to terms with essentialism have been expressed. Paulo Freire (1976), in his “pedagogy of the oppressed,” develops a dialogical pedagogy whereby the cultural revolutionary and the campasino together deconstruct and reconstruct codifications of reality. Jacques Lacan’s discourse of the analyst argues for the cultural revolutionaries working with hysterics (or persons in opposition) to encourage them to both distance themselves from dominant master signifiers that subordinate and to replace these with new master signifiers that better embody their desire (Bracher 1993). Michel Foucault (1977b) has argued that the role of the intellectual is to create the conditions for the subaltern to speak for themselves. Judith Butler (1990) has argued for “contingent universalities,” by which she means the subaltern can develop agendas reflecting historical subordination (universalities), but these are always contingent, subject to change—refinement, qualification, deletion, substitution. More recently,Agozino (2003) addressed criminology directly in his text, arguing for a countercolonial rather than postcolonial reasoning. In short, struggles for social justice are connected with narrative constructions and how alternative ones may develop in which we owe a duty to others, to listen to them, to understand them, to be responsive to them. Edward Said (1935–2003) was born in Jerusalem, Palestine. He attended schools in Jerusalem, Cairo, and Massachusetts. He received his Ph.D. at Harvard University. Said was a committed activist campaigning for the rights of the Palestinians. He came under continuous attacks by conservative Jewish and Christian Zionists. His groundbreaking book, Orientalism (1978), is seen as one of the key treatises of postcolonial theorists. He also wrote the influential treatises Culture and Imperialism (1993) and Representations of the Intellectual (1994). Said draws inspiration from Muslim academics such as Anwar Abdel Malek and other writers from the 1960s Parisian scene who were inspired by Freudian, revisionist Freudian, and Marxian theory. He was also inspired considerably by the works of Michel Foucault and his connection between knowledge and power, as well as his analysis of discourse, particularly how all representations are coded in language. He has, however, retained a critical stance toward Foucault, particularly on the exclusive importance placed on power, knowledge, and discourse to the exclusion of “the role of classes, the role of economics, the role of insurgency and rebellion” (1983, 243). Orientalism concerned the conflict between the Orient and the Occident; loosely, the East (actually, more the Middle East) versus the West (mostly Britain, France, and the United States). It was Said’s point that the Western colonizers have imposed a perspective on those from the Orient that is more in conformity with the West’s attitude of superiority. Part of this, Said explained, was because cultures (and identities) tend to want to explain themselves in comparison with other cultures (and identities).The East was seen as static and backward; the West, as dynamic, creative, growing, developing. All

Indigenous/Postcolonial Forms of Justice

123

this was represented in what Foucault called discursive formations, where power is played out. Orientalism, in short, is a discursive formation in which realities are constructed in a very constricted fashion.22 Even though the Orient is the cradle of civilization, the very basis of the West itself, the West places it in an inferior position. However, the two, Said tells us, are not separate but have distinct historical continuities. Much of this neglect, suppression, and revisionism may in fact be unconscious; nevertheless, literature, scholarship, and cultural images of the Other are constructed in a subordinate manner.Thus, it was more the desire of the colonizer’s that constructed a picture of the world of the Orient, the world of the Other. Orientalism, therefore, is a way of looking at the East.The binary East versus West allows the West to maintain a sense of superiority by way of its imposed imaginary and discursive construction of this Other. In fact, it allows for easier colonization since the Other needs to be civilized.The Other is seen as an inferior Arab with an inferior religion (Islam) and way of life. This stereotype has been reinforced since 9/11. Many Middle Easterners have been selected for governmental surveillance, deportation, and profiling programs. Social justice will only emerge when we unlearn this method of domination and articulate the Other on its own terms. More recently, Said (2004, 135) has specified the role of the intellectual to counter Orientalism and to provide insights for a more just order:“the intellectual’s role is dialectically, oppositionally to uncover and elucidate . . . to challenge and defeat both an imposed silence and the normalized quiet of unseen power wherever and whenever possible.” He concludes with the task at hand:“the intellectual’s provisional home is the domain of an exigent, resistant, intransigent art into which, alas, one can neither retreat nor search for solutions. But only in that precarious exilic realm can one first truly grasp the difficulty of what cannot be grasped and then go forth to try anyway” (144). Homi K. Bhabha (1949– ) was born into a middle-class family in Bombay, India. He completed his bachelor’s and master’s degrees at Bombay University and his doctorate in philosophy at Oxford University. He has been influenced by postmodernist theorists Jacques Derrida, Michel Foucault, and Jacques Lacan. In Nation and Narration (1999), he shows how narrative constructions have tended to imprison the colonized within narrow identities. In The Location of Culture (1994), he outlines how ambivalence always exists whenever colonial powers attempt to dominate. There is, in short, no unilateral imposition since ambivalence provides the space within which an otherwise can be articulated. It is in these spaces, sometimes referred to as “interstitial spaces,” sometimes “liminal spaces,” that cultural emergents appear—that is, alternative articulations of such things as identities, notions of the other, and the meaning of justice (see also the accessible summary by Graves [1998a]). Some readers and writers of postcolonial treatises critique the abstract theorizing that is at work in such writers as Bhabha. For many activists, theory

124

Social Justice

is downplayed, and those who use it often are seen as elitists. For him, however, “there is a damaging and self-defeating assumption that theory is necessarily the elite language of the socially and culturally privileged” (1994, 28). Indeed, between theory and practice is the liminal space and what may be produced, hybridity. Culture, then, does not merely get iterated, but alternated within the dynamic flux of this region (see also Lippens 2000). Ambivalence within these liminal spaces is a positive force for rethinking domination, contesting unilateral dictates, and the crucible for novel articulations (see also Graves 1998b). These are the very spaces for resistance (Graves 1998c). It is where the clash of subaltern yearnings and dominant impositions can attain various novel articulations. An additional concept of which Bhabha makes use is mimicry (1994). This has indebtedness to Jacques Lacan’s writings. Any time we connect a signifier to a signified (e.g., the word “tree” connected to the image of a tree), we also implicate one of the two semiotic axes of production (the other being metaphor, see Lacan [1977]). In other words, metonymy, a slippage of meaning, exists in narrative constructions. With this slippage of meaning, new meanings can assert themselves.There is always an excess.With a slight emphasis on a different part of a statement (narrative), a different meaning emerges. For example, in the sentence “support our troops in Iraq,” are we saying support our troops, regardless of where they may happen to be? Or are we saying support them specifically in Iraq? For Bhabha, at the liminal spaces, a third space, with its attendant ambivalence, ever new meanings are being constructed.Thus, even as dominant semiotic production (i.e., colonial discourse) attempts to impose a truth, mimicry allows for the constant redefining of its meaning.This allows the subaltern to develop its own meanings even as a unilateral imposition is taking place. In short, desire is allowed an alternative expression.The third space allows for hybridity. It is at this level that intervention is transformative. For Bhabha, then, social change and the struggle for social justice is a continuous process. Imbedded within modernist and colonizer discourse are unsettling interstices that provide ambivalence, mimicry, and the possibility of new identities, signifiers, and narrative constructions. To sum up, postcolonial writers have focused on two facets of colonial subjection: (1) explaining how the subaltern are created and suggesting methods of subversion, and (2) addressing the vestiges of colonial discourse after liberation.23 Principles of social justice emerge from struggle. Postcolonial theorists do not see formal equality as the only ideal, although in the short run perhaps that can be so, nor are the principles of merit and need as defined by colonial powers helpful for guidance. Rather, postcolonial theorists seek emergents from the ground up. Social justice is connected with the people yet to come.

CHAPTER 9

Postmodern Forms of Justice Postmodern thought begins with a rejection of many of the core assumptions and ideologies developed during the Enlightenment period.1 It questions the privileging of grand narratives, the notion of the individual, a dominant and universal Truth, linear logic and reasoning, possibilities of universal and stable foundations, and the neutrality of language.2 It suggests maintaining a skeptical eye toward the possibility of developing conceptions of justice that are grounded in self-evident truth claims founded in prevailing and dominant ideologies.The possibilities of a bona fide conception of postmodern justice, however, are only recently emerging. Issue s in Deve loping a Po stmode rn Justice Several key issues have emerged for those who are attempting to develop a postmodern rather than a modernist form of justice.3 First, postmodern theorizing in justice studies is skeptical of any possibility of establishing foundations.That is, attempts to ground any reasoning, rationale, or logic on some objective measure is dubious. For example, the reliance on a natural state or natural rights pre-given by God, or on reason itself, is question begging. Second, postmodernists tend to conduct external critiques. Internal critiques include those that take a practitioner’s point of view (e.g., judges and lawyers) in criminal justice (Litowitz 1997, 20–34). Dworkin’s contributions to the literature, for example, are from an internal perspective. Postmodernists do not privilege the views of practitioners of the legal system; they stand outside the system in critiquing it.4 Third, postmodernists would oppose positive jurisprudence; this opposition would extend to conceptions of justice.“Positive” refers to the practice of practitioners and legislators in articulating a particular normative framework that will then be the basis of decision making by judges. A normative framework defines what falls within the normal and what is abnormal or deviant. Finally, modernists are more likely to rely on passive notions of justice, whereas postmodernists incorporate an active conception of justice (see Whyte 1991, 124–126). A passive justice takes place where human beings are seen as not owing affirmative duties (i.e., care) to the other, outside of civil rights issues.5 125

126

Social Justice

Active justice suggests that we do indeed owe duties to others.The notion of responsibility has a more holistic sense in the latter. In arguing against foundations and normative frameworks, postmodernists need to then situate their conceptions of justice in more contingent frameworks. According to Litowitz (1997, 41),“The solution is to adopt fallible, provisional foundations strong enough to support normative claims but not rooted in problematic modernist claims about human nature, reason, and truth.” This is precisely what some postmodernists are currently attempting. Litowitz also asserts that a progressive theory need not necessarily be evaluated only on practical possibilities, but can be measured by the degree to which it generates insights (40). Nevertheless, there will still be demands for translating external critiques into practical internal applications.6 Po stmode rn Theorists and Justice Jean-Francois Lyotard The development of principles of justice is articulated in three books by Lyotard: The Postmodern Condition (1984), Just Gaming (1999), and The Differend (1988). Lyotard (1984, 66) states his direction quite clearly: “consensus has become an outmoded and suspect value . . . we must . . . arrive at an idea and practice of justice that is not linked to that of consensus.” It is in The Postmodern Condition that Lyotard launches an attack on “grand narratives”—that is, dominant discourses within which reason and justice is defined and practiced. Legal language is an example (see Tiersma [2000] for an analysis of its development). He advocates instead a proliferation of smaller, localized (“petite”) narratives. Modern society was characterized by the grand narrative born from the Enlightenment period. Postmodern society, on the other hand, is marked by a plethora of micro narratives. Each person lives within several of these petite narratives. He borrows from Wittgenstein (1953) in referring to them at times as language games. One is a product of the various language games one frequents. Each has its own notion of justice based on the particular rules found in them. Justice cannot be a universal, but resides in the many locations one frequents. There is, then, a multiplicity of justices that are played out (Lyotard 1988, 100). Consider, for example, the workplace, school, leisure, various friendship circles, family, clubs, various business associations; each provides a milieu within which justice may be defined in a nuanced manner. Consider a street corner setting where juveniles often resort to playing odds or evens for decision making in determining distribution of resources or burdens. Consider, too,Whorf ’s (1964) comparison of the Hopi Indian language with English.Whereas the grammar of the English language situates a subject (I), a verb, and an object as if the “I” was the sole author of the act, for the Hopi, some verb describes the whole act, indicating that it is illogical to abstract an “I” as the sole causal entity. Consider what this may mean to establishing responsibility in law.

Postmodern Forms of Justice

127

The desire for consensus spelled out in Jurgen Habermas’s “ideal speech situation” is therefore illusory, unattainable. “Consensus does violence to the heterogeneity of language-games” (Lyotard 1984, xxv). It is terror. The practice and idea of justice, therefore, should not be connected with consensus. “Let us wage a war on totality. . . . [E]very one of us belongs to several minorities, and what is important, none of these prevail. It is only then that we can say that the society is just” (1988, 82, 95). In other words, Lyotard believes that we should maintain differences and the uniqueness of language games; to do otherwise is to repress indigenous ways of knowing and doing justice that are more sensitive and reflective of their interpersonal relations and being.7 In Just Gaming, Lyotard (1999) extends on this theme. There cannot be a “just society” (24). Justice can only exist within the petite narratives, within each language game.To assure justice we must keep the language games autonomous from each other.This multiplicity of justices assures that diverse segments of the population remain with voice, with justice (see also Lyotard 1984). In The Differend (1988), Lyotard introduces the notion of the differend. It is the person who experiences versions of justice from at least two different petite narratives, where hers or his finds itself in a subordinate role. Inevitable conflict will arise. Individuals judged from a different language region may find that they are left without voice, without the ability to speak and express their desires. This is the differend. Lyotard’s examples include the Jews of World War II, wage workers, and indigenous peoples (see Litowitz 1997, 120). Feminists and critical race theorists would argue that women and African Americans are examples of the differend. So, what then can Lyotard offer toward developing a more tangible justice? He offers several thoughts. First,“one must maximize as much as possible the multiplication of small narratives” (1999, 59, 87). Second, only “temporary contracts” should be invoked and narrowly exercised in time and place (1984, 66). Third, consensus (defining the rules of the game and appropriate moves within it) is desirable only within petit narratives; that is they must be at a local level, must be agreed to by the local players, and must be eventually rescinded. This is, according to Whyte’s (1991, 136) interpretation, “the least objectionable alternative . . . a politics of ‘lesser evils.’ ” Fourth, justice is not just about observing the rules of a particular narrative;“it consists in working at the limits of what the rules permit, in order to invent new moves, perhaps new rules and therefore new games” (Lyotard 1999, 100). In other words, the boundaries are always questioned and reformulated anew. Fifth, Whyte finds implicit in Lyotard the desire to move away from a justice that is situated on the act and toward an orientation to otherness, a responsibility that is not act oriented, but other oriented. Here justice would revolve around “fostering otherness, born of a deeper understanding of finitude and the delight in difference emerging

128

Social Justice

therefrom” (Whyte 1991, 137). This principle would also reduce the movement to dominate, since in limiting the other, one limits oneself in so much as diminishing the heterogeneous possibilities that may follow. Thus a premium is placed by Lyotard on listening to the other (Lyotard 1999, 72;Whyte 1991, 110, 118). Rather than predominantly privileging authoring in a dialogue, Lyotard tells us that justice demands opening oneself to the other. In other words, the author’s tendency to situate the other in his or her own interpretive framework should be countered by allowing the narrative of the other to remain in suspension as it plays itself out between the respective interpretive frameworks of self and the other. In the process, mutually responsive understandings emerge, boundaries are often approached, challenged, and crossed, and new frameworks are established. It is within this space that justice emerges. Jacques Derrida Derrida’s work is demanding reading. Nevertheless, he has been extremely influential in many fields, including law and justice. Two particular articles focus, at some length, on justice: “Declarations of Independence” (1986) and “Force of Law” (1989). The Gift of Death (1995) offers further insights on justice. Each has been the basis of a tremendous amount of commentary (see especially Litowitz 1996; Caputo 1997, 125–155). In “Declarations of Independence,” Derrida deconstructs the grounding for constitutions.8 Consider, for example, the preamble to the U.S. Declaration of Independence, which refers to the “Laws of Nature” and “Nature’s God.” The “principles” section states that “all men are endowed by their Creator with certain unalienable Rights, that among these are Life, Liberty and the pursuit of Happiness.” These are assertions long forgotten in subsequent history. Founding principles are always a fictional creation (“mystical foundations”); constitutions are enacted by an act of force. At the foundation of a legal system there is a primordial act of violence.As Derrida (1989, 14) informs us: “Since the origin of authority, the foundation or ground, the position of the law can’t by definition rest on anything but themselves, they are themselves a violence without ground. Which is not to say that they are in themselves unjust, in the sense of ‘illegal.’They are neither legal nor illegal in their founding moment.” Founding principles, once established, along with subsequent logical constructions based on it (consider Weber’s notion of formal rationality and deductive logic), thus become part of a feedback loop in which original intent is traced to the founding principles, which in turn become the basis of decision making in law (Derrida 1992, 191–192; Litowitz 1996, 94). This circularity tends to hide any discussion of founding principles. It may be true that foundations are often articulated in reference to reason, logic, God, and natural law; but each can be deconstructed to show that the grounding is illusory. Consider,

Postmodern Forms of Justice

129

for example, the gender and class of the founding fathers of the U.S. Constitution.At best, we can only make reference to custom and practice in rooting law (Derrida 1989, 12). Derrida makes a distinction between law and justice. Whereas law can always be deconstructed, for it is based on a fiction, an illusion, justice cannot be so critiqued. Derrida, much like Lyotard, derives inspiration from the work on Emmanuel Levinas (1969, 1987) on his notion of the duty to the other. Justice is something experienced and cannot be adequately deconstructed. Law and justice, therefore, stand in separate realms. Litowitz (1977, 94–95), summarizing Derrida, says that justice “cannot be fully coded in the legal discourse of specific rights, duties, and obligations without losing its irreducible character. One is called to do justice toward the other, yet this justice is excessive, incalculable, unreachable” (95).There can never be a point where one can say justice has been attained, that some decision making was just (Caputo 1997). Law, on the other hand, requires that justice be translated into specific rules and procedures which it can never do (Litowitz 1996). In this attempt, it is doomed to failure. Justice is like a gift; it is given without thought of return. Justice is beyond calculation; it is a duty one owes to the other. Three years after his presentation of “The Forces of Law,” Derrida wrote The Gift of Death (1995; for an accessible commentary, see Caputo [1997, 140–155]). In it he shows that the structure of justice follows the structure of a gift. A true gift is an act of the impossible. If one feels that one must reciprocate, which is most often the case, then the gift is no longer. As Derrida (1997, 18) says,“a gift is something that you cannot be thankful for.As soon as I say ‘thank you’ for a gift, I start canceling the gift, I start destroying the gift, by proposing an equivalence.” And similarly with justice:“A justice that could appear as such, that could be calculated, a calculation of what is just and what is not just, saying what has to be given in order to be just—that is not justice. That is social security, economics. Justice and gift should go beyond calculation” (19). In other words, a gift, like justice, must not be situated in economics—a field of calculation, exchange, utilitarianism, laws, and equity. There remains, therefore, a perpetual divide between law and justice. Law, however, finds itself bound to the economic—“a calculated balance of payments, of crime and punishment, of offense and retribution, a closed circle of paying off and paying back” (150).9 We always experience ourselves between the gift and economy, between justice and law, “always trying to interrupt the authoritative voice of the law with the soft sighs of justice, to relieve the harsh strictures of the law with the gentleness of a gift” (151).This is an inevitable task that we all must undertake in our everyday activities. Between law and the gift lie our resolutions. Thus, for Derrida, justice is a duty we have to the other without payment; it is a duty to recognize the other.The giver can never be repaid, for the debt

130

Social Justice

is incalculable. Justice is ongoing but never attainable: “justice is an experience of the impossible” (Derrida 1989, 16). For Derrida, then, justice can never be completely articulated, can never find itself embodied in law; it is a relationship a person has with another. A duty owed to the other, without requirement of repayment. “Justice . . . [is] an impossible demand, an incalculable duty to speak to the other in the other’s language, to give to the other without expectation of return” (Litowitz 1997, 107). In short, justice is never attainable; it is always situated in a specific relation to the other. Richard Rorty The pragmatic wing of postmodern analysis of justice is represented by Richard Rorty. Pragmatists (for example, William James, John Dewey) focus on everyday behavior and seek to develop understanding inductively, from the ground up. Rather than beginning with well-established laws and theories and applying them deductively, downwardly, in a linear fashion toward some conclusion, Rorty’s pragmatism begins with everyday activities and struggles and how principles are discovered through practice (inductive). Perhaps Contingency, Irony, and Solidarity (1989) is Rorty’s clearest expression of his pragmatic approach to justice. Like most postmodernists, Rorty dismisses universal claims to justice. Principles of justice are contingent; they vary cross-culturally and even within cultures. According to Rorty, we should give up a search for some objective standards. A search of the past also will not do.“We must start from where we are” (198). His view is both antifoundationalist and pragmatic.Those who do try to find foundations to perspectives on justice will engage in circular reasoning: “we judge our practices by our preferences, and our preferences have been shaped by our practices” (Litowitz 1997, 139). Rorty rejects much of our inherited vocabulary established during the Enlightenment; although perhaps necessary at a certain stage of development, it is now “an impediment to the preservation and progress of democratic societies” (Rorty 1989, 44). Rorty’s vision of a just political economy revolves around balancing competitive capitalism with left wing reform; he is very much in a reformist remedial mode. According to him,“The most hopeful alternative seems to be governmentally controlled capitalism plus welfare-statism (Holland, Sweden, Ireland).There is nothing sacred about either the free market or about central planning; the proper balance between the two is a matter of experimental tinkering” (Litowitz 1997, 140). The notion of contingency runs through Rorty’s pragmatism. When we talk about a sense of self, community, or discourse, we must acknowledge its contingent nature. That is, they vary in time, space, and form of expression. It is chance, accident, and experimentation that define them (Litowitz 1997; Rorty 1989).10 There is no essential or objective nature of any of these

Postmodern Forms of Justice

131

concepts. They are human creations. As Rorty states, “the suggestion that truth, as well as the world, is out there is a legacy of an age in which the word was seen as the creation of a being who had a language of his own” (1989, 5). Rorty’s utopian citizens would be liberal ironists. They would acknowledge the contingent nature of their consciences and of the nature of community. Ironist have questions about the universality and objectivity of the discourse of which they make use—using it as necessary in everyday behaviors but acknowledging its contingent nature. Consider, for example, critical race theorists who use law as a weapon for social change but simultaneously acknowledge that its inherent bias privileges the powerful, and that by using law it is legitimized. Rorty’s cultural hero would be the “ ‘strong poet’ rather than the warrior, the priest, the sage, or the truth-seeking ‘logical,’‘objective’ scientist” (53). The strong poet would not privilege Enlightenment discourse or foundations but would situate the present form or society in comparison with other possible historical forms. Rorty’s notions of justice draw inspiration from the legal realists and pragmatist philosophers (such as John Dewey and William James).The focus is on experimentalism. Judges, in determining what is just, should be seen as visionaries whose decisions are often leaps in the dark.“The visionary leap is a ‘romantic’ move which tries to forge new legal paradigms through a creative,‘poetic’ act of imagination” (Litowitz 1997, 146). Consider, for example, some truly exceptional legal decisions that went well beyond stare decisis (decision making based on precedents): Brown v. Board of Education (1954), Roe v. Wade (1973), and Mabo v. Queensland (1992). Judges should have some latitude in applying the law so that justice reflects perceived aspirations and shared outlooks of human beings engaged in everyday practices. Judge are problem solvers; they are the good prophets. Good prophets are result oriented and make no pretenses that their visions are necessarily rooted in “reason, autonomy, human nature, and so on” (Litowitz 1997, 147). Consider how far this is from the selection criteria reflected in the recent U.S. Supreme Court nomination proceedings for Chief Justice Roberts. Senate committee members were interested in possible leanings of the nominee and the degree to which Roberts would abide strictly by the rule of law. Social justice comes by way of experimenting, tinkering, and doing. Ultimately, we must have faith that “a judge will be compassionate and sensitive enough to know how to decide cases in an appropriate manner consistent with the tradition of great judges in America” (148). The legal realists of the earlier part of the twentieth century (Wendell Holmes, Benjamin Cardozo, Roscoe Pound, Jerome Frank, and Karl Llewellyn) saw the hard cases as decided by both existing law as well as personal sensitivity to and understandings of real world happenings. Not abstract thought, but a pragmatic orientation, would lead to leaps in the dark from which justice would proceed. “A good judge

132

Social Justice

will not act in ‘bad faith’ by mechanically applying precedents, nor can he or she acts as a freewheeling philosopher-king enforcing a private moral vision” (Litowitz 1997, 150). Anxiety around deciding the hard cases should not translate into acts of bad faith. See, for example, Duncan Kennedy (1997), who shows that many justices decide cases based on bad faith and denial. Rather than being true to the facts of the case and what they may imply, Kennedy tells us that justices often rule to maintain an image of themselves as having complied strictly to the rule-of-law requirements (formal rationality). Recently, Unger, in What Should Legal Analysis Become? (1996), provided more thoughts in the direction of experimentalism, pragmatism, and creative decision making. Like Rorty, he questions the institutionalization of formal rationality. Rorty also acknowledges leaps in the dark that are repressive; for example, decisions like Dred Scott v. Sanford (1857), Plessy v. Ferguson (1896), and Korematsu v. U.S. (1944) are always possible. Rorty is hard pressed to provide a mechanism to eradicate this; at best, Rorty argues for justices to not act in bad faith. Gilles Deleuze A fourth representative theorist of a postmodern perspective on justice is Gilles Deleuze (1983, 1986, 1988, 1990, 1994; for accessible introductions, see Colebrook [2002], Patton [2000], and Hardt [1993]).11 From Deleuze one could derive statements on the possibility of retributive and a distributive principle of justice.They have yet to be fully formulated.The distributive principle of justice, building on Marx’s classic needs principle, could be specified as “from each according to his/her ability, to each according to her/his needs and desire,” which is a desire-based justice.A retributive principle would come with pitfalls. An abstract retributive principle of justice is illusory in the Deleuzian schema (1994). Following Nietzsche, Enlightenment thought provided the illusion of the individual that is exclusively determinative of his or her conduct. Accordingly, in this view, an absolute accountability standard can be established. Each person therefore can receive a similar standard for similar conduct. Deleuze, along with Nietzsche, opposes this.To fix responsibility is to know all conditions of the past leading to the present act, which is an impossibility.Therefore, justice can never be served. “Judgement is unjust because it lacks measure” (Goodchild 1996, 35). Justice is always infinite, whereas some judgment is finite—it applies an equal measure to inherently unequal persons. A debt owed for some deviant act implies “an infinite knowledge of space, time, and experience” to generate an appropriate response which is illusory (206). Groundings are therefore impossible. Ultimately, justice grounds itself in its own circular reasoning. It is to a particular political economic based social

Postmodern Forms of Justice

133

structure that we must look to see how a particular system of axioms are created and diffused through society. Abilities and needs, as in Marx, are assumed to be heterogeneous. What demands explication is desire.A desire-based justice rests on an understanding of the nature of forces, desire, and possibilities of becoming (Milovanovic, forthcoming). Deleuze (1983) advocates justice principles that emerge from releasing active forces, the will to power (e.g., desire), and lines of flight that produce constant mutation and change that further enhances these forces. His notion of justice cannot be a rigid construction but attributed to the extent to which the overall quantity and quality of active forces dominate over reactive forces.Thus justice is not something that can be placed in rigid categories. But it can be determined by the overall development of active forces in a society versus their antithesis, reactive forces that know only nihilism, ressentiment, and fetishisms. Deleuze, following Nietzsche, sees the cosmos as composed of dynamic forces—that is, forces that are constantly combining, recombining, settling, attaining stasis, and undoing. Chance plays a good part in how these combine. Some forces are active forces; these lead to growth, self-actualization, transformation, desire, and becoming—Eros, or the life preserving force. Some are reactive forces; these lead to merely being, as well as to nihilism, bad conscience, the worship of ascetic ideals (fetishism), resentment—Thanatos, or the death wish. A human being thus has forces of overcoming as well as selfdestruction at work. It is the will to power that is behind the organization of forces; will to power is not domination but the activation and direction of forces. Desire, in the Deleuzian framework, is not based on lack, as is the case for Jacques Lacan (1977). For Lacan, desire is mobilized when one feels a sense of incompleteness. Desire is a reaction to lack. For Deleuze, however, desire is a will to power that knows only becoming, transforming, mutation, and overcoming. It is an active and productive force. Deleuze defines various models of societies as they emerge in historical conditions.12 In current capitalist state societies, there is a predominance of a machine of capture; that is, all phenomena is coded and axiomatized. Said in yet another way, all phenomena, including law, justice, and the legal subject (reasonable man in law) are codified in abstract categories and systematized in a closed self-referencing system.They are further brought within the purview of rationality and linear deductive logic. Once axiomatized—that is, once a major premise has been created, backed by the force of the state—then, through syllogistic reasoning, certain results follow and not others. Weber’s notion of formal rationality would be compatible. Foucault (1997), for example, shows how a new method of surveillance and control (“panopticism”) has come to dominate in society: more and more we are being observed, categorized, labeled, and subjected to some examination and potential intervention.

134

Social Justice

Deleuze has argued that the forces that put axioms (its logic) in motion are abstract machines.Thus principles of formal equality, the work of panopticism (Foucault), the forces of rationalization (Weber), division of labor (Durkheim), dialectical materialism (Marx), and Absolute Spirit (Hegel), to name a few, are equated with an abstract machine that produces particular results. For example, with principles of justice employed in a society valuing formal rationality, the juridic subject, and formal equality, a particular sense of fairness results; with panopticism, a regulated, normalized, and obedient subject is created in law that willingly accepts the notions of justice from which he or she is being constituted. Consider, for example, the notion of a rights-based justice, particularly the notion of formal equality that is incorporated in the Fourteenth Amendment of the U.S. Constitution.The incorporated equal protection clause basically says “equally situated should be equally treated.” Pashukanis links the development of this equivalence principle as well as the notion of the legal subject to competitive market forces (legal fetishism). Once established, the formal equality principle becomes an axiom that is the basis of conceiving justice. Legal reasoning provides the mechanism in its emphasis on deductive logic and syllogistic reasoning.13 This linear form of logic starts from a major premise, applies it to the minor premise, and arrives at a conclusion in law. It is this that is taught in law school and worshiped as the appropriate form of reasoning in law. Judges are often chastised for not following this rigid, linear form of logic. The state, then, cultivates reactive forces; by doing so, it impinges on human development. For Deleuze, the possibility of justice only emerges when these are challenged. His war machine is an orientation whereby fixed orders are challenged; they are, to use his term, “deterritorialized” in order to release the potentials that have been blocked (Deleuze and Guattari 1987). Thus the goal of the war machine is to undo the axioms that dominate us, to release active forces so that they may play out their effects in the world (he calls these “lines of flight”).The goal is also to take advantage of the tendency of capitalism, unlike previous modes of production, to continuously decode (“deterritorialization”) and recode (“reterritorialization”).These offer opportunities for alternative conceptualizations.14 Thus Deleuze’s notion of justice is connected with political economies and whether they tend to release lines of flight or whether they tend to capture them, turn them into system-supporting axioms, and reduce the person to being rather than to becoming. His notion of justice revolves around maximizing the opportunities to becoming other—to explore alternative forms of becoming, to experience new intensities, to engage in transformations. Patton (2000) put it succinctly: rather than embracing only “negative liberty” or positive freedom, Deleuze’s notion of justice equates with a critical freedom. Critical freedom means transgressing, transcending, and overcoming the very

Postmodern Forms of Justice

135

limits within which one has lived. They are turning points, critical points in which a qualitative change has taken place. Rendering justice must be connected with institutions and social structures that maximize critical freedoms. Turning points are what Rorty would call leaps in the dark. In court decisions, occasionally precedents and formal rationality is not followed or is at best strained. The energy released (lines of flight) and the active forces that emerged dramatically changed the imaginary and symbolic order and the system of justice. Americans and Australians are still feeling its effects (lines of flight) as various notions of justice have emerged.15 Thus a desire-based justice would evaluate a society in terms of the extent to which it limits or enhances critical freedom.16 Deleuze also cautions us. A desire-based form of justice may have both good and bad consequences. By moving away from categorized and systematized notions of justice and law, we also move away from evaluative standards; the danger is that processes of mutation, change, and transformation may have unintentional negative consequences (Patton 2000).We must always be vigilant as to these possibilities. Po stmode rn Feminists and Justice Postmodern feminists have challenged male-centered standards of justice. They draw particularly keen inspiration, even though critically based, from the works of Jacques Lacan, Jacques Derrida, Gilles Deleuze, and Felix Guattari. First-wave postmodern feminists such as Luce Irigaray, Helene Cixous, Toril Moi, and Julia Kristeva have brought much of this discussion into sharp relief (see Arrigo et al. 2005).17 Drucilla Cornell is arguably the leading theorist in postmodern feminism as it relates to law and justice; three of her works lay out the basic position of an ethical feminism: Beyond Accommodation (1999), At the Heart of Freedom (1998), and Transformations (1993). Cornell argues against standards of justice based on formal equality, in particular where women’s struggles are coached in language of equality with men. She finds one of the main culprits within feminist circles of this in Catherine MacKinnon (1987, 1989). Not only does Cornell critique her for her reliance on legal standards such as formal equality, but she also argues that MacKinnon’s call is more for a revenge politics, in that empowerment comes by way of a “reversal of hierarchies” (1999, 132). In a reversal of hierarchies, previously subordinated groups attempt to gain the dominant position in hierarchical arrangements and then dispose the dominant group in the same way they were. This maintains repressive practices, even while changing the relation of who is dominated. Cornell’s suggestions are inspired by the work of Jacques Lacan and Jacques Derrida. Lacan has indicated how gender roles are stabilized in the dominant order, particularly in culture and language, on one level, and in the unconscious, at another. Lacan, a revisionist Freudian who integrated linguistics in

136

Social Justice

the understanding of the unconscious and the workings of the psychic apparatus, indicated that the law of the father is the organizing principle within the unconscious, and hence all is tainted with the male voice.Women remain subordinated. Women, according to Lacan, are left out in the male-centered symbolic order. Cornell (1999), using Lyotard’s conception, says they are the “differend” and proposes an ethical feminism. She sees society as “ ‘peopled’ by individuals,‘sexed’ differently . . . a different way of being human” (191) Rather than a proceduralist conception of justice, Cornell advocates an equivalent evaluation. Proceduralist views of justice center discussion of justice on formal equality, best characterized by the Fourteenth Amendment to the U.S. Constitution in the equal protection clause. Syllogistic reasoning applied to situations of racist or sexist practices corrects these practices as standards of formal equality are applied.We must, Cornell argues, create an alternative space from which to think sexual differences and justice. As “sexuate beings,” individuals orient themselves differently in the world.18 To develop maximum possibilities for this orientation, she defends protecting the imaginary domain, an alternative space, and the many possibilities generated by unconventional thinking. There are two aspects to Cornell’s standard of equivalent evaluation. First “is a demand for women’s inclusion in the moral community of persons” (e.g., establishing free and equal standing); second is “a demand for fair, and thus, equitable treatment whenever our sexual difference needs to be taken into account” (1998, 11). She does not oppose addressing gender discrimination, but argues “if we are not equivalently evaluated as free persons as an initial matter, we will be unable to fairly correct that definitional inequality; our life chances and prospects will be limited by the very definition of our inequality” (20). She provides an example of a woman being defined as disadvantaged and a program initiated to correct for this disadvantage.This is patronizing.This is different from recognizing women as free persons to “be given the chance to live out their lives to the fullest and be provided with the full scope of rights, resources, capabilities, or primary good that a theory of distributive justice defends” (20). Her principle of equivalent evaluation would assure that a person’s right to self-representation as a sexuate being be protected.The standard of comparison should not be the male, but human beings as sexuate beings. The standard of equality imposes a similar measure, whereas sexuate beings are inherently dissimilar; nevertheless, everyone should be treated in respect to their differences, but not in denying resources, benefits, and rights that are available to all. Cornell suggests, then, a principle of justice that must recognize human beings as sexuate beings, providing them with a maximum amount of liberty, and provide principles that go beyond distributive principles of justice advocated by equality of well-being.This new principle would have to address the

Postmodern Forms of Justice

137

“question of what scope of rights, opportunities, and social goods would be needed to maintain freedom and equality” (20). Cornell provides one example of a change to recognize the nature of sexuate beings in revised law of adoption and laws pertaining to the family. Consistent with her equivalent evaluation principles, she argues that “we must demand that we are entitled to rights, not because we are mothers, but because we are persons” (104). In other words, it is not some notion of an abstract legal subject that commands. It is the imaginary domain of the sexuate being that is being protected. Thus, her reconstituted family would protect lovers who choose a domestic relationship; allow for the notion of custodial responsibility whereby one of two otherwise partners may relinquish his or her responsibility for being a caregiver and allow for another to share in the responsibility, even while keeping the partnership intact, but with the protection of governmental resources; and provide for adequate health care and minimum income for families. In this way the imaginary domain of sexuate beings would be protected. It would also assure stability for the upbringing of children while acknowledging the different possibilities of living as sexuate beings. Po stmode rn Marxists and Contemporary Integ rations A number of potential integrations of postmodern theory as it applies to justice studies are beginning to take place. Some have been especially keen on integrating Marxist analysis (a neo-Marxism or post Marxism) into a postmodern Marxism.They are the subject of much debate. Roger Burbach (2001) developed a postmodern Marxist framework and applied it to the phenomena of globalization. He argues that traditional Marxist principles need to be revised given the nature of current global society. An integration with postmodern thought, he theorizes, would revive it. Conceptions of justice must confront the growing globalization movement and its potential for domination. Thus the current information age, the Internet, new means of communication, and post-Fordism have led to new socioeconomic relations that have to be re-theorized to articulate possible principles of justice in a global order.A neo-Marxist view would be postmodern in “that it believes a multiplicity of social groups and fragmented classes exist in the era of globalization that have little or no relationship to the universalized proletariat enunciated by Marx and Engels” (Whyte 1991, 88).The issue becomes more of temporary alliances, fragmented goals, means of communication, and new methods of organization in a global order. Needed is the development of new conceptions of justice relevant to a global order. In a similar direction, Nick Dyer-Witherford, in Cyber-Marx (1999), has suggested an integration of Marxism with postmodern analysis. He identifies the Italian autonomist Marxists as amiable to this challenge, particularly the

138

Social Justice

works of Negri, and postmodernists Guattari and Deleuze.19 Rather than the mode of production, the notion of mode of information (Poster 1984) would capture an emergent postmodern force necessary for integration in the contemporary era. He (167) describes “concepts of social identity as decentered, transitory, and heterogeneous”. Notions of somehow accurately grasping totality are given up as illusory. Identities are unstable, finding reference in electronic media, commercial production, and emerging architectural spaces. Such theorists as Negri would argue that since capitalists in a global order now have to better communicate and organize, so do those in struggle.Those in struggle now have a new source for organization. It is the era of the postmodern proletariat (Dyer-Witherford 1999). Immaterial labor—“labor that produces immaterial products, such as information, knowledges, ideas, images, relationships, and affects” (Hardt and Negri 2004, 65)—will be key factors in postmodern society and its emergent institutions, structures, law, identities, and forms of justice. In writings with longtime coauthor Deleuze, Guattari has spoken against postmodernists such as Lyotard and Baudrillard. However, the notion of postmodern Marxist takes on a new significance in his coauthored book with Negri, Communists Like Us (1990) and his single-authored book Molecular Revolution (1984).The key for Negri, Guattari, and Deleuze are “rhizomatic” organizations, which are “decentered, divergent, transverse, nonhierarchical, lateral, or transverse modes of organization” (Dyer-Witherford 1999, 182). In other words, social movement theory needs to recognize the newly emergent forms of global organization of those in struggle which are nonhierarchical, often multiple issue in focus, defy specific leadership roles, and reach out to various other groups in struggle. Notwithstanding the always possible fascist forms emerging, these authors are pushing ahead in arguing that new forms of organization and new principles of justice will emerge, bottom-up, inductively. No singular form of society is privileged; rather, these postmodern Marxists argue that new spaces are developing within which diverse life forms can coexist. More recently, Negri (neo-Marxist) and Hardt (postmodern) have coauthored two influential books, Empire (2000) and Multitude (2004), which are inspired by Deleuzian concepts and stand, in many theorist’s eyes, as the present-day counterpart to Marx’s Communist Manifesto. In their view, justice cannot be refined in law but must ultimately find its expression in the social (Hardt and Negri 1994). Bringing a Marxist and a postmodern view to their critique of Rawls’s distributive justice principle, they review criticism that Rawls’s principles of justice neglect the sphere of production and prioritize the sphere of distribution and circulation. In so doing, the sources of justice are mystified. Hardt and Negri’s more recent writings hold much promise for the new global proletariat, the multitude, which will articulate new insights on

Postmodern Forms of Justice

139

justice based on global struggles. A multitude is composed of diverse people, each in their nuanced ways of being and becoming, which can never be reduced to an abstraction such as the juridic subject, or the people, or the working class. It is only within the multitude that a common position can emerge, that society can be formed. Foundational principles of justice can only be found in the processes inherent in the movement of the multitude. Another theorist, Duncan Kennedy (1997) in a book-length examination rejects the idea that judges are merely acting on false consciousness, or that they are tools of the elite. Judges, rather, act in bad faith and in denial. In justice rendering, they are more often constrained by factors outside of the requirements of justice itself while giving the appearance that they abided by the law. Henry and Milovanovic (1996) have developed a constitutive perspective in law and justice studies. Justice principles can be derived from their notion of harm (Milovanovic, forthcoming).That is, if we reject the legalist definition of crime and substitute the notions of harms of repression and reduction, we can also look at its reverse to discover principles of justice based on concern for the other and specify an active role in enhancing the other’s well-being; rather than repression and reduction, we have enhancement and care for the other. By defining justice in terms of concern with otherness, as in Derrida and Lyotard, and incorporating the ethics of care, overall justice is enhanced. Finally, several approaches have recently employed dynamic systems theory (chaos theory) to developing notions of justice. Robert Schehr (1996a, 1996b) integrates chaos theory in the development of a nonlinear perspective on social movement theory and justice. Principles of justice will emerge from far-fromequilibrium conditions (dynamic conditions) in the form of dissipative structures that are open ended and highly sensitive to individual input. Milovanovic (2004) has reconceptualized lawyer-client relations in terms of Paulo Freire’s dialogical pedagogy, Lacan’s four discourses, and chaos theory to indicate how new conceptions of justice may emerge in practice. Chris Williams and Bruce Arrigo (2001) have integrated chaos theory with anarchist theory in indicating how a better understanding of justice may emerge. Stephen Whyte (1991) has argued for a rapprochement between Habermas’s call for an ideal speech situation and Lyotard’s privileging petite narratives and local knowledges. He has also integrated feminist notions of an ethics of care with principles derived from Derrida and Lyotard on a duty to the other. In short, postmodern Marxisms as well as other recent integrations promise to provide fertile grounds for insightful analysis of current systems of justice and emergence.

Chapte r 10

Legal Struggles and Social Justice Attaining social justice by way of legal struggles is problematic. Weber’s notion of the conflict between formal rationality and substantive rationality is a key. On the one hand, law provides the tools for challenge in a court of law—an opportunity to be heard, to be able to name an injury in words recognized in law, to introduce evidence, to cross-examine, and to have an enforceable decision applied to injustices. On the other hand, it often undermines grassroots mobilization by denying genuine expression of those in struggle, allowing legal constructions to represent otherwise complex issues. It often relegates the final word to specialists (lawyers) denying indigenous understandings and redirects oppositional energy into legal channels that may take many years to resolve, thus often cooling out dissent. Ambivale nce in Legal Struggle s for Social Justice Under such doctrines as terra nullius, meaning supported in law, indigenous peoples have been repressed in law. In so-called Indian cases in the United States in the early to mid 1880s, higher justices provided further legal grounds for the repression of indigenous peoples. In addition, “Dred Scott cases” legitimized a second-class citizen status to African Americans.1 In Plessy v. Fergusson (1896), with its “separate but equal” standard established by the Supreme Court, legal repression of peoples continued.2 This doctrine was overturned in Brown v. Board of Education (1954), which decided that “separate but equal is inherently unequal.” This radical departure by the Supreme Court, lead to a movement away from focusing on conditions that fostered racism (i.e., employment, education, and medical care) and statistical disparities to focusing on perpetrators and requirements of proving individual intent. Some (Bell 1980) argued that Brown v. Board of Education was not based on enlightened thought but on concern with what the alternative might bring. More recently, gays, lesbians, and queer theorists have seen U.S. Supreme Court decisions restricting their aspirations for consensual sex as well as qualifiedly supporting them. Perhaps one of the main confrontations the law has had with social science is the finding that racism has influenced imposition of the death penalty. In 1987 143

144

Social Justice

the U.S. Supreme Court delivered McCleskey v. Kemp. Warren McCleskey, an African American, was convicted of homicide and sentenced to death for killing a white police officer. In his appeal, his lawyers presented some of the most sophisticated and credible studies in the literature on who receives the death penalty, the so-called Baldus study (1994).This study covered over two thousand murders in Georgia. In every instance, blacks convicted of homicide were statistically more likely to be sentenced to death than whites. Those charged with killing whites were eleven times more likely to receive a death sentence than those charged with killing a black victim. Even when the studies were refined, defendants charged with killing whites still had over four times the likelihood of a death sentence than in a case where the defendant was charged with killing an African American. The U.S. Supreme Court dismissed these statistics (by a one-vote margin) and said McCleskey had to prove discrimination only in his case.The court effectively made moot any statistical analysis of even the most blatant disparity (see also other implications of this decision on the criminal justice system and justice rendering by Cole [1999]). Three particular foci have emerged in various legal struggles. The first entails the ontological status of various peoples in struggle. This deals with the issue of the categories created—race, class, gender—and the notion of essentialism—to what degree are the categories real? The second foci deals with counternarratives of disenfranchised peoples. The third foci deals with general strategies and emerging conceptions for social change. Essentialism v. Anti-essentialism In order to have standing in law, one must show some particular form of being (i.e., status, category, etc.). Categories created can be helpful in redressing a grievance but can also be a hindrance to open social interaction, selfactualization, and social solidarity. Many critical theorists have argued that categories such as race, class, and gender are social constructions; they do not have any real or objective meaning (Butler 1990, 1993; Delgado and Stefancic 2001). They are created categories. Queer theory, for example, sets out to deconstruct these categories. Much current debate has to do with whether these categories are real (essentialism) or are only labels (anti-essentialism). This has become a continuous debate in present-day literature in defining people and forms of life. We will not try to resolve the dispute here. We do, however, note that there exists a dialectical dynamic in the usage of these categories by those seeking justice in law.At times, defining injustices necessitates creating self-labels and acting as if they are real in order to mobilize, to set political agendas, and to obtain redress in courts of law; at other times, these very categories can become a hindrance in understanding the other in his or her complexity. Matsuda (1996), for example, notes two forms of anti-essentialism. In regressive essentialism, the courts see all women or all African Americans as

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

145

not being alike and thus cannot claim some right. Progressive anti-essentialism argues for diversity within created categories, but only as a basis for more nuanced understanding and sensitivity to the range of possible differences. Counternarratives Sometimes referred to as legal storytelling, counternarratives attempt to give voice to disenfranchised people. Often borrowing from such notions as “differend” (Lyotard) or pas-toute (Lacan), this approach argues that dominant groups are not capable of understanding the plight of the disenfranchised and that only the latter are in a position to speak for themselves.This approach seems to lean toward essentialism and produces some internal tension for those who advocate it. Advocates of this position have been confronted with some sharp criticism (see Farber and Sherry 1997; Kennedy 1989; Posner 1997), which has led to some illuminating discussion (see Delgado and Stefancic 2001). Reversal of Hierarchies Early feminist literature was often concerned with reversal of hierarchies, where men were seen as dominant and women as subordinate in a hierarchical relation (MacKinnon 1987).The strategy was to reverse the power holders. Women would now be in a more influential position for change. On its own, this strategy simply produces a new dominant and dominated group.According to Drucilla Cornell (1998), this approach too quickly becomes a form of hate or revenge politics. Standpoint Epistemology In the early 1990s standpoint epistemology was developed in feminist and African American literature. In this approach, one would take the position of the disenfranchised and be sensitive to their constructions of reality. Critics were soon to argue that even these constructions are subject to the sterilizing effects of dominant discourses (i.e., legal discourse) and that the repressed (“subaltern”) often must use dominant discourse to express themselves, hence having their distinctive issues obfuscated; this relativism begs the question about ethical and moral standpoints. How does one evaluate a particular standpoint? Contingent Universalities In the early to mid 1990s contingent universalities emerged (Butler 1991). Faced with the compelling issue of what constitutes bona fide social change and the need for establishing some political programs and agendas for change (universalities), this position argues for the contingent nature of political agendas; that is, given historical conditions and diverse peoples, at best, we can only establish tentative platforms that can be the bases of focused attempts at

146

Social Justice

social change. But these agendas are always subject to reflection, critique, change, deletion, augmentation, and substitution.This position attempts to make accommodations to both essentialists and anti-essentialists in providing the grounds for agenda building, a sensitivity to changing forms of life, emerging principles of social justice, and positive social change. Critics, however, have often demanded the specification of an ethic that may be articulated with this position. Multitude A more recent conceptualization has emerged focused on global struggles that advocate the notion of the multitude (Negri and Hardt 2000, 2004).The inherent Marxian antagonism between two classes—the bourgeoisie and the proletariat—are dismissed and replaced by a new antagonism, empire versus the multitude. In this strategy, diversity is assumed— “a continuing plurality of its elements” (Negri and Hardt 2004, 82–83)—which evolves into network struggles often connected to the Internet, whereby “there is no center, only an irreducible plurality of nodes in communication with each other” (83). Network struggles create new ways of being, new subjectivities, new forms of life. One celebrates the emergence of self-organization into cooperatives, be they temporary units. This is consistent with Deleuze’s call for a people yet to come. In sum, the various strategies often are not expressed in pure form, nor are they totally conscious. Nevertheless, they act as conflicting background assumptions for those in struggle. Each strategy has been subjected to critique, response, and counter critique in the literature. In some cases, activists commit themselves to one strategy against various others. At other times, the held assumptions remain in a tentatively contradictory form guiding struggle.When these strategies interface with legal change, however, they are brought within the logic of formal rationality with its linear logic (i.e., deductive logic; topdown reasoning), reliance on precedents (stare decisis), focus on formal equality, assumption of legally defined signifiers, assumption of an individual selfconsciously directing conduct, and on continuous transformations of real events into the language of law. Some groups have argued that the legal arena does indeed provide them with at least some tools or weapons for social change; outside of that, they argue, philosophical discussion does not provide the necessary concrete tools for social change. Thus, the use of the legal arena brings contradictory results: on the one hand, grievances may lead to legal standing and possible redress instituting concrete changes in the amelioration of discriminatory practices; on the other, issues and activists are redefined in the language of law, reinforcing the ideology and legitimacy of the law, and thus the law itself is often part of the problem.This notion of contradictory results with unintended consequences is called the dialectics of struggle (Balbus 1977).3

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

147

Legal Struggle s We have selected seven areas plus the question of intersections for explication.This is not to say there are no others, nor that others will not emerge, nor that we are attempting to be exhaustive of the complex issues. We are more content in showing how some struggles for social justice have emerged in the legal arena and to explicate some of their respective elements.4 Critical Legal Studies (“Crits”) The crits formally arrived in the mid to late 1970s, with their first national conference in Madison, Wisconsin, in 1977, as a response to the rigidities of legal formalism (formal rationality). They were a small but very vocal and influential group of lawyers, often with positions at some of the most notable law schools in the country. They questioned the neutrality of law, the worship of deductive logic as the way decision making takes place, the very ideology imbedded in law.Their early focus was on trashing.The legal decision-making process and its institutions were critically examined in order to understand their basic ideological and political components. They even saw law school itself as a preparation for hierarchy.That is, the very subordination and worship of forms of legal reasoning as well as obedience to law professors assures a cheerful robot for the needs of capitalist economy.To the crits, law was politics and ideology.They launched strong polemics against contract law, tort law, antidiscrimination law, the nature of law school, and the narrow construction of the individual, responsibility, and justice, amongst others. In Critique of Adjudication ( fin de siècle) (1997), Duncan Kennedy explained that judges were not merely instruments of capitalist elites, but rather made decisions based on the Freudian defense mechanism of denial and the Sartrian notion of bad faith. They were neither fully conscious nor fully unconscious of their own decision making. Rather, they were half-conscious, attempting to decide the hard cases by showing that they did abide by the rule of law and did not have personal prejudices intruding on decision making. They saw themselves as strict constructionists abiding by the rule of law and formal rationality. The key theorist who has gone beyond trashing (currently called deconstruction) is Roberto Unger. Since the mid 1980s he has argued for a “superliberalism,” a more Weberian-inspired analysis for social change. In False Necessity (1987), for example, he outlines a blueprint for a nonhierarchical, responsive, and dynamic society. In more recent works, such as What Should Legal Analysis Become? (1996), he argues against formal rationality in law and advocates a more pragmatic orientation and experimentalism for positive social change and social justice. Formal rationality, he argues, restricts the development of new ideas, new visions, and alternatives in the pursuit of social justice.

148

Social Justice

Critical Feminist Studies (“Fem-Crits”) Having roots in the critical legal studies movement, critical feminists, most notably during the mid 1980s, reacted against the secondary status rendered to women within critical theory. In 1985 the theme of the Annual Conference of Critical Legal Studies was feminism and law. Social justice, they argued, was hard-pressed to emerge in law due to internal constraints. First, due to formal rationality’s focus on precedents (stare decisis), a body of laws was continuously being reinforced with male assumptions. Second, in response to violence in the home, women could only seek such remedies as diminished capacity when defending themselves. This in itself disempowers women defendants while giving them a voice in law. Third, the court focuses on narrow, single issues, while women have had to express a multitude of interrelated issues. For example, in a workplace with a hostile environment, a woman is often given a choice of taking the job or leaving it. Hence, contractual freedom is continuously reinforced, but by effectively reducing dissent and the voices of the disenfranchised. Several higher court cases in the United States have seemingly increased the rights of women. In Roe v.Wade (1973), the right for a limited abortion was established. However, others seemed to reinforce dominant male ideology. In EEOC v. Sears, Roebuck and Co. (1988), for example, Sears won its lawsuit by arguing that women were disproportionally underrepresented because they lacked interest in working in commission sales.This was due to the fact, Sears argued, that women historically have been more humane and nurturing rather than competitive and self-interested, as is the case for men.The court argued that the disparities were of women’s own choice.To win, following the logic of the Fourteenth Amendment’s equal protection clause, the women had to show equal interest. In Faragher v. City of Boca Raton (1998), the U.S. Supreme Court dealt with the notion of a sexually hostile atmosphere.5 In Oncale v. Sundower Offshore Services, Inc. (1998) the higher court dealt with workplace harassment. In both cases, a hostile work environment was narrowly defined and focused primarily on individual actions. Moreover, the subtle forms of harassment sometimes referred to as “petit apartheid” were often overlooked (see Russell and Milovanovic 2001). In short, fem-crits have recognized the dialectics of struggle. On the one hand, by using law as an instrument they obtain a standing in law and can eventually receive some redress of grievances; on the other, this reliance on law supports the legitimacy of law—its form of reasoning, its categories, its notion of a neutral forum to resolve conflicts. Fem-crits seeking social justice often have made use of three main strategies (Bartlett 1991, 2000). First, in a feminist legal method, one should ask the “woman question.” Here one should look below the surface of traditional

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

149

legal reasoning and ask how the voices of women are being denied. Second, fem-crits make use of feminist practical reasoning. Here the unique concrete experiences of women should be central. Third is consciousness-raising. The focus is on collective empowerment. In short, advocates for social justice such as Bartlett are arguing for a deconstruction and a reconstruction. Feminist postmodernists, such as Drucilla Cornell and Judith Butler, have derived guidance from the theoretical insight of Jacques Lacan, a revisionist Freudian who introduced a linguistic component in understanding the unconscious. Feminist postmodernists arguing for social justice have identified the male-dominated discourse, how unique desire is channeled into male categories, how gender identities are constructed in discourse itself and are imbedded in the unconscious, and how a dominant phallocentric symbolic order resists constructions that deviate from the male form. Cornell (1993, 1999) has suggested strategies in the struggle for social justice. First, drawing from Cixous (1999), she argues for retelling the myth. In other words, in telling and retelling mythology the male voice is often privileged. The strategy is to tell it in a way that surfaces denied voices. In other words, we can re-create conventional stories to include otherwise denied voices—the contributions of women in history, the struggles of indigenous peoples, the rediscovery of roots. Second, she advocates utopian thinking and privileging the imaginary domain. We must support thinking otherwise. We can reimagine the myths of the past, articulate otherwise unspeakable desire and create a different reality where voices are resurrected. It is a call for utopian thinking. It demands “the continual exploration and re-exploration of the possible and yet also the unrepresentable” (Cornell 1999, 169).Third, there is an inherent slippage of meaning in discourse itself; discourse itself always says more than it intends, yet always less. Here lies the opportunity to create new meanings, new understandings, a new basis for struggles for social justice. Drawing from Irigaray, Cixous, and Kristeva, Cornell offers the idea of mimesis, by which subordination is turned into affirmation (147–152). In other words, she argues for the creative use of metaphors that offer some latitude in meaning. There is always an excess in these metaphors that provides the potential for something new. A surplus of meaning is generated that points to different understandings of what could be. Consider, for example, the strategic use of the recently self-imposed label of queer theory by scholars interested in sexual preference issues. Or consider the many existing sexual metaphors where the male is portrayed as dominant and the female subordinate.The task would be to reload the metaphor so that celebration of differences is the message— without difference being the basis of subordination. Judith Butler (1990) adds to this list by advocating contingent universalities and practices that undermine repetition—that is, actively disrupting practices that reinforce subordination.

150

Social Justice

Critical Race Theory (“CRT”) The civil rights movements of the 1960s were followed by retrenchment by the courts of the late 1960s and early 1970s whereby many of the new rights won were substantially reduced. But there was a resurgence of activism in the 1980s. These developments contributed to critical race theory that emerged more formally in the late 1980s and early 1990s.The CRTs were to argue that the fem-crits, even though going beyond the crits, did not do enough to consider people of color. In 1989 the CRTs organized their first annual conference in Madison, Wisconsin. In the mid 1990s to the present, a continuing differentiation of those in critical legal studies now includes critical Latino(s) studies, queer theory, and Asian-American crits. The CRTs challenged the very foundations of the liberal order. Notions of formal equality, neutral principles in law, and forms of legal reasoning were all seen as supportive of an order devoid of voices of people of color. The struggle for social justice within the legal arena was seen as offering both the potential for change as well as the occasion for unintentionally reinforcing the rule of law. The core concepts of the CRTs have been well expressed by Matsuda et al. (1993) and Delgado and Stefancic (2001). These concepts include the following: racism is at the core of American life; race is a category created by dominant groups for instrumental purposes; the legal apparatus is not valueneutral and it is not colorblind; the struggle for social justice by people of color is part of a larger struggle by other disenfranchised peoples; struggles for social justice must focus on the experiential knowledges of people of color; and only through a historical analysis connected to specific struggles can new concepts of social justice begin to emerge. CRTs offer a jurisprudence of color as a strategy for attaining social justice. Law is inherently political and should therefore be used pragmatically, as an instrument for social change. “Legalism is a tool of necessity” (Matsuda 1996, 6). CRTs have an uneasy alliance with postmodernists.“People of color,” they often argue, “cannot afford to indulge in deconstruction for its own sake” (24). Others, however, do see the utility of integrating some aspects of postmodern analysis (Crenshaw 1993; Lawrence 1987; see also the case made for a useful integration by Arrigo et al. 2005, 69–82). CRTs also focus on counternarratives— “words are part of the struggle” (Matsuda 1996, xiii). Retelling stories to include people of color as essential actors is also a prominent strategy. Consider, for example,Alice Randall’s The Wind Done Gone, a parody of the classic Gone with the Wind. In this book,African American slaves are presented as much more active and creative agents, and the white plantation owners are seen in a negative light. Another strategy is consciousness-raising. Matsuda recommends strategies for “learning to talk”—that is, to create spaces in which people of many ways

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

151

of life can “talk nonconfrontationally about race, gender, and sexuality” (1996, 125).Within these spaces a different discourse may take form and reach a critical mass for social change toward social justice. Paulo Freire’s (1973, 1985) notion of dialogical pedagogy and the pedagogy of the oppressed is an especially useful theoretical framework to understanding this process. In the postmodern version, Lacan’s four discourses are useful, particularly the discourse of the analyst (see Arrigo et al. 2005, 69–82).6 CRTs also recognize the contradictions in their struggle. Crenshaw (1993), for example, has critiqued the musical group “2 Live Crew” for their depiction of African American women.The question was whether exploding stereotypes, the supposed motivation of the group, does indeed do so, or whether it sustains the very stereotypes it is trying to undermine. CRTs recognize the dialectic nature of the struggle in both using and trying to disavow law in their struggles for social justice. Critical Latino/a Studies (“LatCrits”) LatCrits have focused their attention on immigration policy, farm workers, land rights in the Southwest, bilingual schooling, and language rights. LatCrits include Mexican Americans, Cuban Americans, and Puerto Ricans. They have opposed the English-only movement of the 1990s, whereby dominant groups insisted on English being the only official language. Language for the LatCrits was seen as an inherent element of their very culture. The Treaty of Guadalupe Hidalgo (1848), ending the U.S.–Mexican War from 1846 to 1848, specified the Rio Grande as the border between Mexico and Texas, and ceded much territory to the United States (present-day California, Texas, New Mexico, Nevada, and areas of Utah, Arizona, and Colorado). Mexican Americans who remained in these areas were provided specific rights, including all those guaranteed to citizens of the United States. In other words, Mexican Americans were now incorporated within the legal framework of U.S. law. However, a long history of discrimination followed (see Gonzalez 2000;Valencia et al. 2004). The murder case People v. Zammora (1944) is clear as to possible justice realization in law (see Valencia et al. 2004). During World War II and notably after the attack on Pearl Harbor, racial conflict in Los Angeles was high. Rumors began that some U.S. servicemen were attacked by young Mexican Americans who felt a Mexican American woman was insulted. Servicemen and others responded by attacking so-called zoot-suiters (identified as such because of their distinct dress, conduct, and language).Ten days of riots were to follow. The “Sleepy Lagoon” trial (People v. Zammora) saw the initial murder conviction overturned, but the California Court of Appeals noted that the claim of “racial prejudice” was “without foundation and . . . [had] no support in the record.”

152

Social Justice

In the educational arenas Latinos have sought social justice through the courts. In San Antonio Independent School District v. Rodriguez (1973), the higher court addressed the issue of whether the financing of schools by property taxes went against the equal protection clause of the Fourteenth Amendment. The key contention was that differences in wealth produce differences in education, which goes against formally equal treatment. The higher court rejected this principle.The majority opinion had it that “it is not the province of this Court to create substantive constitutional rights in the name of guaranteeing equal protection of the laws” (Valencia et al. 2004, 33).The dissent by Marshall and Douglas, however, claimed “the Court today decides, in effect, that a State may constitutionally vary the quality of education which it offers its children in accordance with the amount of taxable wealth located in the school districts within which they reside” (35). A decade and a half later, the Texas Supreme Court in Edgewood Independent School District v. Kirby (1989) found the funding methods unconstitutional. Another area where the courts have provided both reprieve as well as support for substantively discriminating practices is in issues of language. The English-only movement of the 1990s insisted that English should be the only official language. Mexican Americans have, in opposition, cited the Treaty of Guadalupe Hidalgo as support for Spanish speaking peoples. Valencia et al. (2004) documented the long history of multilingual communities in the United States. Indigenous populations, they point out, already had over one thousand specific languages before the arrival of Europeans. During colonial times, they also noted large groups of German- and French-speaking peoples had arrived. Perhaps most noteworthy in justice seekers via law, is the U.S. Court of Appeals Court case Yniguez v. Arizonans for Official English (1995). In 1988 a little over half the voters of the state of Arizona voted to have English as the official language and that all business in the state should be transacted in English.This was challenged by Maria Kelly F.Yniguez, a state employee.The federal court agreed with her, and the court of appeals did also. However, when it was appealed the U.S. Supreme Court vacated the court of appeal’s decision as being moot since Yniguez had left her job. However, the Arizona Supreme Court was to subsequently agree to the basic logic of the court of appeals. More recently, Proposition 227 was passed in California (1998) banning bilingual education.A U.S. court of appeals in Valeria v. Davis (2002) ruled that Proposition 227 did not violate the equal protection clause of the Fourteenth Amendment. Activists, in search for another strategy, devised the “English Plus” initiative.The primacy of English was not challenged, but additional language acquisition was argued to be desirable and should be encouraged.This would encourage diversity (Valencia et al. 2004). LatCrits have been active within and without law in their pursuit of social justice.There have been several occasions where the higher court has effectively

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

153

stymied legal social change. This has been tempered somewhat by activists making use of new strategies to overcome restrictive legal findings and propositions. In short, struggles for social justice within the legal arena have provided mixed results. Asian American Crits Leading Asian American scholars, much like LatCrits, have focused on immigration, education, stereotypes, national origin, and language issues.The stereotype of the Asian as the perfect minority group— “quiet, industrious, with intact families and high educational aspiration and achievement”—is, according to Delgado and Stefancic (2001, 81–82), not only untrue, excluding the many poor and needy, but also the basis of much resentment when other disenfranchised groups are compared and then categorized as blameworthy for not attaining what the Asian stereotype has gained. Connected to this stereotype is the myth that Asians are overly successful and in fact the cause of periodic economic crises in the United States. This thinking often produces an environment for hostile actions by those suffering the fallout of periodic downturns in the economy and seeking convenient escape goats (see Matsuda 1996). Asian American crits are quick to point out the support for internment of Japanese Americans by the very highest court of the United States. Following the attack on Pearl Harbor in World War II, over 100,000 Japanese Americans were rounded up and placed in internment camps surrounded by barbed wire. Statistical data clearly indicates that no espionage or disloyalty existed and that hysteria and fabrications were the basis of the violent dispossession. In Korematsu v. United States (1944), the U.S. Supreme Court legitimized these internments—a truly sad chapter in U.S. history. In 1988 reparation for those dispossessed was established. Delgado and Stefancic (2001) also point out that at the time of being rounded up and subsequent appeals, regrettably, no other major disenfranchised group supported the interned Japanese Americans. Asian Americans, much like other minorities, have centered much of their struggle for social justice on language.“Language can construct understanding, language can assault, and language can exclude.” Thus “words have power . . . words are part of the struggle” (Matsuda 1996, xiii). Racist speech demeans, subordinates, reduces one to false stereotypes. According to Matsuda, speech is racist if (1) “the message is of racial inferiority,” (2) “the message is directed against a historically oppressed group,” and (3) “the message is persecutory, hateful, and degrading” (1993, 36). Racist speech, she tells us, has an uneasy alliance with First Amendment protections. Lawrence (1993) argues that racist speech is tantamount to fighting words, the later being recognized as an exception to First Amendment protections (see Chaplinsky v. New Hampshire 1942). According to Lawrence, “the experience of being called ‘nigger,’ ‘spic,’ ‘jap,’ or

154

Social Justice

‘kike’ is like receiving a slap in the face. The injury is instantaneous. There is neither an opportunity for intermediary reflection on the idea conveyed nor an opportunity for responsive speech.” Thus racist speech should not have First Amendment protection: “the perpetrators’ intention is not to discover truth or initiate dialogue, but to injure the victim” (68). This logic, however, fell on deaf ears. On June 21, 1990, a cross was placed on an African American family’s front yard and burned. The offender was arrested. He claimed his act was a political act and thus protected by the First Amendment. The Minnesota Supreme Court rejected this position In the Matter of the Welfare of R.A.V. (1991). In their words,“the burning cross is itself an unmistakable symbol of violence and hatred on virulent notions of racial supremacy. It is the responsibility, even the obligation, of diverse communities to confront such notions in whatever form they appear” (cited in Matsuda et al. 1993, 134). The judges decided based on history and context in understanding what cross-burning meant.The case was appealed to the U.S. Supreme Court, where the defendant’s position was supported (see R.A.V. v. City of St. Paul 1992). None of the context or history of cross-burning was addressed in the majority decision—“the Ku Klux Klan, lynching, nightriders, the Reconstruction.” In effect, the U.S. Supreme Court repressed a century of historical hatred and violence directed to African Americans. Asian American crits support an outsider jurisprudence. Organizations such as the Asian Law Caucus, the Asian American Bar Association, CAPAL (Conference on Asian Pacific American Leadership), and MANAA (the Media Action Network of Asian Americans) have attempted to work within law and outside of law to counter negative stereotypes of Asian Americans. Another component of struggles for social justice, according to Matsuda (1996), is consciousness-raising. She suggests a strategy whereby spaces are generated for open dialogue, often about misconstrued identities. To start discussions and generate insights into identity construction of self and others, Matsuda asks her students questions such as “Describe something you remember from childhood about how you learned gender roles” or “Describe a time you heard a racist, sexist, anti-Semitic, or homophobic comment.” Gay/Lesbian Studies It has been argued that whereas gender is the key category for analysis for feminists, sex and sexuality is the key category for gay and lesbian studies (Abelove et al. 1993). In other words, sex and gender can be distinguishable. Feminism is more locked into the binary, male and female. Gay and lesbian studies, along with queer theory, problematizes the connection between gender and sexuality (Cossman 2004). Much debate continues in the literature. Queer theorists are quick to point out that feminists, in their acceptance of depicting gender in its binary form without asking questions about diverse

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

155

expressive forms of sexuality, are reinforcing the very categories that should be questioned. Feminists, on the other hand, criticize gay and lesbian theorists for their weak notions of ethicality, their non-examination of material conditions of disenfranchised women, and of dominant discourses that are gendered. Others (Butler 1997; Cossman 2004) argue that both approaches should be used as each informs the other. The question of a same-sexed marriage has been litigated in two recent court cases. In Baker v.Vermont (1999), a unanimous decision by the Supreme Court of Vermont found that making same-sex marriages illegal was a violation of rights granted by the Vermont constitution. In response, the legislators of Vermont developed a civil union clause for same-sex couples. The Massachusetts Supreme Court, in two cases, Goodridge v. Department of Public Health (2003) and In re Opinion of Justices to the Senate (2004), first struck down heterosexual-only marriage laws and declared “only full civil marriage, and not civil unions, would suffice under state constitution.” However, in a Florida federal appeals court, Lofton v. Secretary of Children and Family Services (2004) upheld a Florida law banning homosexuals from adopting. The theoretical examination of the efficacy of same-sexed families has been forcefully discussed by Martha Fineman (1995) and Drucilla Cornell (1998). Fineman, theorizing from more traditional feminist theory, argued for both abolishing the legal category of marriage and for subsidiaries for those in these categories. She begins by arguing for a centrality of the mother/child dyad.The father can be so only to the extent that he can show that he is a primary caregiver, in many ways following many of the functions of the traditionally understood mother’s role. Contract law is the center of any union between men and women. Each negotiates a contract for their subsequent relationship rather than reducing themselves to the dictates of state law and its definition of appropriate relations. Thus sexual relations are consensual and contractual. Parents can be two or three or more in number; sexual relations are not an inherent necessity for the caretaker role. Cornell’s (1998) difference with Fineman is with the kind of intimacy that Fineman privileges. Cornell extends Fineman’s notion of sexual intimacy. Both gays and lesbians as well as straights (men and women) should be able to be caregivers (see also Kramer 2004). Fineman, Cornell argues, is still privileging the biological family; Cornell wants to liberate the family from traditional state-supported roles. Accordingly, Cornell offers three suggestions for a new form of family. Cornell’s (1998, 123) first suggestion is that “gays, lesbians, straights, and transgendered” should not be bound by a heterosexually defined notion of marriage, supported and subsidized by the state; rather, each should be able to express their sexuate being in their own ways.7 What should be protected in civil statutes are lovers. Her second suggestion is that it would be the responsibility

156

Social Justice

of the government to “provide a structure for custodial responsibility for children” (125). In other words, sexual expression and custodial responsibility of caretakers would be split. Thus, “two women friends who were not sexually involved could assume parental responsibility for a child; three gay men could assume parental responsibility for a child; and, finally, a traditional heterosexual couple could also assume parental responsibility for a child.” Hence, each child would have custodial parents, a family recognized in law. Her third component is some form of income support for families. “Mothering should no longer be a class privilege” (128).Thus her program includes “publicly funded child care as part of parental entitlement” and maximal sexual freedom of expression for the custodial caretakers (“parents”), as well as stability and support for children (128). Queer Theory (Queer-Crits) Queer theory, sometimes argued as being separate from lesbian and gay studies, sometimes as a subset of gay and lesbian studies, goes beyond fem-crits in arguing against a dualism, either man or woman.8 Assuming the most extreme form of anti-essentialism, queer theorists argue identity is not fixed, biologically or psychologically. Rather, it is a social construct. Identities are unstable and changeable; in fact, there should be no attempt to create stable categories, for they produce closure (see de Lauretis 1994a). Being queer is always a becoming; there is no final point of fixed identity (Halperin 1995; Eldeman 1995; Jagose 1996). As Butler (1990, 24–25) says,“gender is not a noun . . . [it] is always a doing.”What accounts for the fixity of the binary, man/woman, are thus political, ideological, and discursive determinants. Arguably, its early key groundbreaking theorists were Judith Butler, who wrote Gender Trouble (1990), Bodies That Matter (1993), and Undoing Gender (2004), and Teresa de Lauretis, who wrote “Queer Theory: Lesbian and Gay Sexualities” (1991; see also her later work [1994b], where she distances herself from the term). Butler’s early work (1990) criticized feminists for trying to essentialize women, which had the effect of creating a binary notion of sexuality.9 Inadvertently, in its struggles for social justice, feminism sustained and legitimized two distinct classes—women and men—and thus closed options of being otherwise. For example, in the Twyman v.Twyman (1993) case, an ongoing sadomasochistic sexual relationship between husband and wife was terminated by the wife, who also pursued a legal claim for the emotional injuries she suffered. Queer theorists would be quick to point out that the claimed harm and the legal discourse employed reinforced dominant categories of man/ woman and male/female, the very categories that needed critical analysis, disrupting, and debunking (Butler 2004; Cossman 2004; Halley 2004). The U.S. Supreme Court decision Lawrence v. State of Texas (2003) involved two gay men arrested in 1998 for having consensual anal sex in their home.

Legal Struggles and Social Justice

157

The Court reconsidered and overturned a previous U.S. Supreme Court case, Bowers v. Hardwick (1986), which stood as the anti-homosexual legal statement for seventeen years.10 The 6-3 decision in Lawrence specified that “liberty presumes an autonomy of self that includes freedom of thought, belief, expression, and certain intimate conduct” (1).11 The majority ruled that “the liberty protected by the Constitution allows homosexual persons the right to make this choice” (6). Looking to queer theory in relation to anti-sodomy statutes and the Lawrence decision,Weinstein and DeMarco (2004) argue that law dealing with the sex/gender binary is problematized in a radical way. For example, “what would the law prescribe in the case of a woman-identified-female who engaged in the prohibited sexual acts with a female-to-male transgendered partner (a person who identifies as a male but is anatomically female)?” Further,“how, too, might the law treat that same woman-identified-female if she were to practice this prohibited conduct with a male-to-female transsexual (a person who has, for argument’s sake, completed the whole battery of surgeries, takes estrogen, and has been completely sex reassigned) or an intersexed person (one of the 1/2000 people who does not, for one reason or another fit in either the male or female categories)?” Not only heterosexual and homosexual but also bisexual dualities will be fundamentally problematized. Given the two examples above, “what would constitute a homosexual sexual interaction? What criteria would we use to determine whether the individuals involved were of the same or different sex?”“How would gender figure in determining orientation?” (11). In sum, queer theory radically resituates discussion of identity and asks how they are continuously in flux without boundaries. Addressing this issue in social justice struggles in the days to come will no doubt lead to radically new vision as to personhood, identity, sexual orientation, and ways of being.12 Intersections Intersectionality stands for the idea of multiple affiliations, identities, consciousness, and loyalties, many of which are in conflict. Delgado and Stefancic (2001, 51) define its study as “the examination of race, sex, class, national origin, and sexual orientation, and how their combination plays out in various settings.” Intersectional persons thus often find themselves in complex relations that disadvantage (Crenshaw 1993). In other words, situations of double, triple, and quadruple jeopardy. How should we consider each negative factor? Separately? Cumulatively? Consider a working-class, gay African American male. Consider the various additive factors that place him in a disadvantaged position in dominant society.13 Delgado and Stefancic ask, “What role do intersectional persons play in social movements like gay liberation or feminism?” (2001, 52). Consider also

158

Social Justice

the conflict between and among the various locations. Crenshaw (1993) explores how African American females often find themselves at the intersections of sexual and racial subordination in her examination of gangster rappers such as “2 Live Crew” and their depiction of black females. Is this the case, as some argue, of exploding stereotypes, or does it further reinforce domination? Given the notion of intersectionality, how then does one strive for social justice? That is, how does one prove additive, separate, and cumulative effects in a court of law? How does one get standing before the law? Does one do so by inadvertently reinforcing an essentialist argument?

Chapte r 11

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

The Dialectics of Legal Repression, a classic study by Isaac Balbus (1977), shows how grassroots struggles are channeled into legal categories, discourses, and procedures, often demobilizing those in struggle, or “cooling out the mark.” Issues are often framed narrowly, dividing struggles and redefining their intent (see Cole and Foster 2001; Delgado and Stefancic 1994; Milovanovic 1988; Unger 1996).1 The goals of dissidents are often depoliticized. Activist lawyers, too, often inadvertently reinforce the ideology of law at the cost of the goals of those in opposition.These practices and outcomes have been defined in terms of the dialectics of struggle. Along with external dialectics of struggle are internal ones. Mary Bernstein (2002, 85) argues that “by advocating for rights based on an identity such as ‘woman’ or ‘gay,’ identity movements reinforce the identity on which the movements are based and, as a result, fail to recognize diversity, homogenize and ignore differences within the identity category, and inhibit the creation of a ‘politics of commonality.’ ” In other words, terms such as “race,” “class,” and “gender” are ultimately categories without any real meaning.They are appropriated in struggle as rallying points for identity politics, but, ironically, they may often become hindrances for fuller appreciation of differences (see Klatch 2002; Robnett 2002). Grassroots struggles are necessarily group processes and focus on group level justice. While these struggles can be and have been supported by legal struggles and/or support legal struggles, they are important and progressive in their own rights and often allow for a broader understanding of justice by those engaged in and witness to these struggles.This chapter, therefore, is more concerned with group struggles and only secondarily with individual struggles. When group struggles are created in the interest of social justice they have an impact far beyond the individual named in the case and are most often supported by others in the interest of social justice.This is not to say that individual concerns are not important; rather, our focus is more on how social movements take form and what role they play in social change and the development of social justice. Some suggest that it is not in the legal arena that social justice ultimately takes place but by collective action and/or the threat of such action. 159

160

Social Justice

Consider, for example, Brown v. Board of Education (1954). Bell (1980) has argued that the U.S. Supreme Court responded in this way not because of enlightened, rational, human concerns. Instead, what had more weight was the potential for mass disturbance as black soldiers returning from the Korean war and the worldwide push by communist ideologies created a potentially volatile group who would not look kindly on sitting in the back of the bus. The definition or ideals of justice advocated in the various social movements examined were not always consistent between movements or even within movements.2 Ideas of individuals within movements also changed over time, allowing for further variation. Here we examine movements as ideal types for the purpose of organizing the chapter. Greater variation appears in the real world than in narratives of them. It should be noted, however, that no movement is a monolith, and many of the movements examined here had overlapping ideas, interests, and support. Social movements are an expression of a desire for justice that has gone unmet.3 When those concerned for social justice, including equality, need, and/or desert, find that their demands are not considered or seriously addressed by the political structures in place, they will often turn to social mobilization in an attempt to be heard and/or attain justice (McAdam 1982). Movements themselves inform our understandings of justice. Those involved in social movements are influenced by their involvement and they influence those witnessing these movements. Shriver, Miller, and Cable (2003) document the development of women’s political self-efficacy within the movement to obtain rights and benefits for those experiencing Gulf War illness. As these authors explain, activism develops participants’ self-confidence as well as their understandings of social structure and social justice. The activists studied indicated that they had become involved in the movement out of concern for family members’ access to healthcare. During the course of their activist work they became aware of the needs of others for access to healthcare (within and outside the military), as well as the workings of a Veterans Administration system that they found was not designed to benefit veterans. This resulted in the development of a group of activists engaged in a variety of movement issues—including increasing access to healthcare in general, improving veteran’s benefits, and pressuring for access to information regarding Gulf War syndrome. Along with their previous activist experiences they developed a sophisticated level of understanding of and concern for social justice. This finding is similar to the political development of environmental activists described by Cole and Foster (2001).Therefore, as activists engage in the process of demanding justice, they are also developing their own understandings of justice and building their own processes for expression of justice. Justice understandings also inform the process and success of movements. The democratic or nondemocratic nature of the movements themselves can

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

161

support or damage movements.The Greek philosophers examined earlier are instructive to our understanding of democracy.While the ancient Greeks were far from inclusive in their debates, their understandings of democracy went beyond current notions that are often limited to voting rights. Open inclusive debate and discussion are also central to democratic decision making.As we will see in the following analyses movements have at times failed in their own democratic practice thereby limiting their success and impact upon social justice. Racial/Ethnical Justice African American Movements for Justice We begin with the civil rights era in the United States because it is often raised when considering the impact of social movements upon ideas of justices, concrete changes toward justice, and the development of individuals within movements themselves.The movements for African American justice inspired and informed the many movements that followed. None of these movements were homogeneous in their demands, tactics, or outcomes.We cannot examine each organization or group seeking justice in the short space here. Instead, we will review several and offer an analysis for understanding their impact. Justice demands vary by social movements. They also vary within the organizations themselves. In a broad sense, these movements attempt to fulfill the demands of justice—equality, needs, and deserts—as outlined by Miller (1999). Equality in education, housing, work/wages, healthcare, and other social needs were often the focus of movements for racial/social justice. Fulfillment of needs in each of these areas fell short because of the racial/ethnic prejudices that pervaded society during these movements and because of the structural biases that resulted in inadequate schools, housing, employment, healthcare, and other basic needs. The civil rights movements of the previous century did not bring the sort of justice required of Miller’s (1999) principles of justice. In general, African Americans, Latinos, and other racial/ethnic minority groups still suffer inequalities. They often lack basic resources and come out quite unfavorably compared to whites in carrying through distributive principles of justice, such as needs, equality, and deserts. Oprah Winfrey,Tiger Woods, and other successful minorities serve as the exceptions rather than the rule for racial/ethnic minorities in the United States. Oliver and Shapiro (1997) documented the continuing inequalities between blacks and whites. Their text illustrates the economic inequalities that persist and include greater likelihood for blacks than whites of impoverishment, unemployment, and lower returns on educational success. In the United States, African Americans and other minority groups have not yet won justice, based on distributive principles of equality, needs, and deserts. However, the movements of the civil rights era did bring about progressive

162

Social Justice

social change and improved conditions.These movements resulted in changes to everyday life that were not forthcoming prior to the movements. As Zinn (1995) reminds us, it is social movements that create progressive social change. Politicians often step in front of movements after they have developed broad support. However, as the civil rights era clearly shows, no mainstream political official was pushing for the sorts of changes demanded by these movements. Instead, it was an active minority of people engaged in struggle that was responsible for the progress of the era. These activists did not appear without a historical understanding and, in many cases, historical experience of struggle and movements. Included among those active in the civil rights struggles of the 1950s and 1960s were persons formerly active in seeking the release of conscientious objectors imprisoned for opposing U.S. involvement in World War II and refusing to fight in that war. Bennett (2003) chronicles the movement, while Zinn (1995) explains the importance and reasoning of conscientious objectors and others who stood against U.S. involvement in World War II. Of course, African Americans had been in struggle in the United States against injustice for centuries before the modern civil rights era. Frederick Douglass was among those alive to witness the end of slavery and the beginnings of deplorable repressive conditions, such as Jim Crow laws and other racist practices, against which the civil rights movements were to rise.Ture and Hamilton (1992, xviii) quote Frederick Douglass’s famous West India emancipation speech of August 1857 in the introduction of their text to illustrate the necessity of protest: Those who profess to favor freedom yet deprecate agitation, are men who want crops without plowing up the ground; they want rain without thunder and lightning. . . . Power concedes nothing without demand. It never did and it never will. Find out just what any people will quietly submit to and you have found out the exact measure of injustice and wrong which will be imposed upon them, and these will continue till they are resisted with either words or blow, or with both. The limits of tyrants are prescribed by the endurance of those whom they oppress. Martin Luther King Jr., Malcolm X, and Muhammad Ali: The Mighty Trinity. Booker T. Washington, a contemporary of Douglass, had a very dif-

ferent vision of methods for seeking justice. Washington encouraged African Americans to work within the system in order to develop their educational and economic prospects in order to become productive and respected citizens (Ture and Hamilton 1992). Washington was more interested in assimilation and reform than in protest and radical change. Martin Luther King Jr. was the grandson of two African Americans who may have been influenced by

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

163

Washington. Rev. A. D. Williams and Jennie C. Parks, King’s maternal grandparents, were graduates of Morehouse College and Spelman College. Their daughter, Alberta, also graduated from Spelman before marrying Mike (who later changed his and his first son’s first names to Martin) King. Mike King, born into a rural farm family with little education, became a laborer and a successful preacher. He developed a congregation of middle-class African American families to support the financial needs of his church. He also became politically active within the context of local elections and the few small struggles of that time in Atlanta (Branch 1988). Though his grandparents clearly followed the Washington way of educational attainment and his father sought economic security for his church while engaging in some political struggle, the legacy of Martin Luther King Jr. was far more aligned with the understanding of justice struggle espoused by Douglass. Most of the U.S. public became aware of King Jr.’s activism with the much media-covered Montgomery bus boycotts of 1955–1956. Notwithstanding King’s and others’ places at the forefront of these movements, social change occurred not because of any one leader, but because of the commitment of a large minority in the country who were willing to maintain oppositional activity and the growing numbers of those willing to support those movements.The pressure these activists and their supporters put on the political structure ultimately led to the progressive changes of the time. The National Association for the Advancement of Colored People (NAACP) actively supported mainstream mostly middle-class ideas of progress that Booker T.Washington would have approved. Growing impatient with these tactics, King formed the Southern Christian Leadership Conference (SCLC), which later spawned the Student Non-violent Coordinating Committee (SNCC). SCLC and SNCC were more radical than NAACP because they were willing to demand acceleration toward justice and to take direct action to attain it. The nonviolence principle of these organizations, however, was problematic for Malcolm X and other black nationalists, some of whom were active within the Nation of Islam (NOI), the Black Panthers, and other organizations. While Malcolm X and other black nationalists did not espouse violence for the sake of violence, neither did they require passivity in the face of attack (Marable 2003). From the bus boycotts forward, King was known and unknown to mainstream U.S. society. He was known as the persona presented by the mainstream media and often unknown for his constant reconsideration and expansion of his ideas of justice. Branch (1988), Dyson (2000), Garrow (2004), and others have documented the life and impact of King from a variety of perspectives. These texts are important in understanding the complexities of King, the movements he was involved in, and the movements that were going on around him. Within these complexities is a clear and consistent dedication to social

164

Social Justice

justice that developed through King’s own struggles and through the movements of the time. This development is of importance and particular concern for this examination.While other texts have articulated and cataloged the details of the victories of the civil rights movements, here we are attending to the struggles and their impact on ideas, expectations, and experiences of justice. The life and work of King within social movements is a study in the development of ideas through grassroots struggle. As he worked within a variety of movements, the movements had an impact on his ideas. His work and ideas also had an impact on those around him. King and Malcolm X are often counterpoised as the pacifist versus the nonpacifist leaders of the civil rights era. Their religious beliefs and political methods did differ; however, their goals were not so far apart and their political ideas and ideas of justice were very close on many issues, especially toward the end of each of their lives. Both of these important leaders expanded beyond their original concerns for justice for African Americans and became concerned with justice in general. They each became involved in antipoverty and antiwar movements and spoke of the need for greater structural change to include economic justice for all (Breitman 2002; Haley, 1992; and Zinn 1995). As with many involved in social movements of the time, it became clear to both of these men that only a broader social justice agenda would fully emancipate African Americans. King and Malcolm X not only shaped movements and each other, but each developed in such a way that they had much in common, including a personal and political relationship with an important sports figure: Muhammad Ali. Muhammad Ali could reach beyond movements into mainstream America with his powerful voice. Ali was greatly influenced by Malcolm X, not only in his joining of the NOI but also in the larger political picture (Zirin 2005).The two were friends until Ali was pressured to break this tie by the leadership of the NOI, which had become fearful and suspicious of Malcolm X. Turning his back on Malcolm X turned out to be of great regret to Ali. In the meantime, Ali was influencing a small antiwar movement drawing connections between oppression of African Americans in the United States and the war in Vietnam. His outspoken criticisms and refusal to submit to the draft in 1966 were a powerful influence in a period when most Americans were not yet questioning the war.The combination of Ali’s incredible talent as a boxer, popularity, especially among African Americans, and ability to speak clearly to the injustices of the time were exactly what the movements needed to build in size and confidence. He also greatly influenced others within the sports world, inspiring the Olympic Project for Human Rights (OPHR) and the public defiance of Tommie Smith and John Carlos on the Olympic podium during the 1968 Olympics, when they displayed their support for the Black Power movement and the OPHR (Zirin 2005).

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

165

Referencing Ali’s antiwar stance, King also made his antiwar stance clear in 1967. By this time King and Ali had worked together in the housing movement in Chicago and the two were committed to antipoverty struggles around the country. Although Malcolm X had been assassinated in 1965, his legacy continued as the Black Panther Party organized movements committed to self-defense in response to increasing police brutality in African American neighborhoods. While the political methods espoused by King and Malcolm X were often in opposition to one another, they were often pushed to defend one another by a media determined to draw one into denouncing the other (Haley 1992; Zinn 1995).While the differences and divisions within the civil rights movement were more complex and numerous than can be attended to here, this examination of three famous leaders allows for an understanding of how difference need not be a barrier to success. Rather than denounce each other for their differences, these three were able to respectfully disagree, work toward common goals, and continue the work within their own politics and methods to the benefit of greater progress. The legacy of each continues within various struggles today and continues to benefit those committed to progress. The limitations faced by the Black Power movements and those surrounding King were not so severe as to preclude real change. However, with the perspective of history, these effective movements inform an understanding of the needs of future movements. The ability of the leadership and membership of the civil rights movements to struggle together despite their differences was powerful, progressive, and successful. However, as Marable (2003) shows, the cult of leadership and personality that surrounded King and Malcolm X resulted in a great setback for the movement when these men were assassinated. Also of concern to Marable (2003) was the inability of some organizations, specifically the NAACP, to tolerate political difference and to bow to outside pressures to purge communists and other radicals from their membership. This intolerance not only limited the movements but also expelled some of the best antiracist activists of the period from the larger mainstream organizations. Ella Baker: A Collective Work. Ella Baker was involved in social justice movements for over fifty years and worked within the NAACP, SCLC, and SNCC, among other organizations. Her experience within these movements is a testament to her own commitment and points the way forward. She was often frustrated by the overreliance upon a few leaders within the movement and argued for broader inclusion. She was also very aware of the ageism, sexism, and elitism within the movement and the impact that these had on her ability to sway the opinions of others, especially when she disagreed with King (Ransby 2003). Rather than allow herself to be silenced or thwarted, however, she continued her work as she saw best and developed a layer of activists that would

166

Social Justice

continue in struggle beyond the lives of King or Malcolm X. Because she was committed to a radical democracy, she insisted that authentic leadership could only come from those most affected by injustice. Rank-and-file activism by and for those seeking justice was Baker’s view of progress. As biographer Ransby (2003) wrote:“For Baker, revolution was above all about a protracted and layered democratic process” (372). Baker’s work toward and vision of a radical democratic process inclusive of the voices of the most oppressed strengthened the movements of her time. One can only imagine the impact she might have had if these movements had not contained the injustices of sexism, ageism, and elitism. It is important to look critically at these and other social movements in order to learn from their mistakes and limits and to move beyond them. Baker’s critiques and work illustrate how one can work within, without, and around imperfect movements while insisting on a better way. Struggles for Latino(a) Justice The Black Power movement had a great influence on other movements for racial/ethnic justice. The La Raza Unida Party (LRUP), a small political party in the U.S. Southwest, formed in response to racist practices against Latinos of the region, who were mainly Mexican Americans and Mexicans. The Mexican American Youth Organization (MAYO) was developed through LRUP and organized among students on various college campuses. The demands of these organizations were more radical than those of the League of United Latin American Citizens (LULAC), which aligned with the Democratic Party and middle-class Latino interests. LRUP was explicitly nationalistic, calling for the return of lands in the Southwest, as well as equal education, healthcare, and employment opportunities (Meier and Ribera 1998). While middle-class Latinos and Anglos were fearful of LRUP and MAYO, these organizations were successful in attracting a large number of activists. Their efforts resulted in school boycotts and threats to conservative Democrats, who failed to address issues of injustice against Latinos in the Southwest. One of the authors of this text was born in Crystal City, Texas, the hometown of one of the leading MAYO activists and recalls the excitement and fear of those times.While Latinos, Mexican Americans specifically, were and remain a clear majority in this area of Texas, they were rarely allowed to engage in the political process in a meaningful way.The activism of the late 1960s and early 1970s changed much of this. Latinos organized and printed a Spanish-language newspaper that addressed the concerns of the community. The paper also presented an alternative to the Anglo paper and its nonpolitical or reactionary coverage of the area.These activists won greater rights in local elections and representation on local school boards. While these gains were real and necessary, the weaknesses of LRUP and MAYO led to early erosion of these gains.

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

167

Melendez (2003) describes similar weaknesses in the Young Lords organization following some successes for Puerto Rican justice. While the Young Lords were active mainly in urban areas and LRUP was more rurally focused, their nationalistic demands and radical politics were not so different. These demands were more readily received in urban centers and among a population with a homeland, which was and is perceived as colonized by the United States.The Young Lords and their co-activists were successful in attaining better health services, greater educational supports, and attention to the plight of Puerto Rico as a colony. Their tactics were far more radical than those of LRUP and MAYO and included activities that necessitated the move of several members into an underground system for protection from arrest. While many of these activists have now been cleared of the numerous charges levied against them, there was a systematic attempt to remove them from their activism through illegal surveillance and trumped-up criminal charges. Some Puerto Rican activists are still serving prison terms and are considered political prisoners by many involved in these movements.Their activities, arguably, were no more dangerous than those of white activists of the time (the Weather Underground, for example), most of whom were never imprisoned but have often been celebrated for their activities. The demise of the Young Lords was precipitated by a top-down organizational structure that would not tolerate the independence or voices of a broader group of activists. As Melendez (2003) explains, he was directed away from activities that had proved successful to the goals of the organization by a leadership that had lost interest in his input. While some, including Melendez, were suspicious, rightfully so in some cases, of the infiltration of government agents into the movement, it was the structural problem that led to the decline of Puerto Rican activism, just as it did with Mexican American activism. A strong democratic organization, history has shown, can overcome repressive tendencies, whether that tendency comes from the membership, from an outside agitator, or even from governmental pressures and clandestine activities directed toward their division.This lack of democratic organizing also allowed for the interests of the minority of middle-class Latinos to move the organizations into more conservative work. Ultimately, radical politics declined and those remaining were either isolated or co-opted into the Democratic Party. In 1999, after much international pressure and grassroots organizations in support, President Clinton granted a provisional clemency to twelve Puerto Rican political prisoners, eleven of whom accepted and were released. They were said to be connected with the terrorist organization FALN. Oscar Lopez Rivera refused the conditions of clemency and remains imprisoned for a seventy-year sentence. This clemency occurred twenty years after President Carter provided amnesty to four other Puerto Rican political prisoners.4

168

Social Justice

Struggles for Gender Justice Issues of democratic organizing also plagued the women’s movements, which often did not represent all women.Women involved in the movements were often silenced by a top-down organizing structure that looked to its own interests rather than those of the women it claimed to represent. Women’s and feminist’s movements were inspired by the civil rights successes of the 1950s and 1960s, and they were diverse in their tactics, expectations, and membership. Many goals overlapped, yet the differences in demands were important during the active movement period and continue to be important today. The demands of middle-class mainly white women during the early to late twentieth century often centered on the right to work in professional careers with wages equal to men.Working-class women and poor and minority women had been working for generations. While they were interested in higher wages, they had a different set of demands, such as quality daycare, equal treatment in the jobs they already had, and access to healthcare, including reproductive choices and paid maternity leave. Johnnie Tilmon illustrated the class differences apparent in the women’s movement:“For a lot of middleclass women in this country, Women’s Liberation is a matter of concern. For women on welfare it’s a matter of survival” (Zinn 1995, 503). Perhaps the justice demand that most clearly exemplifies the historic and current divides within the women’s and feminist’s movements is access to abortion.The U.S. Supreme Court decision Roe v.Wade (1973) set the legal right to access abortion, but did little to assure actual access.While this legal victory did much to prevent the back-ally abortions that took so many women’s lives before the decision, it in itself did little to guarantee access to women without funds for medical care. Instead, it set the stage for a social movement made of women and men demanding free abortion without apology. This, however, continues to undergo rearticulation into safer demands.The backward slide in demands has less to do with the changing legal notions of reproductive justice than it has to do with the limits on expectations imposed from within a movement that is currently dominated by middle-class interests. Smith (2005) illustrates the move backward for not only abortion rights but also the struggles against sexual harassment and greater access to decent employment for women. The current debate within the mainstream feminist movement is centered around power-feminism and climbing the corporate ladder rather than questioning corporate power. Most women are left out of this power-feminist model. The politics of the women’s and feminist’s movements are mostly limited to the Democratic Party.This extends to supporting liberal candidates even when they themselves are accused of sexual harassment (as President Clinton was accused by Paula Jones) or decline to support abortion rights (as in the case of the John Kerry campaign).

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

169

The careerist notions of feminism and women’s rights extend to academia as well as to corporate women. Coates and Dodds (1998) documented the problems inherent in academic settings where feminist research and pedagogy often take precedence over activism. While there is nothing unworthy with feminist research or pedagogy, the privileging of these tenure-related tasks at the expense of activism is understandable within a system entrenched in the status quo. As Coates and Dodds point out, students and faculty who choose to engage in political struggle do so at the expense of a second shift or timeout of what might otherwise be personal time. However, it is also quite apparent that most activists must earn a living and/or attend school while engaging in political activism. This reality seems to escape the authors, whose concern is exclusively the academic world.The authors did note a need for academics to engage with the community and with activists outside of academia. They did not address, however, the importance of understanding the realities of the lives of those in that community and that this community is already doing double duty. Ryan (2004) offered insight into the academic community divide, suggesting that by working in imperfect unions each can come to understand and respect the work of the other.Through this process there is no doubt that the lives and interests of activists and academics would be exposed to each other and perhaps influence each other. Ella Baker would have much to offer on this topic. She would undoubtedly suggest that women most oppressed by the current system, not necessarily exclusively corporate women or academics, take the leading roles in the movement and engage others through a radical democracy that would ensure decisions and actions based on the needs of those whom the movement claims to serve. Struggles for Sexual Justice Sexuality is often approached as a divisive or controversial topic.Theories regarding the origin, cause, and/or types of sexuality vary. There are at least three broad schools of thought, with intricate and developed sets of understanding regarding sexuality: biological, psychological, and sociological. The following descriptions are by no means complete but offer an accessible understanding of these differences in thought. Biological theories contend that sexuality is determined and expressed based upon chemical, hormonal, and/or brain structures. Psychological theories assert that expressions of sexuality are shaped by the interaction between biological characteristics and experiences during developmental stages. Sociological theories assert that as modern societies provided the opportunity for people to reject the normative family structures that had been in place since feudal times, nonheterosexual forms of organizing and expressing sexuality would develop and become more accepted.

170

Social Justice

The purpose of this section is not to explain the varieties of human sexuality, but to briefly examine the social movements that developed in response to the oppression of those with other than heterosexual identities.The gay rights movement emerged at the time of the Black Power and antiwar movements of the time (1960s).The Stonewall Riots of 1969 were the beginning of the modern gay and lesbian rights movement.The riots were a response to a police raid of a bar frequented by homosexuals in New York City.While this was not the first police raid on a gay bar, it would seem to be the last straw for many in the New York gay community. The Gay Liberation Front formed to demand “public respect and an end to antigay legislation and police harassment” (Wolf 2004, 56). This movement clearly indicated its understanding of gay oppression as a social problem in need of social structural change, specifically the abolition of some social institutions and for genuine forums for redress. Divisions within the movement and differing ideas of liberation took their toll on the movement. Like the women’s rights and feminist movements, some within the gay rights movement began to look to and promote personal liberation. This individualistic notion of liberation necessarily demobilized the social movements and relied upon individual consciousness and action rather than social change. While coming out and learning to accept one’s sexuality are clearly positive moves for those who are able to do so and maintain their social and economic well-being, these actions are not aimed at social structures, but at individuals. Not all within the movements went down this individualistic path, but those remaining within the movements were isolated into direct action groups, including ACT-UP, Queer Nation, and Lesbian Avengers, with powerful yet limited voices for justice (Wolf 2004). These splits between those looking to individual change and those looking to small radical groups for social change continues today. Many within the gay rights community have placed their hope for social justice in the mainstream Democratic Party. The 2004 presidential election is instructive in terms of limits placed on electoral politics as a way forward for possible realization of social justice. As the 2004 presidential election approached, states and cities were making decisions regarding gay marriage and at times deciding to allow same sex partners to gain access to marriage. While civil unions had been allowed in some cities and states previously, the demand for marriage rights are broader, including tax benefits, retirement benefits, and healthcare coverage, and desired by some of those to whom they had been previously denied. Some cities and states began to react to the liberalization of marriage rights by passing bans on gay marriage. The issue of gay marriage had been raised, and expectations for equal marriage were raised along with it. Rather than embrace the issue as a campaign platform, Democratic candidate John Kerry instead avoided the issue, calling for each states’ right to decide the issue for itself. Fearing the reelection of the

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

171

Republican candidate, George W. Bush, as president of the United States, many supportive of gay marriage rights backed off of their demands in hopes that a post-election President Kerry would support equal marriage. Fourteen states took Kerry’s advice and decided per referendums to ban gay marriage on the same ballot that Bush was reelected to the presidency. It is unclear just how far the gay marriage movement would have progressed had it not collapsed under the hopes of electing a Democratic candidate. It is clear that this strategy actually set back the struggle for equal marriage in at least the fourteen states that passed bans on gay marriage. On the other hand, as of the writing of this text, Canada, the Netherlands, Belgium, and Spain grant full marriage rights for gay couples. Struggles for Class Justice The labor movement in the United States is central to class-based social movements because labor unions clearly represent those engaged in wage labor as opposed to those representing the class that gains profit from workers. By 2003, unionization in the United States had dropped to only 8.2 percent, far below its peak of over 35 percent in the 1950s (Sustar 2004). Movements for class justice have been in decline for some time.The bureaucratic structure of labor unions and their reliance on the Democratic Party for progress are central to this decline.5 The U.S. labor movement was born in the late 1800s in response to the draconian working conditions and poverty wages of workers that accompanied the vast profits for the industrialists of that time.The eight-hour day, the weekend off, safety improvements, and limits on child labor were among the demands and wins of that era. Montgomery (1987), however, documented the fall of the labor movement.This decline was in great part due to the alignment of labor bureaucrats (those working exclusively for the union and removed from the working conditions of the dues payers) with industrial managers to control wages and labor actions during World War I.This coalition continued through the Great Depression and was only reversed during new labor uprisings during the 1930s. Dobbs (2002) documented the struggle of teamsters in Minneapolis, Minnesota, to gain decent contracts. As his text makes clear, this struggle was against not only the employers but also the union itself.“The AFL officialdom grew into a complacent bureaucracy enjoying high salaries and lavish expense accounts” (Dobbs 2002, 35). Because of this distance from the workers they were presumed to represent, the union officials accepted wage cuts on behalf of the workers in 1930. By 1933 the union members were ready to fight back regardless of the desires of the officials. The result was citywide strikes, with cooperation between unions against the wishes of the union bureaucracy and the coalition of employers known as the Citizen’s Alliance.The success of the

172

Social Justice

teamsters in rebuilding their unions in a democratic fashion, with union members representing union members, gave new strength to the movement, which reached its peak in the 1950s. Because of the low level of unionization and the return of bureaucratic control within the existing unions, labor struggles are currently relatively rare. However, a few struggles have broken out in recent years and exemplify the problems in this movement. Chicago is a stronghold of the Democratic Party, with a Democratic mayor, and is home to the Democratic governor. Given the continued support of unions for Democratic politicians, one might expect that Chicago would be home to a strong and successful labor movement. This is not the case. Both authors of this text were on strike in the fall of 2004 in response to the problems facing the union movement. We both work at Northeastern Illinois University (NEIU), located in Chicago. City workers in Chicago had been without a contract for over a year when faculty and staff at the City Colleges went on strike in October 2004. While this strike did not directly affect the strike at our university, it offered insight into things to come. The members of the faculty/staff union at NEIU had been disappointed by raises that failed to keep up with the cost of living, increasing workloads, and concerns for healthcare costs. Most of the faculty had never participated in a faculty strike.This certainly led to various degrees of anxiety and to escalation of conflicts, particularly within the membership. Like the teamsters of 1933, the first battle in this struggle was against segments of the union bureaucracy that were uninterested in and unprepared for a real fight back. Perhaps it was partly due to the fact that most had also not participated in a faculty strike. The membership actively organized itself, beginning with democratically run meetings and requests for feedback from the membership. Once the broader membership realized that they were having an impact on the direction of the union, more people became involved and the movement for a decent contract strengthened. Apart from the challenge directed toward the university, there were also internal differences.There were questions raised about the relationship between union members and the executive board and the relationship of the campus union chapter and its statewide union local, an umbrella organization that collects dues, represents campus unions in statewide matters, and supports organizing on campuses.Allowing members to communicate back to the bureaucracy proved more difficult because segments of the union bureaucracy and the statewide local were not always attentive to the voices of the membership or misconstrued their intent. There were internal issues concerning delays in beginning the strike, even though the membership had overwhelmingly voted for the strike—necessary procedural issues notwithstanding.There were also allegations of divisive tactics

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

173

along political lines and even allegations of race and gender insensitivities.The local for our campus union had not prepared for a possible strike and had no provision for a strike or any meaningful strike fund.This left the membership in the position of surviving without paychecks, outside of provisions for nointerest loans, for the three and a half weeks we were on strike. Several months later, the local regrettably did not exert their influence in the governor’s proposal to use state university retirement money to bail out the state budget. Only after the fact did they argue that they were outmaneuvered.This has put the retirement funds in some jeopardy. Overcoming these internal obstacles was a distraction from the struggle against an administration that cut off healthcare benefits and illegally threatened to deport faculty without U.S. citizenship who honored the strike. The organization of our strike lines with strike captains enabled us to continuously communicate information to members on the lines. The university administration seemed caught off-guard with the strike and resorted to bringing in a high-powered outside attorney for negotiations. This, however, escalated the conflict. Ultimately, Alderman Ed Meese was asked to act as mediator and was able to broker a settlement. However, the favorable settlement was due to the perseverance of the union members on the strike lines.We prevailed in the strike. In retrospect, given our annual dues money ($500–$1,000), some members raised voices as to the need of better preparation and more sensitivity to voices from below. There were a number of noteworthy efforts to reconcile internal differences.These initiatives arose spontaneously from the membership. On a theoretical level, this brings out the internal dialectics of struggle.This experience has been an important lesson for our campus membership and should ultimately serve to inform our future struggles. The faculty has grown in confidence as to its voice and willingness to express it. Beyond direct actions by union members, some have attempted coalitions with consumers in the form of boycotts. Barger and Reza (1994) illustrate one of the problems of this strategy, failure to participate. As they report, a survey in California indicated that 74 percent of respondents had a favorable view of the United Farm Workers (UFW) and 85 percent supported the goals of improving the working conditions of farm laborers. However, over 57 percent supported the idea of a boycott and only 22 percent had participated in a boycott (50). Unlike a direct labor action where the workers themselves are responsible to and for the action, consumers are not directly affected by their participation or lack thereof. Frank (2003) offers a review of the history of consumer-labor campaigns, suggesting that transitioning the core of activism out of the hands of labor and into the hands of consumers is problematic for many reasons. Among these is the demobilization and disempowerment of workers in deference to the

174

Social Justice

consumer market. This does not suggest that support by outsiders is not important and welcomed.While on strike at NEIU we (the membership, not the bureaucrats) welcomed students onto our strike lines and welcomed their solidarity in not crossing our picket lines. The difference here is that we the union were acting on our own behalf and welcoming support from the outside. To turn that around and expect supporters on the outside to take the actions necessary to win one’s struggle is doubly problematic. As Barger and Reza (1994) report, even those supportive of the issues will not necessarily act, and, more important, as Frank (2003) shows, leaving one’s interests in the hands of an unknown shopper disempowers the movement. It is only through direct action that labor activists, like other activists, can develop their own way forward. Democratic decisions made by the workers themselves, not by bureaucrats, who have little understanding of and even less investment in the struggle, will inform the correct direction of the struggle. Struggles for Environmental Justice Struggles for environmental justice are particularly instructive for grassroots struggles. They are inevitably multicultural, highly diverse, and increasingly global in their methods, interests, and goals. Those involved in these struggles often have pressure toward accepting unity in spite of differences. As Schlosberg (2004) found, movements for environmental justice develop and implement theories of justice from within rather than accepting notions of justice established from without the movements. Existing practices of distributive justice are critiqued as noncritical of inequities. These inequities not only produce environmental injustices but also allow the established powers to continue unjust practices while marginalized communities abstain from the established political structures that act in the interest of the powerful. Inclusive democratic organizing is necessary to the health and sustainability of diverse movements.The diversity of individuals and groups involved in environmental movements produces the understanding of this necessity and ultimately sustains success if this diversity is honored. Checker (2001) described the process of a coming to honor diversity within an environmental movement in Brooklyn, New York. As she illustrated, those involved in the movement had experience within ethnically identified movements and became aware of the need to include demands for environmental justice within their divided organizations.As this demand was added, diverse ethnic groups joined in Community Alliance for the Environment (CAFE) to strengthen their voice, which had been marginalized from mainstream New York politics. These activists moved beyond the superficial notions of diversity claimed by city officials and toward an actual functioning cohesion of diverse ethnic groups. This coalition then worked in the interest of the common need for a healthy environment.

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

175

Dawson (2000) warns about the long-term implications of environmental justice movements, especially those in the United States, which focus on local issues. While she admits that there is little research to support her contention that solidarity across ethnic groups will dissipate if and when demands are met, the contention itself is based on the notion that ethnic concerns are primary to those of an environmental nature. Racial/ethnical politics have a longer tradition than environmental politics, and these divisions are often exploited by mainstream political interests. However, there is nothing necessarily primary about racial/ethnical alliance. While studying two environmental groups, one which expressed interest in achieving a diverse organization, Lichterman (1995) found that individualized representations proved problematic in attaining that goal. Further, his work indicates a lack of understanding of inclusion on the part of those in a mainly middle-class white organization, with an individualistic notion of justice, who proposed a coming together of cultures around food from each culture when dealing with an Asian American group. It seems these individualistic activists had internalized notions of cultural difference, failed to understand the need and power of group responsibility rather than individual responsibility, and self-limited their ability to form coalitions with other groups. Salazar and Alper (2002) contend that a respect for difference may actually develop out of the equality concepts of environmental activists. Returning to Schlosberg (2004), there is reason to expect that the understandings of justice built within environmental movements that include a respect for and voice of diverse groups may not only outlast individual battles but also remain with those moving on to build movements around other issues. This sort of aggressively democratic and inclusive political structure is reminiscent of Ella Baker’s radical democracy and will be necessary for the success of social justice movements. Cole and Foster (2001) have also sensitized us to the historical development of the environmental justice movement, noting that the first wave developed at the turn of the twentieth century with concerns for preservation of natural spaces in the United States.The second, materializing after World War II, appeared with the growth of petrochemical materials and was subsequently inspired by the civil rights movement in demanding social justice. The third wave arguably has been referred to as the environmental justice movement. The authors, however, insist that this movement should be more appropriately situated in a more general social justice movement. And they are also quick to point out that the second-wave environmentalists have increasingly relinquished activism to lawyers and the courts at the cost of the pursuit of more genuine grassroots conceptions of social justice. Increasingly, the strategy has been “based on litigation, lobbying, and technical evaluation” (Cole and Foster 2001, 29). Cole and Foster’s view, however, is that grassroots organizations are

176

Social Justice

much more empowering, providing free spaces in which the victim moves from being a bystander to participant in the social struggle for justice. Rather than a desire for hierarchical organization, they support the notion of movement fusion, whereby various groups in struggle periodically form alliances for a common agenda for social transformation (164). In movement fusion, conceptions of justice are more in flux and are more emergent conceptualizations derived from concrete struggles. New Struggle s, the Fourth Mode l: Innoce nce Projects and Inte ntional Communitie s as Nonlinear Social Moveme nts Schehr has developed a fourth model of social movements that relies on dynamic systems theory (chaos theory) and builds on its predecessor, the new social movement paradigm (NSM, sometimes referred to as the identity paradigm).6 It has been applied to innocence projects and intentional communities (Schehr 1997, 1999; see also Arrigo 1997; Arrigo, et al. 2005, chap. 8). Schehr places priority on subaltern modes of resistance, explaining how otherwise silenced voices redefine oppressive practices, even seemingly small.These inputs, consistent with chaos theory, have disproportional effects on social systems (the butterfly effect). His conceptual framework, distinguishable from earlier models of social movements, borrows heavily from the concepts of dynamic systems theory (for an introduction, see Milovanovic [1997, 2003]). In late capitalism there cannot be long-term homogeneous opposition groupings but instead a “plurality of antagonisms” (Laclau and Mouffe 1985). That is, conflicts cut across class, gender, race, and other issues. There are, at best, provisional organizations and alliances organized around particular issues. Among other concepts assimilated from chaos theory, Schehr uses the idea of nonlinearity, disproportional effects, attractors, and dissipative structures (see Young 1997a, 1997b, 1999; Milovanovic 1997).7 This framework has been applied to innocence projects—organizations that sprouted in the late 1990s that are advocates for inmates, mostly minority, convicted of capital offenses by evidence that was questionable or by procedures that minimized a full day in court.This framework has also been applied to intentional communities. Innocence projects are concerned with wrongful convictions and strive toward obtaining exonerations. Schehr (1999; see also Arrigo et al. 2005) argues that these projects do not necessarily follow spelled-out formal law and look elsewhere for counter evidence (nonlinearity). They seek to show how particular evidence may have disproportional effects in rendering guilt when connected with racist stereotypes (disproportionality); how new outcome basins (possible solutions) emerge for the basis of alternative theorizing of what happened (attractors); and how emerging implications and conclusions

Justice and Grassroots Struggles

177

in law follow spontaneously in these alternatively created frameworks (dissipative structures).8 Schehr has applied this fourth way to intentional communities, identified as communities in struggle for social change, that are pluralistically oriented, nonhierarchical in organization, innovative in strategies, sensitive to differences rather than sameness, and take on a more holistic orientation to problem solving (Schehr 1997, 1999; Arrigo et al. 2005). Arrigo (1997) has also applied the fourth way to how residents of a single-room occupancy facility organized around principles of nonlinear logic as an alternative strategy to house the homeless. For example, according to Arrigo’s field research, resolution of conflict situations often entailed attractors (a more fuzzy logic was employed in determining what happened that did not follow rigid bureaucratic lines) and dissipative structures (new ideas were constantly emerging in response to changing demands of the housing facility). In short,“nonconventional social arrangements materialized: persons with psychiatric disorders were elected floor representatives; drug-use was situationally accepted and legitimized to the extent that one’s routine interactions and ongoing responsibilities did not result in total disintegration; and a loose, evolving, and flexible confederation of rules and procedures informed resident decision making in the community” (Arrigo, Milovanovic, and Schehr 2005, 128). In short, the fourth way in social movement research suggests the development of more spontaneous notions of justice in context. It is a call for “nonlinear justice systems” (Young 1999, 278). Concepts of justice are emergents arising in far-from-equilibrium conditions. It is a recognition of flux, uncertainty, change, becoming, multiplicity, indeterminacy, instabilities, irony, discovery, and surprise.These emerging principles of justice have compatibilities with what Judith Butler (1991) theorized as contingent universalities as a basis of generating political agendas for social change and for social justice. These emergents provide a temporary basis of order (i.e., political agendas).They are not universals.They are neither essentialist nor anti-essentialist conceptualizations. Notions of social justice—reflecting various articulations of need, desert, equality—will always be in flux, always subject to reflection, augmentation, qualification, specification, deletion, and even replacement with a more responsive concept of social justice in context.They are ever contingent.There is no grand narrative that can encompass all of their nuances.There is no one justice that will incorporate all the dimensions of struggle, becoming, and the development of a good society. Of course, what is needed is a notion of ethics that may underlie the developed concepts of social justice in context.9 Le ssons from Justice Struggle s The history of social movements in the United States provide many lessons for the current state of justice and for improving this state should it be

178

Social Justice

found lacking.While we were unable to provide an extensive history here, we encourage further exploration into this history with attention to the organization, goals, and contradictions of the various struggles. Those that have organized themselves in keeping with the goals of justice have succeeded if not in every one of their goals then at least in the development of activists that will carry on the next struggle. Equality in the form of democratic debate and decision making within movements is primary for their continued success, just as equality is primary to justice. When people engage directly in social movements, they do so because they have come to realize that the legal and political structure that espouses justice without delivering it must be confronted. In this confrontation, organized movements can deliver their own justice. Resisting the temptation to await a savior is key to this confrontation. Ella Baker warned in 1947: “The negro must quit looking for a savior, and work to save himself ” (Ransby 2004, 170). Then she offered the way forward in 1967: “One of the major emphases of SNCC, from the beginning, was that of working with indigenous people, not working for them, but trying to develop their capacity for leadership” (Ransby 2004, 273). The development of those suffering injustice through our struggles for self-emancipation has and will continue to bring greater fulfillment of more genuine principles of equality, needs, and deserts.

Chapte r 12

Emerging Conceptions of Justice in a Global Arena The civil rights and other movements within the United States are examples of progressive moves toward social justice. Other nations have experienced even broader movements, which have brought greater justice in some ways and problematic outcomes in others. We will focus on a few in diverse locations to offer insight into the justice motives and varied outcomes of these actions worldwide. It is intended that these examples will offer insight into the process of these historical times, the progress attained, and the lessons offered. Many books offer more complete descriptions of these points in history, and we encourage readers to consult these works. South Africa: Truth and Justice? The history of South Africa is very much the history of countries throughout the continent of Africa. While it is now one country, it is a large geographical area of diverse terrain and inhabitants. As Ross (1999) describes, the people of the region, not yet one country, were divided by space, economic interests, political interests, and other realities as European colonization of the region began.The economic interests of Europe through this colonization quickly set the pattern for what would become the country of South Africa. Local politics were contained through the mutual interests of local political elites in the economic success of European colonial enterprises (Ross 1999; see also Norval 1996). While resistance to slavery and other European savageries continued among the population, the complicity of local elites assured the continued influence of European ideas and norms, including Christianity, educational structures, rigid sexual divisions of labor and domesticity, and the social, political, and economic dominance of Europeans.This dominance was attained within the four colonies that unified in 1911 to form what is the current nation of South Africa. Soon after unification, laws for segregation (apartheid) were devised and implemented to maintain the dominance of the white minority over the majority nonwhites of the country (Ross 1999).1 179

180

Social Justice

Resistance was immediate with women struggling against apartheid directly in the rural areas, demonstrating in the streets of the towns in warrior dress, and more placidly within the confines of the co-opted churches through prayer.These struggles were limited in success partly due to the power of the opposing state and partly due to the divided demands of the women.The men went on strike in the mines and were quickly smashed directly by state intervention and indirectly by new legal constraints imposed to protect mine owners’ profits (Ross 1999; see Moodie 2002). By the 1940s, the white nationalist government was becoming more reactionary, taking on many of the characteristics of the defeated German ideology. At the same time, the people of South Africa were also radicalizing in their ideas about the possibilities for change.These developments were largely untapped by the African National Congress (ANC) and other organized parties and resulted in uprisings in the absence (though at times claimed) presence of the ANC. These movements were mostly independent and localized throughout the 1950s. In the 1960s the ANC and Pan African Congress (PAC) clashed in their attempts to gain power and reforms from the white-run government. Meanwhile, oppression and injustice for the black majority escalated as the elite became emboldened to increase state control on the daily lives of black South Africa (and whites who opposed apartheid). Among these oppressions was the establishment of homelands for the seven ethnic identities imposed onto the nonwhite population. These homelands were highly fragmented, of little recorded historic significance, and without basic services. By the end of the 1960s the ANC and PAC were defeated, ending organized resistance on any large scale for some time. By the early 1970s, however, students and workers began their own form of resistance. Student movements, mainly focused on black consciousness and workers’ movements resulting in large strikes, put forward two forms of complimentary struggle which ultimately became the beginning of the end of apartheid (Ross 1999; see also Norval 1996). Also driving the end of apartheid were the economic changes that were becoming more evident within South African society. Although famine and unpredictable food supplies had been all but eliminated by the commercialization of agriculture, so too had the ability of the rural population to sustain themselves on the land. Immigration (illegal in most cases under apartheid) into the cities set the stage for the exposure of the contradictions of capitalism in one of its most racist expressions. Because there was now plenty to eat did not mean that there was no hunger. Poverty and need were clearly tied to economics and, in the case of South Africa, almost directly with race status. The crowding of the rural poor into the highly stratified cities only intensified these contradictions and their productions of violence both within and against poor black areas of the cities (Ross 1999).

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

181

The United States and other nations had recently experienced civil rights movements and were less able to accept the conditions of blacks in South Africa as they had done in the past. Pressures were mounting within and without South Africa for change.The political instabilities within the country lead to divestment by larger banking interest and to greater economic instability. This translated to greater political instability as the misery of those at the bottom of the economic structure intensified. In the late 1980s, trade unionism increased as the unemployed were organized and coordinated gold mine strikes.Although these strikes did not win, they did build the solidarity and assert the power of unionized labor. Further, Angola defeated the South African army and forced compliance with the UN resolution for Namibian independence.These developments greatly improved the strength of the ANC, which was supported by unions and the governments of Angola and Namibia. Under intense pressure, newly elected President F.W. de Klerk lifted the ban on dissident political parties, including the ANC, the South African Communist Party, and the PAC, and released many prisoners being held for their political activities (Ross 1999). Negotiations between those representing the white elite and Nelson Mandela, the representative for the ANC, took place in an agitated context. The white elite desired little to no change at a painful, slow pace. The ANC desired timely change but did not represent all of anti-apartheid South Africa. Conflicts existed between pro- and anti-apartheid groups and between various factions of each.2 Within the pro-apartheid end of the spectrum were over twenty groups of various ideological stances, some staunchly racist and others couching their racism in terms of Christian ideology and/or a desire to protect their birthrights as whites. Sometimes violent in nature, protests and strikes continued throughout the country as talks between de Klerk’s representatives and Mandela protracted.Violence was by no means one-sided in this conflict. It was, however, most severe when supported by the National Party and their well-armed and funded military force (Sparks 1996). Activists were key to keeping the negotiations moving forward. It was in the interest of the white elite to drag the process out as long as possible and within the norm for Mandela to acquiesce to that process. Street protests, strikes, and other activities supported Mandela in the negotiations and the demands of the people beyond those of Mandela. Without these protests, negotiations would have no doubt gone on much longer and produced fewer progressive reforms. Extended negotiations would have doubtless resulted in even further bloodshed as the National Party and its various pro-apartheid supporters attempted to maintain dominance by all means at their disposal.When negotiations ended and the old government was put down, it was clear that great gains had been made. Blacks had won full citizenship in their country, which allowed for equal voting rights and the ultimate election of Mandela as president (Sparks 1996).

182

Social Justice

Truth and Reconciliation Commission As progressive as these changes were, social justice has still not attained an ideal level in South Africa.The Truth and Reconciliation Commission (TRC) and ongoing inequalities illustrate these justice limits.3 Newman (2005) reviews three rationales that have been provided in the literature for TRCs. First, it provides an opportunity for forgiveness and reconciliation, whereas pursuing criminal prosecution would undermine the movement toward peace. Second, it is a necessary transitional step toward peace, since otherwise entrenched offenders would resist change.Third, it might be impossible to pursue prosecution, given the sheer magnitude of offenders, and thus it would be hugely costly and time and resource consuming. “There are undoubtedly times when countries may have to sacrifice legal principles in the name of political pragmatism, in order to end war or achieve peace” (Newman 2005, 309).4 The most noted spokesperson for the TRC, its first chairperson, Desmond Tutu (2000), was to argue for a third way, a journey toward healing and peace, restorative justice rather than retributive justice (Bassiouni 2002; Hayner 2002; Newman 2005;Teitel 2002).Teitel (2002; see also Elster 2004) explores the possibility of “transitional justice” (referred to as “post-conflict justice” by Bassiouni [2002]) during regime changes as offering a moment for balancing various short- and long-range interests toward peace and justice.According to Elster (2004, 1),“transitional justice is made up of the process of trials, purges and reparations that take place after the transition from one political regime to another.”5 There has been much commentary on truth and reconciliation commissions. Many commentators have noted the relatively peaceful nature of the transition in South Africa benefited by the TRC. More recent literature has been more critical, indicating the more difficult balance between establishing peace and justice (the conflict between finding historical truth, procuring healing, and establishing peace versus prosecuting offenders and establishing justice for the victims; see Simpson [2002]; Newman [2005]). Van Zyl (1999) begins his optimistic article with a conclusion that the agreement between apartheid and post-apartheid rulers that the final report of the TRC should be kept from public view was evidence of the success of the TRC. One could just as easily argue that this agreement to keep the public in the dark was evidence of the failure of the TRC. Nagy (2002) illustrates the limits of the TRC project in her analysis of the relationship between apology and forgiveness. She points out the weak nature of much apology which is performed with the expectation of nonprosecution of war crimes. This itself is highly problematic and points to a lack of real acceptance for responsibility and rather allows further involution of the oppressed population. At the same time, great pressures from new leaders informed by Christian tradition persuade many to forgive while true apology, understanding, and remedy are lacking. While the direct perpetrators seek

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

183

release through apology and the violated forgive without true recognition of the wrongs done, many throughout South Africa have become impatient with the process to such an extent as to vocalize impatience with the complaints of those seeking redress (Nagy 2002). This characterization by onlookers exposes the lack of progress made through the TRC. Telling real and complete truths of the atrocities would inform those interested in social justice of the harms inflicted and the requirements of redress. Because the truths in many cases were not told, support for justice has eroded and attaining reconciliation is questionable.Without knowledge of the intensity and depth of harms done, justice attainment is severely curtailed. Wilson (2000) acknowledges the flexible nature of the TRC and the promise of such an exercise in justice to reflect local understandings of and desires for justice.This promise is not a small one and should be seriously considered and analyzed in light of the realities of the situations to which it is applied. These situations are always held within contexts wider than the individuals involved.Wilson (2000) further elaborates that because of the entrenched history of apartheid, the interests of elite blacks with bureaucratic positions and property to defend, and the advanced capitalist economic structure in place in South Africa, the TRC is necessarily limited in its ability to bring justice. James (2000) notes the commonalities in apartheid-era black and white structures that further limit successes based on local norms and customs. As she notes, capitalistic ideas not only informed the structure of apartheid and the ideas of the elite in that system, but also affected the structures and ideas of the oppressed. Those oppressed under apartheid would find it hard to escape the racist, sexist, or elitist ideas and structures imposed on them.These ideas were useful to the elite in controlling those oppressed but were not always analyzed or understood in this way and therefore uncritically permeated the lives of the oppressed. Overthrowing the oppression of racism, sexism, and elite dominance of the economy will require more than the end of apartheid. Nagy (2002) contends that the biggest barrier to reconciliation is the continuing inequalities, which require economic reparation and redistribution for redress. As she notes, truth and apology are hollow and do little to address justice without substantial material indemnification. A more genuine justice and democracy require an end to racism, inequalities, and poverty. Justice itself then will require further progress. In South Africa, as elsewhere, this progress has historically come in the form of collective social action. Restorative Justice? Truth and Reconciliation commissions have some similarities to restorative justice programs. In both, notions of social justice move away from retributive to restorative principles. However, restorative justice that is practiced with individuals is more likely to consider the victim’s side in deliberations

184

Social Justice

than in truth and reconciliation and there is more concern with recompense—some tangible step toward making things right beyond apology. We have also seen practices of reparations. This form of restorative justice would also be a distributive principle—retroactively correcting for unfair distributions of burdens and rewards.We have also witnessed the notion of sustainable economies and forms of justices compatible with environmental justice that is connected with it. Bassiouni (2002, 3) has called for a “post-conflict justice,” a “sustainable justice,” which is characterized as “a level of domestic justice compatible with the building and maintenance of a viable state legal system.” These forms of transitional justice are nonstatic conceptualizations, historically specific, and subject to constant reflection and change. In addition, we have come across indigenous forms of justice, which are highly nuanced, historically and culturally specific, and often unwritten. What we are witnessing are novel articulations of principles of social justice which go beyond traditional retributive principles. An examination of truth and reconciliation commissions in practice offers opportunities for more sensitive understanding of the often conflictual relationship between punishment and forgiveness, and universal standards of social justice versus culturally and historically contextually specific developments and applications. Iran: Islamic Revolution and National Inde pe nde nce We have chosen to look at two struggles within the region of the Middle East because this is an area of intense ongoing conflict and debate. Historical and ongoing struggles in the Middle East are not necessarily centered upon or inspired by Islamic tendencies. Islam, like Christianity and Judaism, is a religious faith with a long and noble history. As with other religious tendencies, when the most conservative and retrogressive elements take the forefront against more progressive tendencies within the same tradition, struggles can become distorted and move away from justice.Therefore, when we examine the imposition of the three major religious faiths upon social movements, it is with attention to justice. Religious initiatives can and have fought for justice and can and have fought for and/or condoned injustice.6 Here we do not, because it would be incorrect to favor or disfavor any religious belief or tradition.We do critically examine the impact of movements containing various levels of religious identity/character for their impact on justice. The Iranian Revolution of 1979 was greatly affected by a conservative Islamic reaction which came to power in the vacuum of a well-organized alternative. The revolution itself was not entirely Islamic in character but resulted in an Islamic state. Understanding just how this could happen requires a brief look at recent Iranian history. The need for a revolution in Iran can be directly connected to the U.S.-backed and British-born coup in 1953, which installed Mohammed

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

185

Reza Shah to rule Iran in place of the democratically elected Prime Minister Mohammad Mossadegh. The British had commercial interests in Iran dating back to the 1890s when then ruler Nasir al-Din Shah privatized much of Iran’s wealth and resources into the hands of British corporations at a pace that would make current transnational companies blush green with envy. The deals were especially profitable to Baron Julius de Reuter, of newspaper fame, but German, French, and Austrian companies were quick to make their own deals (Kinzer 2003). The people of Iran campaigned for reform of their government and independence from foreign investors. While some reforms were won, the British and Russians divided their interests and the nation of Iran north and south and declared their supremacy in each section. The Russian Revolution of 1917 led the Bolsheviks to renounce Russian interests in Iran and forgive all debts outstanding to the czar.When the Bolsheviks lost control to Stalin, the Soviet Union reoccupied northern Iran. The British intensified their control of the Iranian economy by imposing the Anglo-Persian Agreement on the ineffective Ahmed Shah to protect their vast and highly profitable oil interests. The British stronghold in Iran continued through the 1940s, when Mohammed Reza Shah hardened his own brutal control with political oppression and corruption in an attempt to maintain power in the face of increasing pressures from workers and activists.The British oil interests and the Shah were profiting handsomely from their arrangements. However, most Iranians were suffering declines in their standard of living, and oil workers were laboring under harsh conditions and very low wages (Kinzer 2003). After the assassination of Prime Minister Razmara in March 1951, the Majlis, elected representatives of the people, voted for the principle of nationalization of oil. Mohammad Reza Shah did this reluctantly by establishing the National Iranian Oil Company on May 1, 1951. Five days later, the Majlis approved Mossadegh as prime minister of Iran. Mossadegh’s leadership was a turn toward justice, as the people of Iran were almost immediately able to freely speak their frustrations with the past. A radio broadcaster referring to the oil company when controlled by the British stated, “All of Iran’s misery, wretchedness, lawlessness and corruption during the last fifty years, has been caused by oil and the extortions of the oil company” (Kinzer 2003, 91). The British oil interests, of course, were looking to force Mossadegh back into their one-sided agreement.The British press denounced Mossadegh as a fanatic and supported the British oil interests. In Iran, documents verifying the oil company’s interference with the Iranian government were made public. The United Nations International Court of Justice recommended that Iran allow the British oil company to resume operations, and the threat of military intervention from the British was constant. Also constant was the economic devastation caused by the embargo placed on oil technicians into Iran to help run the now nationalized oil company. Because the British had always

186

Social Justice

held these jobs, keeping nationals in the less-skilled jobs, few Iranians had the skills necessary to fully run the oil apparatus. Fearing reaction from the UK, other nations with available technicians refused their exit to Iran (Kinzer 2003). Mossadegh proved a popular and persuasive speaker, keeping the British oil company at bay in the world courts and winning the support of people around the globe. No significant movement occurred in this battle for Iranian independence until British Prime Minister Churchill and U.S. President Eisenhower agreed to use the newly minted U.S. Central Intelligence Agency (CIA) to overthrow Mossadegh (Kinzer 2003). Mossadegh, who was not only a democratically elected leader but also very popular, served the interests of the citizens of Iran in the face of growing pressure. His overthrow orchestrated by U.S. and British interests was a great injustice.This injustice was against the will of the people of Iran in their election and support of Mossadegh. It was also an injustice against the will of the people to control their natural resource, oil, and use it in their own interests rather than to enrich foreign elites. Further, it was an injustice in the reestablishment of Mohammed Reza Shah’s rule over Iran. The Shah, unlike Mossadegh, had long ruled against the interests of the majority of Iranians and against justice. New movements would be required to reassert the rule of the people. While Kinzer (2003) argues that the coup of 1953 was the precipitator of Middle East terrorism, there are other ways to interpret this history. Many current U.S. politicians claim a wish to bring democracy to the Middle East as their motives for ongoing military operations. This seems unlikely given the history of U.S. interventions and interests in the region. We prefer to present some of the movements on the ground in Iran so that the struggles for democracy by Iranians might be understood.What seems clear is that the people of any nation must develop democracy in their own interests. If this is true, can democracy be imposed from even the most pristine external force? Mottahedeh (1986, 384) describes the vision of leftist intellectuals of the revolution as “a riddle wrapped in a mystery inside an enigma.” Poya (1987) refers to the confusion of the left on the ground following the ouster of the Shah. She describes the many progressive pro-justice slogans used during this period.These included slogans against imperialism and the United States and for workers’ rights, equal pay for men and women, education for children, an end to child labor, rights of peasants and the unemployed, and free speech and presses. The leftist activists apparently made some critical tactical errors following the revolution.7 Among these was an unwillingness to confront the fundamentalists calling for an Islamic regime.Also problematic was the lack of organization and cohesion between the various progressive groups. Rather than joining

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

187

around their common demands, splits were allowed to widen, limiting any joint efforts. For example, the Mojahedin did not join the worker’s rally on the May Day following the victory against the shah for fear of appearing in opposition to the conservative Islamicists (Poya 1987). While Mottahedeh (1986) argues that religion offered more inspiration to the Iranian people than did progressive politics, it appears that the outcome of the Iranian revolution is more and less complex. Khomeini did not explicitly argue for an Islamic state until after the Shah was defeated.This promise of an Islamic state then appears to have gained acceptance after the mass revolutionary movements had completed their task of removing the leader imposed by U.S. and British interests. Khomeini did before and after the overthrow of the Shah present a strong pro-nationalist anti-imperialist front.This front was quickly exposed when Khomeini colluded with the United States in Irangate (Poya 1987). National independence was clearly an important goal of the Iranian people. The calls for equality and women’s rights and subsequent resistance to women’s oppression would indicate more progressive desires among the population than Khomeini ultimately delivered. Shahidian (1997) points to the limits within the left of the revolutionary movement.These limits include an unwillingness to defend women’s rights on principle rather than allowing these important concerns to be subsumed under abstract arguments. The Iranian people, like many around the world, continue in their struggle to establish a government that represents the wishes of the majority. Shahidian (1997, 37) offers an optimistic quote from an Iranian woman:“I’m glad that I participated in the movement, I’m so proud of myself.Although our effort was not entirely successful, I’m sure that better days are ahead.”This woman’s hopes are echoed in the ongoing struggles within Iran for more inclusive democratic engagement by women and men as they attempt to move beyond theocratic control and toward social justice. Pale stine: Fre e dom Fighte r s or Te rrorists? The Israeli-Palestinian conflict is between the state of Israel and the people of Palestine. It is not a conflict predominantly between religions. Persons looking for justice outcomes must be clear and keep sight of the realities on the ground and avoid the often misleading rhetoric surrounding the issues. As Said (1994) suggests, principles are of utmost importance especially when in struggle. Therefore, these strivings will be considered in light of justice principles. As mentioned earlier, it would be neither appropriate nor useful to privilege one religious tradition over the other. While certainly the people involved in these conflicts have religious identities, it is their ethnic/political/ state identities that are at the forefront of these conflicts. “Israel is a state. It is not a religion or a people” (Mamdani 2005, 247).

188

Social Justice

Terrorism has been elevated to an archetypal threat through a variety of policies and schemes, such as the color coded terror threat alerts, employed by the U.S. Department of Homeland Security and other official governmental agencies since September 11, 2001.While that day will be remembered for the terror inflicted, it has also come to represent the beginning of a new understanding of people, places, and politics, especially in the region of the Middle East. The battle for territory in the Middle East between Israel and Palestine has been active for decades but has come to the forefront of concern for a variety of reasons. Mamdani (2005) explains the parallels between the U.S. invasion of Iraq and the increased violence against Palestinians.This violence is arguably a form of terrorism, just as are the suicide bombers who react to it. The sources and causes of terrorism are in fact issues of great debate.8 Osama bin Laden is the best known terrorist in the world and was arguably created by the CIA of the United States.There is a long tradition of U.S. intervention throughout the Middle East, including the CIA’s economic and military support of bin Laden during the cold war. At that time it was in the interest of the United States to keep Afghanistan out of the Soviet Union. Bin Laden was essentially the same person with the same political motives utilizing similar techniques when the United States armed and supported him.The common enemy of the Soviet Union made for this alliance, which would come back to haunt the United States in the form of the trade tower bombing (Mamdani 2005). The longstanding strife between Israel and Palestine has been especially fierce since the United Nations in 1947 imposed itself and its plan upon the struggle (Collins and Lapierre 1988). U.S. relations with Israel have also influenced the conflict. The institutionalization of the Israeli agenda within the U.S. media, the U.S. Department of Defense, and the CIA has given legitimacy to the Israeli side of the conflict. Further, the vilification of Arabs and Muslims has delegitimized the Palestinian plight (Ahmad 2000). Returning to the basic justice principles of need, equality, and dessert, we can locate injustices on both sides of this conflict.The individual Palestinians who bomb civilians do violate the need for safety of these persons. Although some may find these bombings understandable given the limited alternatives available, these bombings are not just in a scheme of justice that includes the meeting of human need, including life itself.The actions of the state of Israel are also unjust and are so in their violation of the justice principles of need, equality, and desert. Further, the resources of Israel are far greater than are those of the Palestinians, thus allowing greater injustices from this side of the conflict. The state of Israel imposes third class citizenship on the few remaining Palestinians within its borders (Ahmad 2000, 107).This third class citizenship requiring Palestinians to submit to numerous security checks, limiting employment possibilities, and denying access to many areas of Israel and the

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

189

occupied territories exemplifies the inequalities suffered by Palestinians from the Israeli state. Ongoing bombings, shootings by Israeli soldiers, and longterm detentions of suspects signify a barring of Palestinians from their need for life and freedom. Desert is impossible without life and equality. The horrors of the occupation are not typically exposed in mainstream Western media. However, according to Mamdani (2005), the New York Times gave a glimpse of the extremes of this state-sponsored terrorism when it ran an interview on February 2, 2002.The paper quoted an Israeli reservist explaining his and hundreds of other Israeli’s opposition to the policies of his state as “dominating, expelling, starving and humiliating an entire people” (212). When considering the injustice of the occupation, it must be considered in light of its state sponsorship and agenda. Israelis, like Palestinians, are not of one mind. It should not be assumed that all Israelis are in agreement with the agenda or the expression of the occupation. Lesser citizenship within the borders of Israel, the ongoing occupation of Palestinian lands, and the destruction of Palestinian homes recalls the history of apartheid South Africa.While policies in South Africa were more direct in their racism against blacks, policies in Israel are directed against Palestinians through language of security against a terrorist threat.A collective punishment against all Palestinians is then justified through a blanket assumption of terroristic motives on the part of a broad and diverse group.When this group is vilified through culture talk equating Muslim and/or Arab politics and identity with barbarism and terrorism, few outside the Arab world are willing to defend Palestine. Further, the sympathies for Israel as a necessary homeland for a long oppressed group pull many into alliance with or defense of Israel as an idea without the needed attention to the Israeli state (Mamdani 2005). Mamdani (2005) draws parallels between the practice of “necklacing” among the resistance in South Africa and bombings by Palestinians.As he points out, both practices are horrifying on their face but must be examined for their short- and long-term affect to understand why they continue. Necklacing— the practice of tying a cloth or tie around the neck of a suspected informant, soaking it with a propellant such as gasoline, and lighting it in order to gruesomely kill the suspect—in the short term had a deterring effect.The suspect killed could no longer inform on the group and anyone thinking of becoming an informant might reconsider. The long-term impact made it easy for condemnation of the resistance and may have alienated potential allies.The bombings by Palestinians, on the other hand, rids the occupied territory of a few occupiers but also damages the credibility of the resistance for many. Said (1994) quotes from the movie The Battle for Algiers: “Give us your bombs and you can have our women’s baskets” (344).The scene depicts a verbal engagement between an Algerian resister and a French military commander. As the scene and Said suggest, a well-armed state military complaining about

190

Social Justice

the possibilities of bombs in women’s baskets or tied to the bodies of resisters is hypocritical when that military not only has but also regularly uses its incredible military might against this resistance. When considering the justice struggles of the Palestinian people, religious differences must be set aside and racist notions of Arab and/or Palestinian propensities toward terrorism must be rejected. Instead, we must look at the situation in a clear historical light analyzing the actions of the state and the people applying justice principles. The history of this region is quite complex and contested. We encourage further reading on this topic, as it can not be fully explored here. As with other regions, entire texts are available for further study.We ask that the reader consider the possibilities of justice for any in the region when there is ongoing statesponsored oppression of an entire group.We can look to U.S. history and many other nations to understand that the occupation of the lands of one group by another imposing labels of barbarism and savagery to justify state atrocities do not serve justice. If we fail to learn from these histories and to rectify ongoing injustices, we cannot progress toward a society that attends to need, equality, and desert. Because the United States sends billions of dollars in aid to the Israeli government and military, it is necessary that those living in the United States be especially clear regarding our ideas and understandings of this area.We may not all agree about what is and is not just in the region, but having an understanding of the realities of the conflict and the injustices perpetrated will draw us closer to agreement and to enforcing decisions regarding U.S. policy and support in the area that match our own justice principles. Poland: Solidarity without Inde pe nde nce In August 1980, shipyard workers went on strike in Gdansk, Poland, inspiring strikes elsewhere to support the workers’ demands. Despite winning the right to organize an independent union, Solidarity was declared illegal by the Polish government and forced underground.This illegal status continued until 1989 but did not deter continued organizing and union activities, including mass strikes (Senser 1989). The demands of the workers involved in the strikes went beyond wages. These workers were also demanding greater family supports, the closure of shops that priced most working-class people out of the ability to buy scarce goods, and a free press, among other progressive reforms.This movement was not merely about raising the living standards of the workers involved. It was, instead, a broad justice movement looking to improve the material circumstances of Polish citizens isolated from political power. Activists were also working toward a more open society that would allow a broader range of voices and ideas in their unions and in the press (Barker 1987).

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

191

As Solidarity continued in their efforts to win greater social justice for the Polish people, difficulties arose. Biezenski (1996) describes two waves within Solidarity, with the first wave led by blue-collar workers and the second by white-collar workers. These waves were in conflict with each other and isolated from the rank and file within the unions. The representation of union members and their desires were thus limited within the union structure.While winning many of their demands and allowing more voice to workers, greater justice for the Polish people, and ultimately playing a roll in the fall of the Berlin wall, the structure of Solidarity was in some basic ways flawed. These flaws may have resulted in the subsequent decline in support for Solidarity leaders. Sikorski (1996) contends that the rejection of Solidarity candidates in elections in the 1990s indicated a break from strident anticommunist politics and a move to a more pragmatic and flexible style of politics represented by the Communist Party in Poland.This analysis may appear contradictory on its face given the Western view of communism and the former Soviet states. While many might view communism as strident and anticommunists as more flexible, it is important to consider the character of the communism practiced within the former Soviet Union and the movements necessary to combat the oppression exercised by its member states. The union movements that brought power to Solidarity grew during a period of economic crisis and growing inequalities among the population. While many in the West assumed that Poland as part of the Soviet Union was an equal society giving power to the workers, the reality of the Soviet Republics was to the contrary. Harman’s (2003) analysis of the Soviet Union after the rise of Stalin is one which accounts for the position of workers. He argues that because workers were not in control of production under Stalin, socialism had ceased to exist, preventing the development of communism. The term state capitalism is applied recognizing the position of the Soviet state as the new oppressor of the working class (Harman 2003).This analysis holds for Poland and the workers there who were not in control of their workplaces but were required to fight for the right to organize into unions. Whether one views Poland in the last century as a communist nation or a state capitalist regime, it is clear that the Polish workers were not in control of the means of production (factories, etc.) as required by a Marxist view of socialism and/or communism. In Poland at this point in history, the state regime, rather than a corporate boss (as is more typical elsewhere and since) was the adversary of organized workers. Barker (1987) argues that the failure of Solidarity and others to organize for removal of the state limited the progress of the movement for greater justice. Senser (1989) argues that moving toward a removal of the oppressive Polish government would have been unwarranted. On November 9, 1989, the people of the Soviet Union forced down the Berlin wall. Since then, ongoing change continues throughout the former

192

Social Justice

Soviet states.Three Baltic states—Latvia, Estonia, and Lithuania—have already developed democracies. This change has been slow, as suggested by Senser (1989), and moving toward a free market capitalism. Popular nonviolent revolutions in Georgia in 2003, in Ukraine in 2004, in Kyrgyzstan in 2005, and in Belarus in 2005 have signaled a yearning of people in struggle for social justice.The former three were successful in setting up new governments, the latter is still in process. Of the twelve former Soviet Republics, only Belarus and Turkmenistan remain with strong-man rulers (Holley 2005). The future of justice for Poland will depend on the ability of the Polish people to form a democratic structure that allows for the free association of workers in unions and the voice of all in state decisions. Ferry (2003) delineates the reforms taking place in response to demands/recommendations of the European Union (EU). As Poland emerges from the authority of the Soviet Union and submits to the European Union, the voice of the people and the rights of unions may again be in jeopardy. In 2005, both French and Danish voters rejected the EU constitution.Activists organizing for “no” votes on the constitution argue that this constitution is nondemocratic and removes decision making from national citizens and places those decisions in the hands of representatives at the EU (see http://www.europeannocampaign.com). The Poles, along with others throughout Europe, will decide the future of the EU either through resistance to nondemocratic moves or through acceptance of this new political-economic structure. Latin Ame rica Social movements throughout Latin America have a long and inspiring history. In the current historical period of increasing imperialist aggression, a neoliberal agenda is going largely unquestioned throughout much of the north.9 This agenda includes unrestrained privatization and has sparked new movements throughout Latin America. While the countries in this region are greatly varied in histories, economies, and people, the movements here often aim toward similar notions of justice: greater worker control in workplaces, an end to imperialist oppression from the United States (and/or other countries) and international corporations, and democratic decisions over the use of natural resources (Katz 2005).These demands are sometimes relegated mainly to electoral processes, as is the current case in Mexico and as was the case on January 16, 2006, when the people of Chile elected their first woman president, Michelle Bachelet, who ran on the Socialist ticket. But, at other times and/or places, these demands break out into mass movements. Bolivia:Water, Oil, and Democracy Bolivia is a country of interest because of the success of the popular movement in Cochabamba in 2000 to reclaim local control of water resources and

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

193

the more recent 2005 battles for control of water and oil that led to the ouster of President Mesa. These movements are dynamic and show the need for developing ideas and drawing lessons within struggle.Tom Lewis characterizes the water war in Cochabamba, Bolivia, as “the first great victory against corporate globalization in Latin America” (Olivera 2004, xiii). As the Bolivian people have proved since, it will not be the last. This battle for access to and control of water began in response to the privatization of this necessary resource in the city of Cochabamba. The New Economic Policy (NEP), which began in 1985 in Bolivia, allowed for the expansion of neoliberal policies through the privatization of what were public resources (Olivera 2004). The privatization of water is particularly problematic because it is a necessity of life and was particularly harsh in Bolivia because of the limitations placed on citizens to gain access to water outside the newly private sources and the greatly increased cost of water. The World Bank and the International Development Bank, as a condition for government loans, recommended this privatization. In further support of privatization, the Bolivian government imposed Law 2029 in October 1999 to prevent the collection of water through traditional practices, including the collection of rainwater.When the international water consortium known as Aguas del Tunari took control of the water in November 1999, it quickly became clear why the government had been supportive of this plan (Olivera 2004). Beyond the recommendations by the World Bank, government officials were to profit from privatization through their partial ownership in the four Bolivian companies included in the consortium. International Water, based in Spain and owned by U.S.-based Bechtel, was also to profit greatly from this scheme.The vast majority of people in Bolivia, however, had much to lose. Just as they had suffered declining wages and increased unemployment since the beginning of the NEP, they would now suffer a loss of their water (Olivera 2004). For the half of the population who were linked to the approved private system, water bills bloated from about five dollars to over twenty five dollars a month.Teachers, whose salaries were about eighty dollars per month, had difficulty paying, and those with less income were unable to pay. Many refused to pay at all, while those without access to the approved system resisted by continuing to use their alternative sources, in violation of Law 2029.The nondemocratic nature and clear profit motives for this privatization scheme clarified for many Bolivians the need to demand a voice in the process of decisions affecting public resources (Olivera 2004). In the mid 1990s, workers and others in Bolivia began to organize themselves to address a variety of problems.This organizing proved valuable when in 1999 the Coordinadora de Defensa del Agua y de la Vida (Coalition in Defense of Water and Life, often referred to simply as the Coordinadora) was formed.

194

Social Justice

The Coordinador was made up of workers, peasants, environmentalists, teachers, and others as a broad-based public group to demand a return of public water (Olivera 2004). Beginning in early November 1999 road blocks, demonstrations, and strikes were coordinated and drew larger than expected and growing crowds. By February the government began to respond to these mass demonstrations and road blocks with repressive violence, using state police, tear gas, and clubs on the peaceful demonstrations.This repression was met with even larger demonstrations that entirely closed the city, and even the smallest streets were blockaded by small bicycles and barricades clearly assembled by the children of the neighborhoods (Olivera 2004). By April the government had failed to meet a promised deadline for restructuring the water arrangement. Well-organized and non-destructive crowds took over the Aguas del Tunari offices. These citizen activists refused to move until the company left the city. The Civic Committee (made up of political and business elite) began to meet with city officials to find a solution in the absence of representatives from the Coordinadoras. When Olivera and others went into the meeting and demanded a voice, they were arrested.These arrests resulted in even larger demonstrations. Blockades continued as city officials refused to negotiate. The youth in the movement took control of the plaza from the military and all, including Olivera himself, feared an assassination of Olivera, the clear leader of the movement. In mid April, city officials became convinced that they must negotiate with the people. Although there were rumors that the movement was a drug dealers’ movement, city officials themselves recognized their own neighbors and friends, many of them elderly, within the demonstrations and realized this could not be the case. The contention that the movement was merely a few radicals was also proved false by the hundreds of thousands from a variety of political views filling the streets, plaza, and occupying offices (Olivera 2004). Olivera was finally called to negotiate with officials.The settlement included the reclaiming of the water from corporate hands and a board of directors to make decisions about the water, which included members of the Coordinadoras, two representatives from the mayor’s office, and two unionized workers from the water plant.This settlement was a victory over privatization. However, as Olivera himself points out, the negotiation was not entirely to the liking of those in the movement. It seems from his later discussions with people on the streets that they preferred complete control by the Coordinadoras (Olivera 2004). This recognition that his own ideas about a proper settlement was not the same as those outside the negotiations was an awakening for Olivera and indicates the dangers of isolation. Negotiations such as those that Olivera was engaged in can be intense and distort the desires of the majority. Clearly, city officials would be arguing that a settlement should include the desires of the

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

195

elite. In a negotiating room with these representatives, the elite can appear a large force. In relation to the masses on the street, their real size and proportion is better judged. Under different circumstances, a vote by all affected by the decision would have produced greater justice than the negotiations in which city officials held disproportionate power and were able to obtain onethird of the board seats when they clearly were not one-third of the citizens. This critique is not offered to diminish the incredible advances made by the people of Cochabamba, but as a point to consider as a counter to the sorts of negotiations that typically result from behind-closed-doors meetings with representatives of the powerful. Friedsky (2005) describes how the lessons from the water war of 2003 have been readily applied to the ongoing struggle for the nationalization of gas resources and for a constituent assembly. Over 75 percent of Bolivians support the call for nationalization.Winning a constituent assembly to replace the current governing scheme would allow for such overwhelming majority sentiment to become real. As the movements in Bolivia continue, there has been sufficient time for reflection and assessment of strategies.There has also been concern for the will of the people and the political development of the people in struggle. According to Friedsky (2005), Olivera is looking toward an opening of debate in all neighborhoods and among all people in this broad and diverse movement to decide the way forward and to develop their ability for selfgovernment. While the nationalization of gas will allow for this resource to enrich the lives of Bolivians (rather than further enriching multinational investors), the democratization of discussion and development of selfgovernment described by Friedsky (2005) will assure the will of the people in managing the gas resources and much more. While the future of Bolivia is still uncertain, the previous few years prove that within a reflective mass movement toward the will of the people, great strides toward social justice can be made. Rather than rely upon political leaders who handed public resources to a multinational corporation for their own enrichment and at great expense to the lives of the majority, the people of Bolivia took to the streets and won a basic necessity of life, water. Future actions may win the rights of controlling the rich gas resources of their nation. These actions may also develop the structures and consciousness needed to support a democracy equally inclusive of all voices and responsible to the will of the people. Venezuela:Twenty-First-Century Socialism Recently in Venezuela, the people were roused to defend their democratically elected president, Hugo Chávez, against a 2002 coup attempt by local elites supported by the U.S. government.The success of this defense and the ongoing political development in Venezuela has allowed for continued organizing around

196

Social Justice

progressive justice demands. More recently, Chavez, understanding the ideological war before him and espousing “twenty-first-century socialism,” has furthered media laws specifying that at least half of the music played on the country’s air waves be of Venezuelan origins.10 A new radio station promises to provide alternatives to CNN reportage. Other media messages announce “Unstoppable Revolution” (Marx 2005). Chavez, too, is pressing for a new distributive justice model based more on the needs principle.11 In a recent interview (Woods 2005a, 3) he has said,“it is necessary to transcend capitalism. But capitalism can’t be transcended from within capitalism itself, but through socialism, true socialism, with equality and justice. But I’m also convinced that it is possible to do it under democracy, but not in the type of democracy being imposed from Washington.” The core of Chavez’s economic model is two-pronged. First, the foreign policy entailing the production and sale of huge oil reserves has been reoriented toward other Latin American countries.Venezuela recently signed a trade pact for discounted oil to thirteen Caribbean neighbors (Marx 2005). The second prong of his economic policy deals with fostering “endogenous development,” whereby monies from the oil sales will support the development of thousands of small cooperatives. Along with this is the related policy of congestion—or co-management.The government is encouraging and supporting workers to buy interests in their companies so they may have a greater voice in the companies (Marx 2005). The larger goal is “to lift millions out of poverty by reducing Venezuela’s reliance on oil, which has left the country with a weak manufacturing and agricultural base and over-dependent on imports of food and almost everything else” (5). Chavez continues to have an approval rating of over 70 percent. He has won two elections by a considerable majority, has offered a new constitution “that gives the people the right to hold a referendum to dismiss an unpopular government,” and has had numerous of his programs ratified (Woods 2005b). He is, however, not without critics (see Osorio 2003). And U.S. Secretary of State Condoleezza Rice referred to him as a destabilizing influence. The United States has failed in its attempts to isolate Chavez from other leaders in Latin America and from political relevance.With continued threats to diminish oil flow to the United States, we may again see the United States attempt an intervention to secure its imperial interests in this oil, as it has done in Iraq (Sharma et al. 2004).12 Until that time, and perhaps through and after any future interventions,Venezuela will continue to be a study in popular movement toward justice. Zapatistas and Informational-Based Struggles Early in 1994 the Zapatistas were to emerge from the Chiapas province of Mexico to challenge years of neglect, repression, and indifference to the local population. They placed a high value on civil society and grassroots struggle.

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

197

Political and economic democracy could only be accomplished by ground-up reorganization (Burbach 2001; Lippens 2002, 2003).What distinguished their movement from earlier ones, however, was the extensive use of the Internet and media as an organizing tool (see, for example, http://www.ezln.org). In fact, the noted theorist of the current information age, Manuel Castells (2004, 75), has referred to this as the “first informational guerrilla movement.” Hardt and Negri (2004, 79) have referred to this as a form of “network struggles.” Burbach (2001, 116) has referred to it as the “first postmodern revolutionary movement.” From the beginning, the Zapatista National Liberation Army (EZLN) claimed that its goal was not to seize power, that they did not have a “blueprint” of the society to come, that their leaders were not the articulators of the political agenda, but rather that it was indigenous struggles and emerging platforms that would be the motor of social change. It was civil society—defined as a complex, interconnected configuration of cultural, economic, social, and political relationships (Burbach 2001, 133)—that needed to be rearticulated, especially by those with traditionally excluded voices. The Zapatistas saw themselves as presenting a mirror for all to reflect on their own social being. Contrary to the conventional connection with the criminal justice system, “justice,” according to Nash, “means not to punish, but to give back to each what he or she deserves, and that is what the mirror gives back [a more distributive notion of justice].” And “liberty is ‘not that each one does what he or she wants, but to choose whatever road that the mirror wants in order to arrive at the true world’ . . . and democracy requires ‘not that all think the same, but that all thoughts or the majority of the thoughts seek and arrive at a good agreement’ ” (Nash 1997, 261). The Zapatistas’ revolution was not vertically defined;13 it extended horizontally to the global arena, taking advantage of the movement of globalization and the contemporary revolution in information technology (136; see also Castells 2004; Hardt and Negri 2004).The Internet was vital to the emerging reorganization of civil society, providing the maximum circulation, sharing, and discussion of materials of those in struggle that could democratically take place. It is an image of oppositional forces in the jungles of Chiapas logging onto the Internet to engage in further struggles.The new information age, in short, was now being used by indigenous activists in their regional and global struggles. Hardt and Negri’s much discussed book, Multitude:War and Democracy in the Age of Empire (2002), which followed their monumental work, Empire (2001), have defined the Zapatista movement as the emerging modal of struggle against the power of empire and globalization. It is borderless, in flux, with emerging concepts of social justice that are regionally specific, yet informed by global economy and its consequences. It is a network struggle that privileges the multitude over any one party.14 It promises to “produce new

198

Social Justice

subjectivities and new forms of life. . . . Creativity, communication, and selforganized cooperation are its primary values” (Hardt and Negri 2004, 83). Notions of social justice, to respond to David Miller’s query about the definition of justice in an age of globalism and multiculturalism, is responded to by arguing that conceptions of justice based on need, merit, and equality will appear in multi-articulated formats that will be regionally defined and practiced. It is to put a premium on civil society, the power of social change by human beings in struggle, and the capacity for transcendence. It is a practice of social justice that emphasizes “localism, autonomy and horizontal relationships among all the participating groups and organizations” (Burbach 2001, 136). As Zapatista Subcomandant Marcos says, “the result will not be the triumph of a party, organization, or alliance of organizations with their particular social programs, but rather the creation of a democratic space for resolving the confrontations between different political proposals” (Burbach 2001, 135). The World Social Forum and the Road to Inte rnational Justice Teaching Justice Studies to undergraduates is to witness students’ awakening to new understandings of justice in the world. This awakening can be at once rewarding and frightening. It is rewarding because without an understanding of the world based on principles of justice, injustice is bound to continue. It is frightening because the witness of the light bulb moment for students exposes the disregard of these principles in earlier education, the mainstream media, and mainstream politics. As noted before, information and debate are key to democracy, and democracy is key to justice. Exposing even in this brief form a few of the justice struggles ongoing in the world is only a beginning toward fully informed debate. It is our hope that the reader will continue to gather information from a variety of sources and to debate ideas openly with peers, professors, and colleagues. This process of information sharing and debate developed into a new international forum in 2001. This itself is an important step toward international justice.The World Social Forum is the culmination of years of organizing and resistance and was particularly inspired by the Seattle protests of 1999 against the World Trade Organization (WTO), which disrupted those meetings while the whole world watched.The World Social Forum is also a beginning toward greater exchange of information and ideas between activists around the world.This peer-to-peer event allows those engaged in the pursuit of social justice to converse directly rather than rely upon often unreliable media interpretations of other struggles (Corrêa Leite 2005). Loretta Capeheart was privileged to attend the First Social Forum of the Americas in Quito, Ecuador, in the summer of 2004.This event is a spin-off of

Emerging Conceptions of Justice

199

the World Social Forum, along with the European Social Forum and others. Most rewarding at this event was the welcome by other activists who were at once surprised and gratified to find representatives from the United States.They were happy to find that the United States had movements ongoing within “the belly of the beast” and that U.S. activists were very interested in learning from the struggles in Bolivia, Brazil, Venezuela, and elsewhere on the continent. The attendees’ hopes of engagement in respectful honest debate also showed their distance from their imperial leaders who continually disregard all but their own agenda. More recently, Capeheart attended the Sixth World Social Forum held in Caracas,Venezuela, in February 2006.The forum continues in the tradition of bringing together activists engaged in a variety of social justice struggles. Of particular interest to this delegate was a panel debating the integration of Latin America.The panelists clearly disagreed with each other and were openly willing to question proposals from their established political leaders, including the supportive President Hugo Chavez of Venezuela. After the vigorous debate, a speaker from the floor reported that the petroleum workers from twelve countries (of which he was one in Venezuela) had already met and put forward a document outlining their plan for integration.This was truly an astounding and exhilarating announcement for those not working within the petroleum unions.The workers themselves have put forward a plan and are moving ahead to assure the just distribution of petroleum and just working conditions and wages for the petroleum workers. They have defined their own international justice and are in the process of pursuing it. Globalization and the neoliberal project have necessitated a common struggle by all of those interested in the pursuit of justice. As shown in the examples above, the injustices that occur in one nation are often directly or indirectly linked to the policies of another. For those living in the Western world and especially the United States, it is important to include in the analysis of any international injustice the impact of United States’ own policies. It is important to remember that neoliberalism has a price in our own lives, in the form of defunding public programs, job losses, and other injustices. Engaging with others, especially those directly affected by U.S. policies abroad and in our own neighborhoods, whether at an international conference, over the Internet, or in the street will assure a broader understanding. These understandings are the precursor to fully informed debate and democratic decision making. It will be up to those armed with this knowledge and tradition to act on their collective motives for justice and to develop the means and opportunity to execute global social justice. “We are running out of time. Even as we speak, the circle of violence is closing in. Either way, change will come. It could be bloody, or it could be beautiful. It depends on you” (Roy 2004, 118).

Chapte r 13

Conclusion

Justice is not static, nor does it exist outside of human construction. Pets may appear to act justly (or, in the case of some crankier sorts, unjustly) toward each other, but our judgment of their behavior is based on our own understandings of justice and not theirs. Justice is defined, sought, and attained through our social understandings and expressions. As illustrated in the first part of the text, definitions of justice have historically been devised by and/or for the elite. Plato, Socrates, and other philosophers of old were beholden to elite rulers and their own interests.Women and slaves were not engaged in the process of justice defining, nor were they invited to seek or attain justice by those espousing classical definitions. However, the ideas and the democratic process of debate have held sway over time and continue to inform current notions of justice. By the time that classical social theories of justice developed, the world had changed significantly and voices beyond the elite were emerging. These voices were not always welcomed or heeded, but nonetheless they have had a great impact on the understandings of justice. Our first approximation of justice includes the following elements: distributive principles (fair allocation of rewards and burdens) and retributive principles (appropriate responses to harm); how they relate to political economy and historical conditions; their local and global manifestations; the struggle for their institutionalization; how human well-being and development at the social and individual levels is enhanced by their institutionalization; and developing evaluative criteria or processes by which their enhancement or denial result. We have addressed these elements throughout the text, with specific chapters dealing with distributive justice (chapter 3) and retributive justice (chapter 4). As illustrated, the classical thinkers are especially important to an understanding of distributive justice. The theorists concerned with distributive justice looked to the organization of society to explain justice and just relationships within that structure. Distributive justice and social organization continue within the discourse of justice. Retributive justice is also important to current justice understandings. Defining crime, deciding upon punishment, and invoking just procedures 200

Conclusion

201

persist within the concerns of contemporary justice. While restorative justice has been long important to other nations and societies, it is only recently beginning to gain acceptance within the United States as a serious scholarly endeavor, and less so gaining acceptance within the practitioner community. This model is problematic in its acceptance of a former condition as just without critique of the social conditions that create and/or sustain that condition. Transformative justice allows progress from the restorative model toward supporting more just conditions for the individual and society. Retributive, restorative, and transformative models of justice allow for critical analysis of justice toward ever more just models. While the first part of the text allowed for an understanding of the conceptions of justice that form the basis of current notions, it also allowed us to critically examine these and to understand the historical placement and motivations of each. It should be clear that defining justice is a political and not merely a legal matter. Because this is so, any definition of justice must include an open and democratic dialogue (more inclusive than Plato would like) and encourage critique of previous understandings. Progress toward this end has occurred, but we have yet to devise a more comprehensive definition of justice informed by an inclusive engaging debate. The second part of the text illustrated the need for an inclusive wellinformed definition of justice and exemplified the relationship between the political economy and justice and the local and global manifestations. As was shown, the globe has shrunk, not literally, but in reality for our social lives.This has created exciting prospects and challenges for justice. Globalism and its pulling together of our diverse multicultural world has extended our base of information and our reach. Because we are now in contact with each other and our social worlds overlap so extensively, we must necessarily engage in a global defining of justice. Environmental and ecological justice are at once a small part of and an inclusive example of our need to seek justice on a global scale and within our local settings.As discussed, environmental and ecological damage are universal in their scope and local in their effect.While we seek environmental and ecological justice within our communities, we necessarily seek the same for the planet. Indigenous forms of justice are essential to the discussion and debate for social justice. Because these forms of justice do not recognize property in the same way as modern capitalist states, these justice models are especially important to developing critical ideas on intellectual property and cyberspace. Indigenous justice is also informative to cultural relativism and human rights. It will be our challenge in justice seeking to allow for the maintenance of the best indigenous justice practices while informing these with useful nonindigenous practices, and informing nonindigenous practices with those of indigenous peoples. So, too, with postcolonial studies, which indicate the continuous

202

Social Justice

nature of struggle well after “liberation” has been attained. This dialogue and exchange of ideas will allow for the emergence of newly informed justice. Similarly, postmodern forms of justice allow for a broader understanding of what justice may and may not entail. These ideas grow specifically from a rejection of previous modernist assumptions and ask that new understandings be allowed to emerge and develop. The major thinkers within this tradition were reviewed to offer a view of how these ideas emerge and where they have yet to proceed. Postmodern ideas continue to develop, to question our understandings of justice, and to provide a challenge for further progress in ideas.As with indigenous ideas, postmodern thought informs a further understanding of justice. The challenges toward justice offered in part 2 of the text were necessarily followed by examples of historical and ongoing justice struggles. Part 3 of the text continued the examination of local and global manifestations of justice and allowed an examination of struggles for institutionalization as well as the understanding of how justice at both the individual and social levels is enhanced by institutionalization.We began with a look at struggles within the legal arena.These struggles were engaged by individuals and groups excluded from legal justice. As the legal struggles evolved, notions of justice also developed. The dialectics of this relationship of struggle within the legal arena informing ideas are important to understanding the development of justice. Grassroots struggles within the United States were also presented, and, like the legal struggles, indicate a dialectical development of justice ideas. As persons and groups engaged in struggles for justice, their ideas shifted. These struggles and shifts had an impact on the collective understanding of justice. Primary in recent U.S. history were the civil rights struggles, which literally shaped current notions of racial justice and expanded visions of social justice. National justice struggles outside the United States were presented in part 3 for the purpose of showing that large-scale movements continue around the world and have resulted in a variety of justice outcomes.These struggles have a direct impact on the persons in the affected nation but also have an impact on the world as we watch and learn from these movements. Gatherings such as the World Social Forum will continue to be powerful modes of democratic debate and discussion for those engaged in movements toward justice and illustrate how we might develop evaluative criteria by which justice enhancement or denial result. Justice is contained within our social possibilities and will arrive when we demand it. As we have shown, a variety of justice ideas and ideals currently exist which if implemented would vastly improve the lives and justice conditions of the majority of people on the planet. If the needs of all on the planet were met, if more genuine substantive equality were attained, and if all desiring and deserving of desert had access to such, the world would be a far

Conclusion

203

different and more just place in which to exist. Certainly more complex notions of justice will continue to compete. Allowing a full discussion and debate of these notions within conditions of fulfilled needs and genuine equality would allow for the best ideas to fully emerge. It is certain that continuing to allow justice to be defined by the few and to silence the many will not serve justice. History and this text document the possibilities of the silenced majority to take back their collective voice and demand justice. The Coordinadora’s in Bolivia are only one recent example of this possibility and promise.The first step toward justice is the serious consideration of justice and the ideas that inform it. An equally important step toward the attainment of justice is participation in struggles informed by these ideas. These struggles may be large (national revolutionary movements) or small (anti-death penalty movements), but all movements toward justice are important.This engagement will necessarily allow for a dialectical relationship between the ideas brought into the struggle and the lessons learned within it. This dialectic in turn has and will develop advances in ideas and struggle. If democratic values are respected within these struggles, they will allow for the emergence of a new and advanced form of justice.We can look at history and witness these advances. If we take the lessons of this history seriously, we will look to our future and find justice.

Note s

Pre face 1. Other universities with programs or departments with Justice Studies as titles or part of titles include Kent State University, Methodist College, San Jose State University, University of San Francisco, University of Thomas, Goshen College, and University of Idaho. The list grows as more departments change their names from criminal justice to Justice Studies. 2. The Northeastern Illinois University Catalogue includes a description of the Justice Studies Program: In Justice Studies we seek to discover the social and historical roots of justice and injustice and examine how popular understandings of these shape public policies, including those of the criminal justice system.We study systematic explanations for the failure (or triumph) of justice in society and explore the potential for transformative justice. Through critical inquiry, social science investigation, and experiential learning, students develop an understanding of social and economic justice issues and critical criminology. We study the structural roots of crime and take up the legal and social concerns of socially disenfranchised communities whose members are often clients of the criminal justice system, including the poor, people of color, women, prisoners, and refugees.The program makes a special effort to involve and serve community groups. Field experience, focusing on advocacy for community justice and the ethics that inform those practices, complements the academic program. The School of Justice and Social Inquiry at Arizona State University includes the following “mission statement”: We are interdisciplinary and transdisciplinary, with a tradition of strong ties with other units in the social sciences and humanities.The School has three broad foci: ■





Economic Justice—particularly the global dimension of changing economic relations. Social Justice, Law and Policy—focusing on crime, environment, immigration, welfare, health, and other policies that inspire justice concerns, especially around race, class, and gender. Cultural Transformation and Justice—especially the role of the media and new technologies in changing perspectives on justice.

. . . Our students develop an understanding of the meanings of justice and injustice from a comparative, historical, and global context and learn to analyze issues through critical inquiry and social science investigation. We

205

Notes to Pages ix–xii

206

are strong in the areas of law and society, feminist studies of justice, socioeconomic inequality, immigration, and media . . . . Part of our strength as an academic unit lies in the combination of backgrounds we bring to teaching and research. Our faculty have advanced degrees in American studies, criminology, history, law, philosophy, political science, psychology, science, sociology and technology. . . .As an undergraduate major, Justice and Social Inquiry is attractive because it offers a broad range of well-taught courses on various aspects of justice, as well as a core designed to foster critical thinking, writing, and inquiry. Students learn about conflict and its negotiation, alternatives to violence, punishment, and incarceration, and the institutional foundations of inequality, racism, sexism, poverty and injustice. Our internship program offers students the opportunity to work with justice related agencies, ranging from domestic violence shelters to the Arizona Attorney General’s Office. The department of Justice Studies at Kent State University has the following “mission statement”: The Department of Justice Studies acknowledges its relationship to the College of Arts & Sciences and the interdisciplinary nature of its discipline and seeks through its curriculum to provide students with a broad foundation of knowledge grounded in the humanities and social sciences. Further, recognizing that a humane and equitable provision of justice is the foundation of a democratic society, the Department seeks to sensitize students to the values and views of diverse segments of society. In pursuit of this goal, courses within the curriculum serve to further students’ conceptual understanding of the values, ethics, and power relationships involved in the process of justice. In short, while never losing our essential roots in the liberal arts, humanities and social sciences, we recognize and make explicit the duality of our field. It is both academic and professional. It is both conceptual and applied. The Justice Studies Department at Methodist College has the following description: The purpose of the Justice Studies Program is to provide students with a system orientation to the field of criminal justice and a holistic view of behavior, conditions, and circumstances that produce crime and criminality. Crime, criminality, and the criminal justice system are studied from a social science perspective. Students acquire a knowledge base and comprehensive understanding of criminological theory as it applies to the causation, prevention, control, and treatment of criminal behavior.The Program provides students the opportunity to acquire the necessary skills in interpersonal communications, program development, community organization, planning and research to function in a professional position in the field of criminal justice. 3.

See Brian MacLean and Dragan Milovanovic’s early anthology of emerging perspectives in critical criminology, New Directions in Critical Criminology (1991) and Thinking Critically about Crime (1997).

Chapte r 2

Conce ptions of Justice

1. Kagan (1965) presented a thorough explanation of Homer’s influence on the Greek tradition. 2. Spelman (1982, 1988) offers essential and instructive critiques of exclusion in ancient thought.

Notes to Pages 14–47

207

3. See http://www.newadvent.org/summa/3.htm and http://www.ccel.org/a/aquinas/ summa/home.html. Litowitz (1997, 193) and Fuchs (1965) make the point that Aquinas’s treatise “was a mélange of Platonic,Aristotelian, and biblical sources.” 4. Consider Aquinas’s notion of a just exchange, that in many ways anticipated Durkheim’s discussion of “social value” (see chap. 3): “it is necessary to equalize thing with thing, so that the one person should pay back to the other just so much as he has become richer out of that which belonged to the other.The result of this will be equality according to the ‘arithmetical mean’ which is gauged according to equal excess in quantity. Thus 5 is the mean between 6 and 4, since it exceeds the latter and is exceeded by the former, by 1. Accordingly if, at the start, both persons have 5, and one of them receives 1 out of the other’s belongings, the one that is the receiver, will have 6, and the other will be left with 4: and so there will be justice if both be brought back to the mean, 1 being taken from him that has 6, and given to him that has 4, for then both will have 5 which is the mean” (Aquinas, Qu. 61, art. 2). 5. In Qu. 58, art. 11, however, he does indicate that for the needy, “need” may become the relevant criterion of justice. Here, the virtues of mercy and pity thus are operative. 6. According to Ross (1974, 261),“Like a harlot, natural law is at the disposal of everyone.The ideology does not exist that cannot be defended by an appeal to the law of nature.” 7. More recently, Jeffrey Reiman (1990, 277–290) has derived a Marxist contractarian view derived from Rawls. He refers to it as the “labor theory of moral value.” He shows how the best-off and worst-off can each be motivated and be rewarded in society in such a way that even the worst-off benefit without putting tremendous strains on the best-off. 8. Other more essentialist supporters include Sara Ruddick and Nel Noddings (Houston 1987). 9. See also Phillip’s (1986, 133–155) explication of moral development and how it relates to social justice. 10. Developed by her mentor, Lawrence Kohlberg (1969).

Chapte r 3

Distributive Justice

1. Jeffrey Reiman (1990, 272–290), drawing from a critique of Rawls, developed the notion of social justice which he called the “labor theory of moral value.” It could be applied, he argues, in capitalist or socialist societies. It is a justice of mutual benefit, where the worst-off, given their particular input, receive proportionally slightly more benefits than the same input by the better-off, thus providing material incentive for each. 2. Exemplary in this area has been Dennis Sullivan and Larry Tifft’s (2001) Restorative Justice. They develop a needs-based conception of justice. See also Walzer’s (1983) examination of a Jewish community in medieval times. 3. In globalism, national boundaries are becoming increasingly blurred and where the logic of a global market place dominates; in multiculturalism, a variety of groups or emerging groups within an existing state attempt to assert their identities. Some authors (Unger 1996) have indeed argued that a rationalizing legal discourse is growing globally, and, consciously or not, it is formal rationality that will dominate. For example, when the United Nations engages the issue of indigenous intellectual property rights, it squarely faces the issue of need, merit, or equality.

Chapte r 4

Retributive Justice

1. Arguably, however, we have two schools of thought on how much determinism one is willing to assume. The strong version argues no free will whatsoever. The softer version argues some choice does exist, but it is very limited.

208

Notes to Pages 48–61

2. Various studies, however, have come up with the dilemma of the false positives— those predicted to be dangerous but do not become so. Instruments designed to predict dangerousness have been notoriously inaccurate, even when two or three experts (psychiatrists, social workers, etc.) have independently completed extensive interviews. 3. In a movie directed by Steven Spielberg,“The Minority Report,” there’s a depiction of the ability to forecast the future, including crime. Police are provided with “previsions” and then track, arrest, and incapacitate the suspect who is about to commit homicide and hence eliminate it. In this city no homicides have taken place for six years. 4. Quoting from Bator (1963):“we are told that the criminal law’s notion of just condemnation and punishment is a cruel hypocrisy visited by a smug society on the psychologically and economically crippled.” 5. Consider the terminology often employed (Bator 1963, 368–369): “duel,” “battle for the truth,” “a fight for justice,” “championing the cause of the accused,” lawyers as “hired gun,” “tactical advantage,” “declaration of war,” “marshalling one’s proof.” 6. Key sociologists who have contributed to an understanding of how crime is “created” and sustained include Erickson (1966), Lemert (1951), Becker (1963), and Durkheim (1964). 7. For a concise review, see Ness and Strong (2002) and Braithwaite (2002). 8. Arguably, the demise of the rehabilitative ideal could be marked by Robert Martinson’s (1974) influential article “What Works?” as well as the subsequent article by Lipton, Martinson, and Wilks,“The Effectiveness of Correctional Treatment” (1975). 9. Conceptual objections include (Ness and Strong 2002, chaps. 8 and 9) the following:“this means the end of law”;“multiple parties cannot pursue multiple goals and achieve a single overarching purpose”;“not all harms can be identified, and of those that are, not all are of equal importance”;“government and community will not be able to share responsibility for public safety in the way anticipated by restorative justice theory”;“this will reduce due process protections”;“victims cannot receive adequate attention in any model that simultaneously considers offender rehabilitation”; “this will cause unacceptable disparity of sentences”; and “coercion will be necessary, and coercion is antithetical to a restorative model.” Practical objections include the following: “restorative justice will not work with dangerous offenders”; “most victims and offenders are never identified”; “large-scale use of restorative justice will lead to its depersonalization”; “individualistic and pluralistic cultures will keep restorative justice from working”; and “restorative justice may work for minor crimes, but certainly not for murder.” 10. In chapter 5 we will address their “transformative justice” component. 11. Sullivan and Tifft would be wary of the extension of this logic, arguing that restorative justice will gradually be incorporated into traditional criminal justice practices with its logic, standards, abstractions, and measures. 12. One can detect here as well as in restorative justice programs generally some of the dynamics of Habermas’s call for the “ideal speech situation.”

Chapte r 5

Toward Transformative Justice

1. The term “community” can mean many things. The Law Commission of Canada (1999, 34) defines it as follows:“Community can be simply a geographic unit, a subdivision or a village, for example. Member and non-member are easily identified and outsiders are easily excluded . . . [it] can also be conceived of as a set of attitudes. Phrases such as “sense of community . . . reflect this symbolic conception and

Notes to Pages 61–69

2.

3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8.

9.

10.

11.

12. 13. 14.

209

exert social pressures on members to conform . . . [it] may be conceived more fluidly as networks of associations that bind people together based on mutual interests or obligations.” Collaborative problem-solving conflict resolution, on the other hand, is based on some theoretical framework of human needs and how they are thwarted, which produces conflict (Burton 1990; Scimecca 1991, 274, 1990). Burton (1979), adding one to Sites’s (1973), for example, develops nine “universal” human needs. These include a need for consistency of response, stimulation, security, recognition, distributive justice, recognition, appearance of rationality, meaningful response, a sense of control, and for defending one’s role. We could also look at Abraham Maslow’s (1954) classic statement on the “hierarchy of needs.” Conflict resolution, on the other hand, is more concerned about “understanding” in the context of its structural sources. On the other hand, conflict resolution attempts to empower the subordinate party to the conflict. “Conflict settlement” is where some power asserts or imposes a settlement.“Conflict management,” on the other hand, is where conditions within an institution are changed, but with no overall structural change (Burton 1987; Scimecca 1991, 265). For other articulation of universal “needs,” see Lederer (1980), Sites (1973), and Wilson (1975). Miller (1999, 205) cites, for example, a passage from Marx’s Critique of the Gotha Programme (1997, 569), that this criteria of justice would take place in situations where “the springs of co-operative wealth flow more abundantly.” Other views exist. Young (1995) has advocated a “restorative justice community.” Her emphasis is on community input in responding to and preventing crime. Burnside and Baker (1994) have advocated a “relational justice.” Social relations and their repair is the focus. A perusal (March 20, 2005) of the “Restorative Justice” Web site (http://www. restorativejustice.org/) for “transformative justice” indicated thirty-eight abstracts on the subject. Ruth Morris’s work seems most suggestive for a transformative justice; most others seem to equate restorative justice with its expected results on change on persons and community without the factor of structural change as a constituent element. An extension of his behavior of law thesis is that they predict the crime rate, who the offenders are, and the seriousness of the crime, independent of any conception of the human subjects (i.e., their motivation, whether they are driven by utilitarianism, hedonism, etc.).The various patterns do not address the “why” but the “how” law behaves.To address the “why” we would need additional theorizing. The punitive accusatory model (Black’s penal style) includes deterrence, incapacitation, and retribution; the therapeutic remedial (Black’s therapeutic style) includes rehabilitation; the compensatory accusatory (Black’s compensatory style) includes restitution; and the conciliatory remedial (Black’s conciliatory style) includes mediation. In this model, a person’s consciousness comes from her or his existence; one is a product of one’s environment. Harms are seen as products, for example, of the dehumanizing, alienating, crippling, and overly competitive effects of capitalism. Recall from chapter 3 and the summary of Pashukanis’s commodity exchange theory of law perspective. In his critique, equal standards were being applied to unique individuals and hence are a form of repressive formalism. See, for example, Jeffrey Reiman’s “labor theory of moral values” (1990, n. 1). Here, inequalities would be progressively diminished while still offering “incentives” for both the well-off and worse-off to gain additional advantage, even if disproportionally, favoring the worse-off. Fairness, justice, would not necessarily entail the

Notes to Pages 69–90

210

15. 16. 17.

18. 19.

20. 21.

dismantling of a capitalist mode of production. Justice principles could be developed within its logic. The specification of a “level” is used loosely here. One needs to keep in mind that a “level” is merely an abstraction that is useful for theorizing. It is not real in an ontological sense. A more holistic model would consider all three levels operative. It may very well be, however, in particular situations the importance of one is more so than another/ others. The curricular would include the following amongst others (see Arrigo et al. 2005, 112):“accept and promote tolerance of cultural diversity; accept and promote tolerance of sex/gender diversity; . . . expose association between political, economic, and cultural inequity, poor education, and nonnormative behavior (including violence); . . . teach community organizing and political strategy skills; draw on student experiences for pedagogical practices; . . . promote fairness and equity in the administration of justice.” See also Milovanovic’s (1996) application of Freire’s dialogical pedagogy to lawyer– client relations and how alternative forms of discourse and justice could emerge. In a very influential book by Urich Beck, Risk Society (1992), it is argued that latemodernity (post mid-1980s) risk has become ubiquitous and will be increasingly so. Risk-taking will undoubtedly lead to more conflict situations, new forms of resolution, and unintended consequences. Henry and Milovanovic (2001) have referred to these as “harms of repression” and “harms of reduction.” Pragmatism leads to establishing principles, which, in implementation are subject to novelty in pragmatic encounters, which in turn transform the principle.The “realist” in law at the turn of the twentieth century advocated this (see Milovanovic 2003).

Chapte r 6

Multiculturalism, Globalism, and Challe nge s to Deve loping Forms of Justice

1. The G8 comprises France, the United States, Britain, Germany, Japan, Italy, Canada, and, more recently, Russia. It began originally as six at a summit in 1975. Its purpose is to deal with “macroeconomic management, international trade, and relations with developing countries. . . . The summit also gives direction to the international community by setting priorities, defining new issues and providing guidance to established international organizations. At times it arrives at decisions that address pressing problems or shape international order more generally” (http://www.g7. utoronto.ca/what_is_g8.html). 2. The Internet is in danger, too, of states citing external threats, real or imagined, that justify overzealous surveillance and control of the Internet (e.g., the expansive authority provided by the Patriot Act passed shortly after 9/11 in the United States to invade privacy, and the practices of China and Vietnam in keeping close watch on the Internet for subversive activity). 3. There are some who question whether globalization is even taking place (Hirst and Thompson 1999). 4. Consider Johnson and Leighton’s (1995) empirical analysis of health and other records that indicate African Americans are being systematically deprived of a number of years off their life expectancy; thus, for these authors, it is black genocide. 5. Roberto Unger (1996) has warned us of the effects of “rationalizing legal analysis,” a form of thinking toward resolving problems that follows Max Weber’s principles of formal rationality: rigid, mechanistic, deductive logic. This excludes the benefits of experimentation, drawing from real world situations, coming to an inductive understanding of the nature of being in a changing world.

Notes to Pages 91–103

211

6. Some machinery is already in place in the United Nations.Article 33 of the Charter of the United Nations states “the parties to any dispute shall, first of all, seek a solution by negotiation, enquiry, mediation, conciliation, arbitration, judicial settlement, resort to regional agencies or arrangements, or other peaceful means of their own choice.” Article 36, section 2, says that the Security Council should defer to such proceedings. 7. There has been some developments in countering the risks by introducing an “actuarial” form of justice where the emphasis is in terms of identifying risk and instituting measures that would minimize their negative affects (Ericson and Haggerty 1997; Rigakos 1999;Tulloch 1999). 8. In the furtherance of offering the potential for developing this “space,” “a pocket of compromise,” in which alternative thought may take place about a dispute, Milovanovic (1999, 2003) has offered the tools of catastrophe theory to suggest how this space might be created and sustained.We need more research in how precisely this “space” can be created.What critical variables come into play? What role should mediators play? How much force, if any, is necessary to generate this space?

Chapte r 7

Environme ntal and Ecolog ical Justice

1. They conceptualize crime in terms of harms of reduction and harms of repression. 2. Consider Lacan’s notion of “pas-toute” and Lyotard’s notion of the “differand.” 3. Agyeman et al. (2000, 5) have noted the development of two positions within a just sustainable development paradigm: the “hard” version has it that “renewable resources must not be drawn down faster than they can be replenished, in that natural capital must not be spent”; the “soft” version “accepts that certain resources can be depleted as long as they can be substituted by others over time.” 4. Kheel (1995) has coined this “biocide.” 5. Consider the 1984 report by the California Waste Management Board, paid for by California taxpayers, which suggested possible sites for garbage incinerators that included communities of least resistance—poor and rural communities and communities with low educational levels of residence, amongst others (Cole and Foster 2001, 3). 6. Consider the residents of the Pilsen neighborhood in Cook County, Illinois, who have been recently actively apposed to a scrap metal recycling plant in their neighborhood that released 3,400 pounds of lead into the air (federal records) during 2003. Almost twelve thousand residents, mostly Latinos (90 percent), live within a half mile of the plant. Lead has been shown to be poisonous at any level, causing various disabilities, especially in children. Contrary to the residents, state, federal, and local regulators claim the lead does not pose a problem and their discharge complies with environmental laws. One claim by the advocates of the plant is that it continues to provide manufacturing jobs. 7. See also Adams and Donovan (1995).This anthology shows the connections between animal defense and feminism. They indicated that there is a profound connection between gender oppression and abuse of other species (speciesism). 8. Consider the illuminating study by Kheel (1995) concerning an ecofeminist critique of the discourse of hunters. Kheel shows how the discourse of hunters both disguises and legitimizes biocide. It often is a subterfuge, often unconscious, for masculine self-identity. This more hidden discourse “sees women and nature as objects to be manipulated, managed, and controlled in an attempt to establish masculine self-identity and worth” (110). 9. For an annotated bibliography that looks at disparate impact of environmental hazards by race and also, to a lesser degree by income, see Coles and Foster (2001, 55, 167–183).

212

Notes to Pages 104–110

10. In 2003 the Indian government began a massive dam project that would interlink thirty-seven rivers. Billed the largest water project in the world, it will impact millions of people. Ostensibly providing drinking and irrigation waters to some forty million people, it has already submerged over 245 villages and displaced over a million people. See http://www.narmada.org. 11. See http://mirror/unep.org/Documents.Multingual/Default.asp?DocumentID⫽43; http://earthobservations.org; http://yosemite.epa.gov/oar/globalwarning.nsf/content/ index/html. Kyoto Protocol to the United Nations Framework Convention on Climate Change, December 11, 1997, UN Doc. FCCC/CP/1997/L.7/Add. 1, (1997) 37 I.L.M. 22. GEOSS was endorsed by the European Commission and some sixty governments on February 16, 2005. It “is designed to qualitatively improve our understanding of the Earth system, markedly enhancing global policy- and decisionmaking abilities to promote the environment, human health, safety, and welfare” (http://earthobservations.org). 12. See http://www.epa.gov/cgi-bin/epaprintonly.cgi. 13. Lee’s suggestions focusing on issues of “degradation” of the environment and “disruptions” of people’s ways of life is the functional equivalent of defining harms, respectively, in terms of “harms reduction” and “harms of repressions” (Henry and Milovanovic 1996; Milovanovic and Henry 2001).

Chapte r 8

Indige nous/Po stcolonial Forms of Justice

1. We will not develop various forms of justice that have historically existed. This would be for another important text. Rather, we are more concerned in the current work on how existing indigenous peoples’ ways of life have been repressed by colonizing powers and how recent developments have undermined previous understandings. 2. Aboriginals from Australia comprise more than five hundred tribal groups, more than 170 languages, and are about 1.0–2.5 percent of the total population. Their flag is officially recognized. First Nations of Canada are seen as Inuit, Indian, and Metis. They have at least ten languages, more than forty tribes, and make up about 1.5–3.0 percent of the total population. Maori is one of the two official languages of New Zealand.They include at least thirty-six “iwi” (or particular tribal groups), and constitute about 12.9 percent of the total population (Havermann 1999, 6). In the United States there are fewer than two and a half million native Americans. 3. Niezen (2003, 19) tells us that the key factors would be “descent from original inhabitants of a region prior to the arrival of settlers who have since become the dominant population; maintenance of cultural differences, distinct from a dominant population; and political marginality resulting in poverty, limited access to services, and absence of protections against unwanted ‘development’ ” (see also Martinez report to the UN 1987). 4. For a good summary of Maori ways of knowing and social change, see Walker (1999) and Sorreson (1999). 5. Growing up in Australia, I (DM) recall how often I witnessed historical pictures hanging in prominent places that showed a small boat coming ashore with several uniformed men in British attire disembarking, with the caption,“Captain Cook discovers Australia in 1770.” Similarly, when I moved to the United States, our teachers would drill us that “Columbus discovered America in 1492.” 6. Consider Justice Marshall’s (1823, 591) blatant statement:“However extravagant the pretension of converting the discovery of inhabited country into conquest may appear; if the principle has been asserted in the first instance, and afterwards, sustained; if a country has been acquired and held under it; if the property of the great

Notes to Pages 110–119

7. 8.

9.

10.

11.

12. 13.

14. 15. 16.

17.

18.

213

mass of the community originates in it, it becomes the law of the land, and cannot be questioned.” See Kennedy’s (1997) insightful analysis that judges are more often bad faith actors engaged in denial. As Deleuze and Guattari (1987, 360) argue,“sovereignty only reigns over what it is capable of internalizing.”Thus “interiority” now allows the further regulation, control, and exploitation of the colonized peoples through the rule of law. Lacan’s (1977) notion of the discourse of the university and discourse of the master also provides the dynamic by which certain voice are denied expression. See also Lyotard’s notion of the “differand.” Consider U.S. law, 17 U.S.C Para 102. This reads in part, “(a) copyright protection subsists . . . in original works of authorship fixed in any tangible medium of expression. . . . Works of authorship include the following categories: (1) literary works; (2) musical works, including any accompanying words; (3) dramatic works, including any accompanying music; (4) pantomimes and choreographic works; (5) sound recordings; and (6) architectural works.” Gudeman (1996, 103) makes the connection between enlightenment-generated underlying assumptions of the independent author to rights quite succinctly: “This is part of a Western epistemology that separates mind from body, subject from object, observer from observed and that accords priority, control, and power to the first half of the duality.” Consider Wiesnner (2001, 271–72): “The indigenous view of the world . . . is the antithesis to the Western paradigm: communitarian, not individual, focused on sharing rather than shielding things, respect for land and all living things as sacred rather than as objects ripe for exploitation and consumption.” Each tribe has its own dreamtime, many of which originate in the Giant Dog or Snake.These are handed down orally from one generation to another. For a colorful introduction, see http://www.crystalinks.com/dreamtime.html. In Deleuze’s conceptualization, the sovereign state-form will forcefully interiorize, or subject to centripetal forces, variances from dominant logics to the capitalist axiomatic. Exceptional variances, of course, will be the subject of police, military, mental health, and penal responses. In short, in “control societies” (Deleuze 1995) one of the underlying mechanisms for subjugation to the axiomatic is Foucault’s disciplinary mechanisms, but under pretenses of a legitimizing ideology justifying its correctness. Recall those words of Weber (1978, 953) concerning the “need of any power . . . to justify itself.” The Indian Arts and Craft Act provides protection to individual Indian artists. See their Web site at http://www.unhchr.ch/indigenous/main.html. In this way, too, becoming-indigenous (see Deleuze and Guattari 1987; Patton 2000) is the antidote to the disciplinary mechanism of which Foucault spoke. Both the “majority” and the “minority” are benefited by the emergence of a new paradigm that is fluid, open ended, processual, contextual, and coproduced, where creative emergents flourish. One interesting comparison can be made with the notion of the “multitude” developed by Hardt and Negri (2004). This concept represents the uniqueness of the human being that resists being subsumed within an abstract category; but it also stands for a profound connectedness in a global economy.The notion of indigenous peoples and the multitude are destined for some future difficult encounters. Consider Henry and Milovanovic (1996, 2001) reconceptualization of crime as “harms of reduction” (persons being reduced from the standing they have or are accustomed to) and “harms of repression” (persons thwarted in their drive to self-actualize).

214

Notes to Pages 119–130

19. See chapter 9 concerning Habermas’s notion of the desirability of the “ideal speech situation” and possibility of reaching consensus, a notion that Lyotard firmly rejects. For Lyotard, consensus invariable produces the “differand.” 20. Other theorists also can be identified as contributing to this literature: Gloria Anzaldua, H.L. Gates Jr., C.L.R. James, W.E.B. Du Bois, Chela Sandoval, Minh Ha Trinh, and bell hooks. See also the electronic journal Jouvert:A Journal of Postcolonial Studies at http://social.chass.ncsu.edu/Jouvert/. 21. For example, jailhouse lawyers who teach themselves law while incarcerated and inadvertently find themselves supporting the legal system and its discourse. They gain a voice but lose the position from which they would like to speak. A sterilization process takes place. This is part of the dialectics of struggle (see Milovanovic 1988; Milovanovic and Thomas 1989). 22. Said draws particularly from Foucault’s books, The Archeology of Knowledge and Discipline and Punish. 23. See Smith (1999) for an insightful analysis of “decolonizing methodologies.”

Chapte r 9

Po stmode rn Forms of Justice

1. For a side-by-side comparison of modernist and postmodernist, see Milovanovic (1995, 1997; see also Arrigo, Milovanovic, and Schehr 2005). 2. In keeping with the thrust of this book, we will not undertake an exhaustive critique of postmodern justice.That would constitute a book in itself.We focus on presenting in summary form some key developments. 3. We have been greatly inspired by Douglas Litowitz’s Postmodern Philosophy of Law (1977). He has succinctly reviewed some of the key postmodernists for their potential contributions to law and justice. However, arguing outside of the perspective, he does remain critical of the possibilities.A different prognosis, however, would appear for a postmodern-leaning thinker (see, for example, Milovanovic [forthcoming]). We encourage interested readers to actively follow his critiques. 4. Marx,Weber, and Durkheim are also examples of external critiques—in this case, by modernist thinkers. 5. As White (1991, 125) informs us,“care . . . is adequately expressed, first, by the sensitivity with which one initially comprehends the specific situation of injustice or suffering; and, second, by the alleviation of the particular burden.” 6. The problem, however, according to Litowitz (1977, 39–40), is possible cooptation and the sustaining of legitimacy of the conventional order. 7. Off course, the dilemma is often raised about such things as local practices (“rights”) of circumcision done to women in the name of understood cultural practices.This violent practice has been the basis of much international discussion. Lyotard, of course, would have to deal with how to respond, given his view that we should respect nuanced language-games.A Lyotardian perspective is faced with the dilemma of identifying when certain practices can be condemned. 8. For an accessible presentation of “deconstruction,” see Balkin (1987) as well as his Web site. Deconstruction means a critical examination of ideologies that are embedded in dominant texts (literary, legal, and cinematic). 9. Nietzsche, in On the Genealogy of Morals, explains that the notion of the individual only emerged because of the need for accountability. When we search for causes for some negative occurrence, we are also looking for someone or something to blame for it. A blameworthy act necessitates an agent who was its cause. Hence we develop discourses of accountability, the free-willed individual, and institutions for punishment. 10. This draws inspiration from Nietzsche. Rorty also draws from Sigmund Freud when investigating the self.

Notes to Pages 132–135

215

11. He differs with many in postmodern theorizing in his ontology. Ontology, in philosophy, deals with those things that theorists are willing to accept as existing (Delanda 2002, 2). Does a person have free will or is he or she determined? Is the person rational, or not? Rather than siding with the philosophical position that assumes no reality exists independent of human’s imposing their constructs, Deleuze does accept a realist agenda, that there are realities independent of human’s rational constructions. But these “realities” are dynamic states of forces seeking expression, no more. Deleuze often wrote with Felix Guattari. Their classics include AntiOedipus (1983) and A Thousand Plateaus (1987). For an accessible introduction, see Massumi (1992), Goodchild (1996), and Holland (1999). 12. He calls these “social machines” and includes the territorial, despotic, and capitalist. In early society, the territorial machine is based on kinship systems. Justice is not based on equal exchange but on relations that revolve around credit and debt. The despotic society is where hierarchies appear with the despot at its pinnacle. Allegiance is now owed to the despot, in the form of an infinite debt.The capitalist social machine is about the generation of surpluses (profits) but also of continuous breakdown (“deterritorialization”) and rebuilding (“territorialization”) of codes (see Patton’s accessible summary [2000, 88–108]). Desire and forces are continuously coded into axioms supportive of capitalistic logic. Various institutions (“abstract machines”), such as law, apply these axioms to everyday life. 13. Consider Aristotelian logic: All desire is good. Ambition is desire. Therefore, ambition is good. 14. Deleuze and Guattari have referred to this strategy as “schizoanalysis.” It is equated with the war-machine and attempts to develop alternative expression to otherwise “captured” desire. 15. Take for example the recent U.S. Supreme Court’s decision on what constitutes just admission criteria for entrance into law school as well as undergraduate studies (see Gratz v. Bollinger [2003] and Grutter v. Bollinger [2003]). The Court had to actively engage the various justice constructs that have now evolved: affirmative action, a point system, a percentage system, a quota system, a holistic/totality criteria.The Court eventually stated that “diversity” in law school is a “compelling state interest” and hence, in this case, the admission standards applied at the University of Michigan must undergo strict scrutiny. In its decision, it stipulated a holistic plan that must apply in the screening of applicants—applicants will not only be judged based on standardized, quantitative measures, but also on qualitative measures such as personal statements, letters of recommendations, stories written about overcoming individual crises. 16. Feminist postmodernists such as Elizabeth Grosz (1994, chap. 3), although raising critical concerns with making use of Deleuze’s work, indicate that it is a risk worth taking. Grosz (1994, 163–164) cites several feminist critiques of Deleuze, including that it is a form of male appropriation of women’s struggles and hence may depoliticize it; that it neutralizes “women’s specificity,” that is, that women’s issues become diluted; that it overly romanticizes the wisdom gained by being a schizophrenic and downplays the suffering with which he or she must deal; and that it is overly preoccupied with technological metaphors, metaphors that are based on a technological order often exclusive of women’s active input.Acknowledging that similar critiques can be raised with many male authors, she tells us that important insights can still be established on the nature of women’s oppression, especially where Deleuze talks about “becoming-woman.” See also Tamsin Lorraine’s (1999) integration of the works of Irigary with Deleuze. 17. Several other notable postmodern feminist theories have been developed that relate to justice, be it less direct, such as those by Judith Butler (1990, 1993), Elizabeth Grosz (1994), and Tamsin Lorraine (1999). Each has been influenced by Lacan and

216

Notes to Pages 135–156

Deleuze, by way of critical dialogue with their works. They draw extensively from the first wave of French postmodernist feminists (see Arrigo et al. 2005). 18. Cornell (1998) distinguishes sex from gender and then provides an alternative, a “sexuate being.” Gender is found in traditional sociological explanations of the roles men and women internalize. Sex traditionally is defined as biological differences. Cornell’s notion of sexuate being, however, acknowledges orientations and the frameworks that are connected to them.Thus all are sexuate beings. All orient their sex in particular frameworks (e.g., sexual preference). Judith Butler (1990, 1993) has questioned the very construction of gender roles, indicating that these constructions are arbitrary and that political force often defines the boundaries. There is no such objective (“essentialist”) thing as gender, race, and class. They are social constructions. 19. The autonomia movement can be situated in struggles in Italy during the 1960s and 1970s. Negri was imprisoned for his advocacy. Guattari and Foucault were active sympathizers.Autonomia adherents embraced diverse voices of struggle and did not focus on just the struggles of the workplace.

Chapte r 10

Legal Struggle s and Social Justice

1. In 1857 the U.S. Supreme Court, in Dred Scott v. Sandford, ruled that Dred Scott, a black slave who had moved to a “free soil” state within the United States, was not entitled to citizenship and thus not entitled to any rights under the Constitution. Similarly, the so-called “Jim Crow” laws left a legacy of discrimination from the 1880s until 1964 with passage of the Civil Rights Act. State-enforced prohibitions existed against African Americans forbidding intermarriages and integration at public institutions and facilities (e.g., restaurants, theaters, bathhouses, hotels, cinemas, etc.). 2. In Plessy v. Ferguson (1896), a black man challenged a railroad’s policy of restricting black men from traveling in cars reserved for whites.The railroad company argued that both black and white were offered equal services in their separation.The U.S. Supreme Court agreed with the railroad company. 3. Related to the dialectics of struggle is the concept of hegemony. It stands for the unintentional reinforcement of dominant ideologies and practices. It is a process by which exploited are sometimes instrumental in digging their own graves. 4. Space limitations do not allow us a full summary of the struggle for justice within higher academia, but we should note that the Division on Critical Criminology was formed at a gathering of critical/radical criminologists at the Annual Meeting of the American Society of Criminology (ASC) in Chicago in 1988.They also developed a newsletter, the Critical Criminologist. Susan Carringela-MacDonald and Bob Bohm coordinated the historical meeting. Critical criminology was subsequently better received in universities and journals dealing with criminological issues. Similarly developed was the Division of People of Color and Crime within the ASC. The struggle for social justice, in short, is being waged within higher educational institutions themselves. 5. It involved “uninvited and offensive touching,” lewd remarks, and offensive terms directed toward women. 6. Lacan’s fourth discourse, the discourse of the analyst, encouraged the development of new master signifiers that better embodied the unique desires of people in struggle. 7. Drucilla Cornell (1998, xi, 7) has defined “sexuate being” as the right of people to express their own sexuality; it is their specific framework of orientation as apposed to gender to indicate either man or woman. 8. The expression has often been used as an invective against gays and lesbians, or for homophobics.

Notes to Pages 156–177

217

9. Cornell (1998, 122) disagrees with Luce Irigaray’s essentialist notion of sexed identity. 10. The higher court stated, in a rare reversal of itself, that “the doctrine of stare decisis is . . . not . . . an inexorable command” (cited in Cornell 1998, 16). 11. The concept of liberty is incorporated in the due process clauses of the Fifth and Fourteenth Amendments to the U.S. Constitution: “nor shall a person be deprived of life, liberty or property without due process of law.” 12. We do see some similarities between this position and Deleuze’s concept of “the people yet to come,” as well as the concept of the “multitude.” 13. Note the strong call for the development of class analysis in critical race theory by Delgado (2001, 2003), Delgado and Stefancic (2001), and Hutchinson (2004).

Chapte r 11

Justice and Grassroots Struggle s

1. See especially Delgado and Stefancic (1994, chap. 9). They show how certain language is used by the courts in developing a culture of thinking that undermines reform movements such as scorn, ridicule, humor, and imposition of strategic language in unfolding narratives. 2. According to Schehr (1999, 255) in social movements “there is consensual agreement of purpose among group members; group members perceive their efforts as signifying alternatives to prevailing conditions, and group members struggle to rearticulate and reappropriate dominant cultural interpretations of political, economic, and cultural phenomena.” 3. Recall Derrida’s distinction between law and justice. Although the two terms are often used to mean the same thing, they are distinct. Law can never completely capture the notion of justice. 4. For the continued struggle for the independence of Puerto Rico and for other political prisoners, see http://prolibertadweb.com and http://prisonactivist.org. 5. More recently, internal fractioning has taken place. The AFL-CIO’s constitutional convention in 2005 was threatened with internal divisions whereby dissident unions were threatening to break away from the parent organization (see Chicago Tribune, July 25, 2005). It is unclear how this will play itself out over the years, but optimists argue that it could produce a new dynamism within the parent organization, new visions, and more democratic processes. 6. Social movement theory acknowledges three main paradigms on social change, with a recently emerging fourth. The traditional paradigms are collective behavior, resources mobilization, and the new social movement theory ( Jamison and Eyerman 1991). 7. Nonlinearity: Conventional theorizing uses linear dynamics, in which things are said to be predictable and follow a straight line. For the difference between conventional, modernist thought and postmodern thought, see Milovanovic (1995). Disproportional effects: Small changes may produce disproportional effects; a butterfly flapping its wings in Southeast Asia can produce a hurricane in Florida. Four attractors are identified: the first two, point and periodic attractors, fall within the predictable framework of modernist thought, the latter two, torus and strange attractors, allow for both order and disorder to flourish, side by side. Indeterminacy exists but with degrees of predictability. Dissipative structures: In dynamics systems marked by instability and change, structures spontaneously emerge, break up, and reemerge. 8. Some critical criminologists have argued that, ironically, innocence projects, by upholding the rule of law (process, procedures, rights, formal equality, etc.), in fact provide further legitimacy to an institution that is often criticized as being an instrument of ruling elites. In addition, what does “exoneration” mean? The issue,

218

Notes to Pages 177–196

in some cases, of legal and factual guilt remains open to debate (false positive, false negative). 9. This is an ongoing task, but some insights from thinkers such as Nietzsche, Lyotard, Derrida, and Deleuze could be the basis of generating this ethic. And, as Patton (2000) tells us, emergents can be good or bad; we must always be vigilant about the fruits of our social struggles (nonlinearities). In Milovanovic (forthcoming), a Deleuzian notion of social justice and its underlying ethic is being developed.

Chapte r 12

Eme rg ing Conce ptions of Justice in a Global Are na

1. For a theoretical analysis of changing discourses of apartheid, informed by Laclau and Mouffe’s Hegemony and Socialist Strategy (1985), see Norval (1996). She is particularly concerned with how “dislocations” in otherwise hegemonic discourses allow new subjectivities to emerge. 2. Norval’s (1996) deconstructive strategy in understanding apartheid discourse, for example, pointed to crises and “dislocations” brought about by competing discourses, with apartheid discourse eventually becoming the dominant one. However, even dominant discourses provide spaces within which oppositional discourses might take form. 3. See the Promotion of National Unity and Reconciliation Act, No. 34 of 1995, at http://www.doj.gov.za/trc/legal/act9534.htm. 4. As Tutu (2000, 58) has said, “the solution arrived at was not perfect but it was the best that could be had in the circumstances—the truth in exchange for the freedom of the perpetrators.” 5. Elster (2004) explores regime changes after 1945 in Western Europe and after 1989 in Eastern Europe. He also looks to earlier historical times. 6. Liberation theology as practiced in the 1970s and 1980s in Central America did have some profound effects in revolutionary struggles (see Milovanovic 1985). 7. This author (DM) in the early 1970s had heated discussions with Iranian dissidents in New York City over the possible catastrophic effects of making an ally of Khomeini for the revolution against the Shah. Subsequent to the successful revolution, many of the Mojahedin fighters were rounded up and shot by the new rulers of the Islamic state. 8. Some have argued that the World War II saturation bombings of German cities that killed tens of thousands of civilians at a time, as well as atomic bombs on Nagasaki and Hiroshima that killed over 100,000 civilians, were forms of terrorism. 9. This includes such things as free-market dynamics, individual ownership of the means of production, the “invisible hand” of competitive capitalism, multinational corporations, a social Darwinistic ethics, etc. Many of the conditions for loans by the International Monetary Fund and the World Bank privilege these ideologies. 10. Recently a new television network,Telesur (Spanish for TeleSouth), has been established in Venezuela ostensibly to have a Latin focus as a counter to CNN’s broadcasting of the news (see the editorial “Hugo and Fidel Bring the News,” Chicago Tribune, July 24, 2005). 11. There can be little doubt of the gains by the common workers in Venezuela. Billions of dollars have been spent on new social initiatives. The results are the following: “1.3 million people have learned to read, millions have received medical care. . . . Elementary school enrollment has increased more than a million, as schools have started offering free food to students. The government has created several banks aimed at small businesses and cooperatives, redeployed part of the military to do public works and is building several new subway system around the country . . . and has created a land-reform program that rewards private farmers who increase

Notes to Pages 196–197

219

productivity and punishes those who do not with the threat of confiscation” (see Parenti 2005). 12. Sixty percent of Venezuela’s oil is exported to the United States; 15 percent of the total U.S. oil imports are from Venezuela. 13. The leadership “hold their positions as long as they faithfully and effectively carry out the community’s mandates” (Martinez and Garcia 2004, 215); there is no “center,” as positions are rotated (Hardt and Negri 2004, 85).The Zapatista’s logic is that “for everyone, everything; for ourselves, nothing” (Martinez and Garcia 2004, 215). Perhaps Subcomandant Marcos represents one of the leading voices of the Zapatista movement (see Marcos 2002). 14. Hardt and Negri’s (2004, 103–115) term “multitude” must be distinguished from the old term “class.” It “is an irreducible multiplicity” reflecting singularities as well as potentials to become, under certain conditions, commonalities (see also Laclau and Mouffe 1985). The question is not “what is the multitude?” but, more accurately, “what can the multitude become?” (105). Said in another way, it stands for shifting identities, coalitions, agendas, and strategies that become momentary unitaries under certain historical conditions. Henry and Milovanovic (1996), borrowing from chaos theory, have referred to these as COREL sets: historically contingent, relatively autonomous constellations of coupled iterative loops.The concept of multitude reflects the emerging postmodern identities in society. If the older Marxian model had the proletariat battling the bourgeoisie, Hardt and Negri’s model has the multitude battling empire (but see the critiques by Bauman 2004; Lippens 2005a, 2005b; Zizek 2001).

Re fe re nce s

Abelove, Henry, Michele Ama Barale, and David M. Halperin, eds. 1993. The Lesbian and Gay Studies Reader. New York: Routledge. Abu El-Haj, Thea R. 2002. “Contesting the Politics of Culture, Rewriting the Boundaries of Inclusion: Working for Social Justice with Muslim and Arab Communities.” Anthropology and Education Quarterly 33 (3): 308–316. Acorn,Annalise. 2004. Compulsory Compassion: A Critique of Restorative Justice.Vancouver: UBC Press. Adams, Carol, and Josephine Donovan, eds. 1995. Animals and Women. Raleigh, NC: Duke University Press. Adeola, F. O. 2000. “Cross-National Environmental Justice and Human Rights Issues— A Review of Evidence in the Developing World.” American Behavioral Scientist 43 (4): 686–706. Agozino, Biko. 2003. Counter-Colonial Criminology: A Critique of Imperialist Reason. Sterling,VA: Pluto Press. Agyeman, Julian, and Bob Evans. 2004.“ ‘Just Sustainability’:The Emerging Discourse of Environmental Justice in Britain?” Geographical Journal 170 (2): 155–164. Agyeman, Julian, Robert Bullard, and Bob Evans. 2003. Just Sustainabilities: Development in an Unequal World. Cambridge, MA.: MIT Press. Ahmad, Eqbal. 2000. Confronting Empire. Cambridge, MA: South End Press. Aiyer, Ananthakrishnan. 2001. “Hemispheric Solutions? Neoliberal Crisis, Criminality, and ‘Democracy’ in the Americas.” Urban Anthropology 30 (2–3): 239–268. Andrews, Kenneth. 2002. “Creating Social Change: Lessons from the Civil Rights Movement.” In Social Movements: Identity, Culture and the State, ed. David Meyer, Nancy Whittier, and Belinda Robnett, 105–117. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Annas, Catherine. 1999.“Irreversible Error:The Power and Prejudice of Female Genital Mutilation.” In Health and Human Rights, ed. Jonathan Mann, Sofia Gruskin, Michael Grodin, and George Annas. New York: Rutledge. Aquinas, St. Thomas. Summa Theologica. http://www.ccel.org/a/aquinas/summa/home. html. Aristotle. 2000. Nicomachean Ethics. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Aronowitz, Stanley. 2003. “Global Capital and Its Opponents. In Implicating Empire: Globalization and Resistance in the 21st Century World-Order, ed. Stanley Aronowtiz and Heather Gautney, 179–195. New York: Basic Books. Aronowtiz, Stanley, and Heather Gautney, eds. 2003. Implicating Empire: Globalization and Resistance in the 21st Century World-Order. New York: Basic Books. Arrigo, Bruce. 1997. “Dimensions of Social Justice in an SRO (Single Room Occupancy): Contributions for Chaos Theory, Policy, and Practice.” In Chaos,

221

222

References

Criminology, and Social Justice: The New Orderly (Dis)Order, ed. Dragan Milovanovic, 179–194.Westport, CT: Praeger. ———. 1999. “Constitutive Theory and the Homeless Identity: The Discourse of a Community Deviant.” In Constitutive Criminology at Work, ed. Stuart Henry and Dragan Milovanovic, 67–85. Albany: State University of New York Press. Arrigo, Bruce, Dragan Milovanovic, and Robert Schehr. 2005. The French Connection in Criminology. New York: State University of New York Press. Arrigo, Bruce, and Robert Schehr. 1998. “Restoring Justice for Juveniles.” Justice Quarterly 15:629–666. Asad,Talal. 1997. Anthropology and the Colonial Encounter. New York: Prometheus Books. Asch, Michael. 1999.“From Cadler to Van der Peet.” In Indigenous Peoples’ Rights, ed. Paul Havermann, 428–446. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Astor, Hilary. 1994. “Swimming against the Tide: Keeping Violent Men out of Mediation.” In Women, Male Violence and the Law, ed. Julie Stubbs. Annandale, New South Wales: Federation Press. Augustine, Saint. 1964. On Free Choice of the Will. Trans. Anna Benjamin and L. H. Hackstaff. Indianapolis: Bobbs-Merrill. Balbus, Issac. 1977. The Dialectics of Legal Repression. New York: Russell Sage. Baldus, David, George Woodworth, and Charles Pulaski. 1994. “Reflections on the ‘Inevitability’ of Racial Discrimination in Capital Sentencing and the ‘Impossibility’ of its Prevention, Detection, and Correction.” Washington and Lee Law Review 51:359. Balkin, J. M. 1987. “Deconstructive Practice and Legal Theory.” Yale Law Journal 96 (4): 743–886. ———. 1998. “Deconstructive Practice and Legal Theory.” Accessed at http://www. yale.edu/lawweb/jbalkin/articles/decprac1.htm. Barger, W. K., and Ernesto M. Reza. 1994. The Farm Labor Movement in the Midwest: Social Change and Adaptation among Migrant Farmworkers. Austin: University of Texas Press. Barker, Colin. 1987. “Poland 1980–91: The Self Limiting Revolution.” In Revolutionary Rehearsals, ed. Colin Barker, 169–216. Bookmarks: Chicago. Barlow, Jeffrey. 2002.“Globalism and Changes to the Internet.”Accessed at http://mce1. pacificu.edu/jahc/jahcv1/editorial/jahcedit.html. Barry, Brian M. 1989.Theories of Justice. Berkeley: University of California Press. Bartlett, K. 1991. “Feminist Legal Methods.” In Feminist Legal Theory, ed. K. Bartlett and R. Kennedy, 370–403. Oxford:Westview Press. ———. 2000.“Cracking Foundations as Feminist Method.” American University Journal of Gender, Society and Policy and Law 8:31–48. Bassiouni, M. Cher, ed. 2002. Post-Conflict Justice.Ardsley, NY:Transnational Publications. Bator, Paul. 1963. “Finality in Criminal Law and Federal Habeas Corpus for State Prisoners.” Harvard Law Review 76:441–442. Bauman, Z. 2004. Europe: An Unfinished Adventure. London: Polity Press. Beck, Ulrich. 1992. Risk Society:Towards a New Modernity. London: Sage Publications. ———. 1999. World Risk-Society. Cambridge, England: Polity Press. ———. 2000. What Is Globalism? Cambridge, England: Polity Press. Becker, Howard. 1963. Outsiders. New York: Free Press Been, Vicki. 1995. “Analyzing Evidence of Environmental Justice.” Journal of Land Use and Environmental Law 11:1–13. ———. 1997. “Coming to the Nuisance or Going to the Barrios? A Longitudinal Analysis of Environmental Justice Claims.” Ecology Law Quarterly 24:1–24.

References

223

Bell, Derrick. 1980. “Brown v. Board of Education and the Interest-Convergence Dilemma.” Harvard Law Review 93:518–548. Benatar, Solomon R. 2001.“South Africa’s Transition in a Globalizing World: HIV/AIDS as a Window and a Mirror.” International Affairs 77 (2): 347–375. Benjam, Medea. 2004. “Why Hugo Chavez Won a Landside Victory.” Accessed at http://www.commondreams.org/cgi-bin/print.cgi?file⫽/views 04/0817–01.htm. Bennett, Scott H. 2003. “ ‘Free American Political Prisoners’: Pacifist Activism and Civil Liberties, 1945–48.” Peace Research 40 (4): 413–433. Berlin, I. 1969.“Two Concepts of Liberty.” In Four Essays on Liberty, by I. Berlin. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Berman, Harold. 1983. Law and Revolution. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Bernstein, Mary. 2002. “The Contradictions of Gay Ethnicity: Forging Identities.” In Social Movements: Identity, Culture and the State, ed. David Meyer, Nancy Whittier, and Belinda Robnett, 85–104. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Bhabha, Homi I. 1990. Nation and Narration. London: Routledge. ———. 1994. The Location of Culture. New York: Routledge. Biezenski, Robert. 1996.“The Struggle for Solidarity 1980–81:Two Waves of Leadership in Conflict.” Europe-Asia Studies 48 (2): 261–284. Black, Donald. 1976. The Behavior of Law. New York: Academic Press. Blake, Michael. 2000. “Rights for People, Not for Cultures.” Civilization (August–September): 50–53. Boekmann, H. J., H. J. Smith, and Y. J. Huo. 1997. Social Justice in a Diverse Society. Boulder, CO:Westview Press. Bracher, March. 1993. Lacan, Discourse, and Social Change. Ithaca, New York: Oxford University Press. Braithwaite, John. 1989. Crime, Shame and Reintegration. Cambridge, UK: Cambridge University Press. ———. 2002. Restorative Justice and Responsive Regulation. Boston: Oxford University Press. Braithwaite, John, and Philip Pettit. 1990. Not Just Deserts. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Branch,Taylor. 1988. Parting the Waters:American in the King Years, 1954 –1963. New York: Simon and Schuster. Breitman, George. 2002. The Last Year of Malcolm X: The Evolution of a Revolutionary. Pathfinder Press: New York. Brosius, J. Peter. 1999. “On the Practice of Transnational Cultural Critique.” Identities 6 (2–3): 179–200. Buckingham, Susan. 2004. “Ecofeminism in the Twenty-First Century.” Geographical Journal 170 (2): 146–154. Bullard, Robert, ed. 1997. Unequal Protection: Environmental Justice and Communities of Color. Berkeley, CA: Sierra Club Books for Children. Burbach, Roger. 2001. Globalization and Postmodern Politics: From Zapatistas to High-Tech Robber Barons. London, UK: Pluto Press. Burnside, Jonathan, and Nicola Baker, eds. 1994. Relational Justice. Winchester, UK: Waterside Press. Burton, J.W. 1979. Deviance,Terrorism and War. New York: St. Martin’s Press. ———. 1987. Resolving Deep-Rooted Conflict. Lanham, MD: University Press of America. ———. 1989. Conflict and Prevention. London: Macmillan.

224

References

———. 1990. “The Need for Human Needs Theory.” In Human Needs and Conflict Resolution, ed. J.W. Burton. London: Macmillan. Butler, Judith. 1990. Bodies That Matter. New York: Routledge. ———. 1993. Gender Trouble: Feminism and the Subversion of Identity. New York: Routledge. ———. 1997. “Against Proper Objects.” In Feminism Meets Queer Theory, ed. Elizabeth Weed and Naomi Schor. Bloomington: Indiana University Press. ———. 2004. Undoing Gender. Boca Raton, FL: Routledge. Cahill, Lisa Sowle. 2003.“Biotech and Justice: Catching up with the Real World Order.” Hastings Center Report 33 (4): 34–44. Cain, Moureen, and Alan Hunt. 1979. Marx and Engels on Law. New York:Academic Press. Callahan, Manuel. 2004. “Zapatismo beyond Chiapas.” In Globalize Liberation: How to Uproot the System and Build a Better World, ed. David Solnit, 217–228. San Francisco: City Lights Books. Cameron,Angela. 2005.“Restorative Justice and Intimate Violence:A Critical Review of the Literature.”Vancouver: British Columbia Institute against Family Violence. ———. Forthcoming. “Stopping the Violence: Canadian Feminist Debates on Restorative Justice and Intimate Violence.” Theoretical Criminology. ———. 2004. “A Sphere of Discipline:The Gendered Subject and Judicially Convened Sentencing Circles.” MS. Caputo, John. 1997. “Justice, If Such a Thing Exists.” In Deconstruction in a Nutshell, ed. N Jacques Derrida, 125–155. New York: Fordham University Press. Carneiro, Robert, ed. 1967. The Evolution of Society: Selections from Herbert Spencer’s Principles of Sociology. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Carver,T. N. 1915. Essays in Social Justice. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Castells, Manuel. 2000. The Rise of the Network Society.Vol. 1. Oxford: Blackwell. ———. 2001. The Internet Galaxy. New York: Oxford University Press. ———. 2004. The Power of Identity. Oxford, UK: Blackwell Publishing. Charlesworth, Hilary. 2000. “Martha Nussbaum’s Feminist Internationalism.” Ethics (October): 64–78. Chase, Steve. 2003.“Professional Ethics in the Age of Globalization: How Can Academics Contribute to Sustainability and Democracy Now?” Ethics, Place and Environment 6 (1): 52–56. Checker, Melissa. 2001. “ ‘Like Nixon Coming to China’: Finding Common Ground in a Multi-Ethnic Coalition for Environmental Justice.” Anthropological Quarterly 74 (3): 135–147. Clement, Grace. 1998. Care,Autonomy, and Justice: Feminism and the Ethic of Care. Boulder, CO:Westview Press. Coates, Jacky, and Michelle Dodds. 1998. “ ‘Isn’t Just Being Here Political Enough?’ Feminist Action-Oriented Research.” Feminist Studies 24 (2): 333–347. Cobb, Sara. 1997.“The Domestication of Violence in Mediation.” Law and Society Review 31:397–440. Coker, Donna. 1999.“Enhancing Autonomy for Battered Women: Lessons from Navaho Peacemaking.” UCLA Law Review 47:1–111. Cole, David. 1999. No Equal Justice: Race and Class in the American Criminal Justice System. New York: New Press. Cole, Luke W., and Sheila R. Foster. 2001. From the Ground Up: Environmental Racism and the Rise of the Environmental Justice Movement. New York: New York University Press.

References

225

Colebrook, Claire. 2002. Gilles Deleuze. London: Routledge. Collins, Larry, and Dominique Lapierre. 1988. O Jerusalem! New York: Simon and Schuster. Collins, Patricia Hill. 2000. Black Feminist Thought: Knowledge, Consciousness, and the Politics of Empowerment. 2d ed. New York: Routledge. Cornell, Drucilla. 1988. At the Heart of Freedom: Feminism, Sex, and Equality. Princeton, NY: Princeton University Press. ———. 1993. Transformations. New York: Routledge. ———. 1999. Beyond Accommodation. Boston Way, MD: Rowman and Littlefield. Corrêa Leite, José. 2005. The World Social Forum: Strategies of Resistance. Chicago: Haymarket Books. Cossman, Brenda. 2002.“Family Feuds.” In Privatization, Law, and the Challenge to Feminism, ed. Brenda Cossman and Judy Fudge.Toronto: University of Toronto Press. ———. 2004. “Sexuality, Queer Theory, and ‘Feminism After.’ ” McGill Law Journal 49:847–868. Crenshaw, Kimberle. 1993. “Beyond Racism and Misogyny.” In Mari Matsuda, Charle Lawrence, Richard Delgado, and Kimberle Crenshaw, Words That Wound. Oxford: Westview Press, 111–132. Daly, Kathleen. 2003a. “Mind the Gap: Restorative Justice in Theory and Practice.” In Restorative Justice and Criminal Justice, ed. Andrew von Hirsch, Julian Bottoms, and Anthony Bottoms, 219–236. Oxford: Hart Publishers. ———. 2003b. “Restorative Justice: The Real Story.” In A Restorative Justice Reader, ed. Gerry Johnstone, 361–372. Cullompton:Willan Publishers. Dawson, Jane I. 2000. “The Two Faces of Environmental Justice: Lessons from the EcoNationalist Phenomenon.” Environmental Politics 9 (2): 22–60. Delanda, Manuel. 2002. Intensive Science and Virtual Philosophy. New York: Continuum. Deleuze, Gilles. 1983. Nietzsche and Philosophy. New York: Columbia University Press. ———. 1986. Foucault.Trans. Sean Hand. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press. ———. 1988. Spinoza.Trans. Robert Hurley. San Francisco: City Lights. ———. 1990. The Logic of Sense. Trans. M. Lester with C. Stivale. New York: Columbia University Press. ———. 1993. Critique et Clinique. Paris: Minuit. ———. 1994. Difference and Repetition. Trans. P. Patton. New York: Columbia University Press. Deleuze, Gilles, and Felix Guattari. 1983. Anti-Oedipus: Capitalism and Schizophrenia. Minneapolis: Minnesota University Press. ———. 1987. A Thousand Plateaus. Minneapolis: Minnesota University Press. Delgado, Richard. 2001.“Two Ways to Think about Race: Reflections on the Id, the Ego, and Other Reformist Theories of Equal Protection.” Georgia Law Journal 89: 2279–2291. ———. 2003. “Crossroads and Blind Alleys: A Critical Examination of Recent Writing About Race.” Texas Law Review 82:121–166. Delgado, Richard, and Jean Stefancic. 1994. Failed Revolutions: Social Reform and the Limits of Legal Imagination. San Francisco:Westview Press. ———, eds. 1998. The Latino/a Condition: A Critical Reader. New York: New York University Press. ———. 2001. Critical Race Theory: An Introduction. New York: New York University Press. Derrida, Jacques. 1967. Of Grammatology. Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press.

226

References

———. 1986. “Declarations of Independence.” Trans. Tom Keenam and Tom Pepper. New Political Science 15:7–17. ———. 1989. “Force of Law:The Mystical Foundations of Authority.” In Deconstruction and the Possibility of Justice, ed. D. Cornell, M. Rosenfeld, and D. Carlson. New York: Routledge and Kegan Paul. ———. 1992. “Before the Law.” In Jacques Derrida: Acts of Literature, ed. Derek Attridge. New York: Routledge. ———. 1995. The Gift of Death.Trans. David Wills. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. ———. 1997. Deconstruction in a Nutshell. Ed. John Caputo. New York: Fordham University Press. Dietz, Adolf. 1993. “The Moral Right of the Author: Moral Rights and the Civil Law Countries.” Columbia—VLA Journal of Law and the Arts 19: 199. Dobbs, Farrell. 2002. Teamster Rebellion: The 1930s Strikes and Organizing Drive That Transformed the Labor Movement in the Midwest. Pathfinder Press: New York. Dobson, Andrew. 1998. Justice and the Environment: Conceptions of Sustainability and Dimensions of Social Justice. Oxford: Oxford University Press. ———. 2003. “Social Justice and Environmental Sustainability: Ne’er the Twain Shall Meet? In Just Sustainabilities: Development in an Unequal World, ed. Julian Agyeman, Robert Bullard, and Bob Evans, 83–95. Cambridge, MA.: MIT Press. Dolan, M., and M. Doyle. 2000. “Violence Risk Prediction.” British Journal of Psychiatry 177:303–311. Donohoe, Martin. 2003. “Causes and Health Consequences of Environmental Degradation and Social Injustice.” Social Science and Medicine 56:573–587. Dudziak, Mary. 1988. “Desegregation as a Cold War Imperative.” Stanford Law Review 41:61–89. Durkheim, Emile. 1958. Professional Ethics and Civic Morals. Glencoe, IL: Free Press. ———. 1964a. The Rules of Sociological Method. New York: Free Press. ———. 1964b. The Division of Labor in Society. New York: Free Press. ———. 1984. The Division of Labor in Society. New York: Free Press. Dworkin, Ronald. 1978. Taking Rights Seriously. London: Duckworth. Dyer-Witherford, Nick. 1999. Cyber-Marx: Cycles and Circuits of Struggle in HighTechnology Capitalism. Chicago: University of Illinois Press. Dyson, Michael Eric. 2000. I May Not Get There with You:The True Martin Luther King, Jr. New York: Free Press. Eglash,Albert. 1977.“Beyond Restitution: Creative Restitution.” In Restitution in Criminal Justice, ed. Joe Hudson and Burt Gataway. Lexington, MA: D. C. Heath. Eldeman, Lee. 1995. “Queer Theory: Unstating Desire.” GLQ: A Journal of Lesbian and Gay Studies 2 (4): 343–346. Elster, John. 2004. Closing the Books:Transitional Justice in Historical Perspective. Cambridge, MA: Cambridge University Press. Engels, Frederick. 1972. The Origin of the Family, Private Property and the State. New York: International Publishers. Ericson, Richard, and Kevin Haggerty. 1997. Policing the Risk Society.Toronto: University of Toronto Press. Erikson, Kai. 1966. Wayward Puritans. New York: John Wiley and Sons. European No Campaign.Accessed July 24, 2005, at http://www.europeannocampaign.com. Evans, Brian. 2004. “Principles of Kyoto and Emissions Trading Systems: A Primer for Energy Lawyers.” Alberta Law Review 42:1–30.

References

227

Evans, Gary W., and Lyscha A. Marcynyscyn. 2004. “Environmental Justice, Cumulative Environmental Risk, and Health Among Low- and Middle-Income Children in Upstate New York.” Research and Practice 94 (11): 1942–1944. Ewick, Patricia, and Susan Silbey. 1998. The Common Place of Law. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Fanon, Franz. 1967. The Wretched of the Earth. London: Penguin. ———. 1986. Black Skins, White Masks. London: Pluto Press. Farber, Daniel, and Suzanna Sherry. 1997. Beyond All Reason:The Radical Assault on Truth in American Law. Farley, Christine. 1997. “Protecting Folklore of Indigenous Peoples: Is Intellectual Property the Answer?” Connecticut Law Review 1: 31. Feeley, Malcolm M., and Jonathan Simon. 1994. “Actuarial Justice: The Emerging New Criminal Law.” In The Futures of Criminology, ed. David Nelken, 173–201. London: Sage. ———. 2004. “The New Penology.” In Theorizing Criminal Justice, ed. Peter Kraska, 302–322. Long Grove, IL:Waveland Press. Fernando, Jude L. 2003. “The Power of Unsustainable Development: What Is to Be Done?” Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Sciences 590: 6–34. Ferrara, Alessandro. 2003. “Two Notions of Humanity and the Judgment Argument for Human Rights.” Political Theory 31 (3): 392–420. Ferry, Martin. 2003. “The EU and Recent Regional Reform in Poland.” Europe-Asia Studies 55 (7): 1097–1116. Fineman, Martha. 1995. The Neutered Mother, the Sexual Family, and Other TwentiethCentury Tragedies. New York: Routledge. Fitzpatrick, Peter. 2001. Modernism and the Grounds of Law. Cambridge, UK: Cambridge University Press. Fleras, Augie. 1999. “Politicizing Indignity.” In Indigenous Peoples’ Rights, ed. Paul Havermann, 187–235. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Flew, Antony. 1979. “Definition of Punishment.” In Contemporary Punishment: Views, Explanations, and Justifications, ed. Rudolph Gerber and Patrick McAnany, 31–35. Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press. Foreman, Christopher H. 1998. The Promise and the Peril of Environmental Justice. Washington, DC: Brookings Institute Press. Foucault, Michel. 1977a. Discipline and Punish. New York: Pantheon Books. ———. 1977b. Language, Counter-Memory, Practice. Ed. Donald Bouchard. Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Frank, Dana. 2003. “Where are the Workers in Consumer-Worker Alliances? Class Dynamics and the History of Consumer-Labor Campaigns.” Politics and Society 31 (3): 363–379. Fraser, Nancy, and Alex Honneth. 2003. Redistribution or Recognition? London:Verso. Freire, Paulo. 1972. Pedagogy of the Oppressed. New York: Herder and Herder. ———. 1985. The Politics of Education. South Hadley, MA: Bergin and Garvey. Friedsky, Jean. 2005. “Bolivia’s Gas War Moves Inside.” ZNet. Accessed June 16, 2005, at http://www.zmag.org/content/showarticle.cfm. Fuchs, Josef. 1965. Natural Law. New York: Sheed and Ward. Fuller, Steve. 2004. “The Future of Scientific Justice: The Case of The Sceptical Environmentalist.” Futures 36:631–636. Garrow, David J. 2004. Bearing the Cross: Martin Luther King, Jr. and the Southern Leadership Conference. Harper Perennial: New York. Gaus, Gerald F. 2000. Political Concepts and Political Theories. Boulder:Westview Press.

228

References

Gbadegesin, Segun. 2001. “Multinational Corporations, Developed Nations, and Environmental Racism: Toxic Waste, Exploration, and Eco-Catastrophe.” In Faces of Environmental Racism: Confronting Issues of Global Justice, ed. Laura Westra and Bill E. Lawson, 187–202. New York: Rowman and Littlefield. Gerber, Rudolph, and Patrick McAnany, eds. 1979. Contemporary Punishment: Views, Explanations, and Justifications. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press. Gilligan, Carol. 1982. In a Different Voice. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Gledhill, John. 2001. “ ‘Disappearing the Poor?’: A Critique of the New Wisdoms of Social Democracy in an Age of Globalization.” Urban Anthropology 30 (2–3): 123–156. Goodchild, Philip. 1996. Deleuze and Guattari: An Introduction to the Politics of Desire. London: Sage Publications. Grad, Rachael. 2003. “Indigenous Rights and Intellectual Property Law: A Comparison of the United States and Australia. Duke Journal of Comparative and International Law 13: 203–227. Graeber, David. 2003. “The Globalization Movement and the New Left.” In Implicating Empire: Globalization and Resistance in the 21st Century World-Order, ed. Stanley Aronowtiz and Heather Gautney, 325–338. New York: Basic Books. Gramsci, Antonio. 1971. Selections form the Prison Notebooks. New York: International Publishers. Graves, Benjamin. 1998a.“Homi K. Bhabha:The Liminal Negotiation of Cultural Differences.” Accessed at http://postcolonialweb.org/poldiscourse/bhabha/bhabha2.html. ———. 1998b. “Homi K. Bhabha: An Overview.” Accessed at http://postcolonialweb. org/poldiscourse/bhabha/bhabha1.html. ———. 1998c. “ ‘Signs Taken for Wonders’—Hybridity and Resistance.” Accessed at http://postcolonialweb.org/poldiscourse/bhabha/bhabha4.html. Green, Ross. 1998. Justice in Aboriginal Communities: Sentencing Alternatives. Saskatchewan: Purish Publishers. Greenspan, Alan. 2001. “Globalization: Remarks.” Accessed at http://www.federalreserve.gov/boarddocs/speeches/2001/20011024/default.htm. Griffiths, John. 1970. “Ideology in Criminal Procedure Or a Third ‘Model’ of the Criminal Process.” Yale Law Journal 79 (3): 359–417. Grosz, Elizabeth. 1994. Volatile Bodies. Bloomington: Indiana University Press. Gudeman, Stephen. 1996. “Sketches, Qualms, and Other Thoughts on Intellectual Property Rights.” In Valuing Local Knowledge: Indigenous People and Intellectual Property Rights, ed. Stephen Bush and Doreen Stabinsky, 102–121. Washington, DC: Island Press. Guattari, Felix. 1984. Molecular Revolution: Psychiatry and Politics. Harmondsworth, England: Penguin. Guattari, Felix, and Toni Negri. 1990. Communists Like Us. New York: Autonomdeia. Haber, Honi Fern. 1994. Beyond Postmodern Politics: Lyotard, Rorty, Foucault. New York: Routledge. Habermas, Jurgen. 1975. Legitimation Crisis. Trans. Thomas McCarthy. Boston: Beacon Press. ———. 1976.“Some Distinctions in Universal Pragmatics.” Theory and Society 3:161. ———. 1979. Communication and the Evolution of Society. Trans. Thomas McCarthy. Boston: Beacon Press. Haggerty, Kevin, and Richard Ericson. 2006. The New Politics of Surveillance and Visibility. Toronto: University of Toronto Press. Haley, Alex. 1992. The Autobiography of Malcolm X as Told to Alex Haley. New York: Ballantine Books.

References

229

Hallas, Duncan. 2003. Trotsky’s Marxism. Chicago: Haymarket Books. Halley, Ian. 2004a.“Feminism and the Law.” Duke Journal of Gender Law and Policy 11:7–45. ———. 2004b.“Queer Theory by Men.” Duke Journal of Gender Law and Policy 11:7. Halley, Janet. 2002.“Sexuality Harassment.” In Left Legalism/Left Critique, ed. Janet Halley and Wendy Brown. Durham: Duke University Press. ———. 2004. “Take a Break from Feminism?” In Gender and Human Rights, ed. Karen Knop. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Halloway, John. 2002. Change the World without Taking Power. London: Pluto. Halperin, David. 1995. Saint Foucault. Towards a Gay Hagiography. New York: Oxford University Press. Halsey, Mark. 2004. “Against ‘Green’ Criminology.” British Journal of Criminology 44 (6): 833–853. Hardt, Michael. 1993. Gilles Deleuze: An Apprenticeship in Philosophy. Minneapolis: Minnesota University Press. Hardt, Michael, and Antonio Negri. 1994. Labor of Dionysus. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press. ———. 2000. Empire. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. ———. 2004. Multitude: War and Democracy in the Age of Empire. New York: Penguin Books. Harman, Chris. 2003. “How the Revolution Was Lost.” In Russia: From Workers’ State to State, ed. Anthony Arnove, 13–36. Chicago: Haymarket Books. Harris, Kay. 1989. “Alternative Visions in the Context of Contemporary Realities.” In New Perspectives on Crime and Justice: Occasional Papers of the MCC Canada Victim Offender Ministries Program and MCC U.S. Office of Criminal Justice, Issue 7. Elkhart, IN: Mennonite Central, Committee. ———. 2003. “Globalization and Democracy.” In Implicating Empire: Globalization and Resistance in the 21st Century World-Order, ed. Stanley Aronowtiz and Heather Gautney, 109–121. New York: Basic Books. ———. 2004. Multitude:War and Democracy in the Age of Empire. New York: Penguin Books. Hart, Nicole. 2004. “The Progress and Pitfalls of Lawrence v.Texas.” Buffalo Law Review 52:1417–49. Hart, S. D. 1998a. “Psychopathy and Risk for Violence.” In Psychopathy:Theory, Research and Implications for Society, ed. D. Cooke, A. E. Forth, and R. D. Hare, 355–375. Dordrecht,The Netherlands: Kluwer. ———. 1998b. “The Role of Psychopathy in Assessing Risk for Violence: Conceptual and Methodological Issues.” Legal and Criminological Psychology 3:121–137. Haughton, G. 1999.“Environmental Justice and the Sustainable City.” Journal of Planning, Education and Research 18 (3): 233–43. Havermann, Paul, ed. 1999a. “Indigenous Rights in the Political Jurisprudence of Australia, Canada, and New Zealand.” In Indigenous Peoples’ Rights, ed. Paul Havermann, 22–64. Oxford: Oxford University Press. ———. 1999b. “Comparing Indigenous Peoples’ Rights in Australia, Canada, and New Zealand.” In Indigenous Peoples’ Rights, ed. Paul Havermann, 1–12. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Hawkins, Gordon. 1979.“Punishment as a Moral Educator.” In Contemporary Punishment: Views, Explanations, and Justifications, ed. Rudolph Gerber and Patrick McAnany, 120–128. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press. Hawthoren, Michael. 2005.“Smelter in Pilsen over Lead.” Chicago Tribune, July 7. Hayner, Priscilla. 2002. Unspeakable Truths: Facing the Challenge of Truth Commissions. New York:Taylor and Francis.

230

References

Held, Virginia, ed. 1995. Justice and Care: Essential Readings in Feminist Ethics. Boulder, CO:Westview Press. Henry, Stuart, and Dragan Milovanovic. 1996. Constitutive Criminology: Beyond Postmodernism. Sage: London. Henry, Stuart, and Mark Lanier, eds. 2001a. What Is Crime? New York: Rowman and Littlefield Publishers. ———. 2001b. “The Prism of Crime.” In What Is Crime? ed. Stuart Henry and Mark Lanier, 227–243. New York: Rowman and Littlefield Publishers. ———. 2006. The Essential Criminology Reader. Boulder, CO:Westview Press. Hill, Sarah. 2001. “The Environmental Divide: Neoliberal Incommensurability at the U.S.-Mexico Border.” Urban Anthropology 30 (2): 157–187. Hirsch, Andrew Von. 1993. Censure and Sanctions. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Hirst, Paul, and Grahame Thompson. 1999. Globalization in Question. Cambridge, England: Polity. Hobbes,Thomas. 1958. Leviathan. Indianapolis: Bobbs-Merrill. Hobson, Kersty. 2004. “Environmental Justice: An Anthropocentric Social Justice Critique of How, Where and Why Environmental Good and Bad Are Distributed.” Environmental Politics 13 (2): 474–481. Holland, Eugene. 1999. Deleuze and Guattari’s Anti-Oedipus. London: Routledge. Holley, David. 2005. “After Uprising, Focus Put on Restoring Calm.” Chicago Tribune, March 26. Homer. 1961. The Iliad of Homer. Chicago: Phoenix Books and University of Chicago Press. Honneth, Axel. 1995. The Struggle for Recognition. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Hooks, Bell. 2000. Feminist Theory: From Margin to Center. 2nd ed. Boston: South End Press. Houston, Barbara. 1987. “Rescuing Womanly Virtues.” In Science, Morality and Feminist Theory. Marsha Hanen and Kai Nielsen, 237–262. Calgary: University of Calgary Press. Hudson, Barbara. 2002. “Restorative Justice and Gendered Violence: Diversion or Effective Justice?” British Journal of Criminology 42 (3): 616–634. Humes, David. 1983. An Enquiry Concerning the Principles of Morals. Indianapolis: Hackett. Hunt, Alan. 1978. The Sociological Movement in Law. Philadelphia: Temple University Press. Hutchinson, Darren Leonard. 2004.“Critical Race Theory: History, Evolution, and New Frontiers.” American University Law Review 53:1187–1215. Jagose, Annamarie. 1996. Queer Theory. Melbourne, Australia: University of Melbourne Press. ———. 1997. “Queer Theory.” Australian Humanities Review. Accessed at http://www.lib.latrobe.edu.au/AHR/archive/Issue-Dec-1996/jagose.html. James, Deborah A. 2000. “Comments on Wilson’s Reconciliation and Revenge in PostApartheid South Africa.” Current Anthropology 41 (1): 75–98. Jamison, Andrew, and Ronald Eyerman. 1991. Social Movements. University Park, PA: Penn State University Press. Jaszi, Peter. 1991. “Toward a Theory of Copyright: The Metamorphosis of ‘Authority.’ ” Duke Law Journal 455. Johnson, Robert, and Paul Leighton. 1995. “Black Genocide? Preliminary Thoughts on the Plight of America’s Poor Black Men.” Journal of African American Men 1 (2): 3–22.

References

231

Jordan, David. 2001. “Square Pegs and Round Holes: Domestic Intellectual Property Law and Native American Economic and Cultural Policy: Can It Fit?” American Indian Law Review 25: 93. Jordan, Glenn, and Chris Weedan. 1995. Cultural Politics: Class, Gender, Race, and the Postmodern World. Oxford, England: Blackwell. Kagan, Donald. 1965. The Great Dialogue: History of Greek Political Thought from Homer to Polybius. New York: Free Press. Kalas, Peggy. 2001. “International Environmental Dispute Resolution and the Need for Access by Non-State Entities.” Colorado Journal of International Environmental Law and Policy 12:1–40. Kamminga, Menno. 1996.“The Precautionary Approach in International Human Rights Law: How It Can Benefit the Environment.” In The Precautionary Principle and International Law, ed. David Freestone. Amsterdam: Springer Publishers. Kant, Immanuel. 1965. Critique of Pure Reason. Trans. Norman Kemp Smith. New York: St. Martin’s Press. ———. 1969. Foundations of the Metaphysics of Morals. Ed. Robert P. Wolf. Indianapolis: Bobbs-Merrill. ———. 1983. Perpetual Peace and Other Essays. Trans. Ted Humphries. Indianapolis: Hackett. Katz, Claudio. 2005. “A New Center-Left Bloc in Latin America?” International Socialist Review 41:58–64. Kennedy, Duncan. 1997. A Critique of Adjudication. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Kennedy, Randall. 1989. “Racial Critique of Legal Academia.” Harvard Law Review 102:1745–1798. Kheel, Marti. 1995.“License to Kill: An Ecofeminist Critique of Hunter’s Discourse.” In Animals and Women, ed. Carol Adams and Josephine Donovan, 85–125. Raleigh, NC: Duke University Press. Kinzer, Stephen. 2003. All the Shah’s Men: An American Coup and the Roots of Middle East Terror. Hoboken, NJ: John Wiley and Sons. Klatch, Rebecca. 2002. “The Development of Individual and Consciousness among Movements of the Left and Right.” In Social Movements: Identity, Culture and the State, ed. David Meyer, Nancy Whittier, and Belinda Robnett, 185–201. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Kohlberg, Lawrence. 1969.“Stage and Sequence:The Cognitive Development Approach to Socialization.” In Handbook of Socialization Theory and Research, ed. D. A. Goslin. Chicago: Rand McNally. Korzeniewicz, Roberto Patricio, and William C. Smith. 2000. “Poverty, Inequality, and Growth in Latin America: Searching for the High Road to Globalization.” Latin American Research Review 35 (3): 7–55. Kozol, Jonathan. 2005. The Shame of the Nation: The Restoration of Apartheid Schooling in America. New York: Crown Publishing. Kramer, Zachary. 2004.“Same-Sexed Marriage.” Seattle Journal of Social Justice 2: 505–524. Kraska, Peter. 2004. Theorizing Criminal Justice. Long Grove, IL:Waveland Press. Kropotkin, Peter. 1902. Mutual Aid: A Factor of Evolution. New York: McClure Phillips. ———. 1924. Ethics: Origins and Development. London: Piroshnikoff. ———. 1926. The Conquest of Bread. New York: Benjamin Blom. Kymlicka,Will. 1995. Multicultural Citizenship. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Lacan, Jacques. 1977. Ecrits. New York: Norton.

232

References

Laclau, Ernesto, and Chantal Mouffe. 1985. Hegemony and Socialist Strategy. New York:Verso. Lake, Robert W. 2002. “Bring Back Big Government.” International Journal of Urban and Regional Research 26 (4): 815–822. Landry, Donna, and Gerald MacLean, eds. 1996. The Spivak Reader: Selected Works of Gyatri Chakravorty Spivak. New York: Routledge. Lanier, Mark, and Stuart Henry. 2006. Essential Criminology. 3rd ed. Boulder, CO:Westview Press. Lauretis,Teresa De. 1991.“Perverse Desire:The Lure of the Mannish Lesbian.” Australian Feminist Studies 13: 15–26. ———. 1994a. The Practice of Love: Lesbian Sexuality and Perverse Desire. Indianapolis: Indiana University Press. ———. 1994b. “Habit Changes.” Differences: A Journal of Feminist Cultural Studies 6:296–313. ———. 1994c. “Fellini’s 9 1/2.” In Gender: Literary and Cinematic Representation, ed. Jeanne Ruppert, 51–65. Miami: University Press of Florida. Law Commission of Canada. 1999. “From Restorative Justice to Transformative Justice: Discussion Paper.” Accessed at http://lcc.gc.ca/en/themes/sr/rj/2000/paper.asp. Lawrence, Charles R. 1987. “The Id, the Edo, and Equal Protection: Reckoning with Unconscious Racism.” Stanford Law Review 39:317–337. Lederer, Katrina, ed. 1980. Human Needs. Cambridge, MA.: Oelgeschlager, Gunn and Hain. Ledwon, Lenora. 1996. “Native American Life Stories and ‘Authorship’: Legal and Ethical Issues.” St.Thomas Law Review 9:69 Lee, John. 2000. “The Underlying Legal Theory to Support a Well-Defined Human Rights to a Healthy Environment as a Principle of Customary International Law.” Columbia Journal of Environmental Law 25:1–38. Lemert, Edwin. 1951. Social Pathology. New York: McGraw Hill. Lenin,Vladimir Ilich. 1975. Imperialism, the Highest Stage of Capitalism. Moscow: Progress Publishers. ———. 1989. “Left-Wing” Communism, an Infantile Disorder. New York: International Publishers. Levinas, Emmanuel. 1969. Totality and Infinity. Pittsburgh: Duquesne Press. ———. 1987. Time and the Other. Pittsburgh: Duquesne Press. Lewis, Reina, and Sara Mills, eds. 2003. Feminist Postcolonial Theory: A Reader. New York: Routledge. Lichterman, Paul. 1995.“Piecing Together Multicultural Community: Cultural Differences in Community Building among Grass-Roots Environmentalists.” Social Problems 42 (4): 513–533. Lipietz, A. 1996.“Geography, Ecology, Democracy.” Antipode 28 (3): 219–228. Lippens, Ronnie. 2000. Chaohybrids: Five Uneasy Pieces. New York: University Press of America. ———. 2002. “Negotiating Humanity: Subcommanding the Tender Fury of Justice.” Alternatives 27: 513–531. ———. 2003. “The Imaginary of Zapatista Punishment: Speculations on the First Postmodern Revolution.” Punishment and Society 5 (2): 179–195. ———. 2005a. “Tracing the Legal Boundary between Empire and Multitude:Wavering with Hardt and Negri.” Leiden Journal of International Law 3: 389–402. ———. 2005b.“Deep Structures of Empire:A Note on Imperial Machines and Bodies.” Social Justice 32 (1): 126–133.

References

233

Lipton, Douglas, Robert Martinson, and Judith Wilks. 1975. The Effectiveness of Correctional Treatment. New York: Praeger Publishers. Litowitz, Douglas. 1997. Postmodern Philosophy and Law. Lawrence: University Press of Kansas. Locke, John. 1924. An Essay Concerning the True Original, Extent and End of Civil Government. In Two Treatises of Government. London: Dent and Sons. Logan,Wayne. 2000.“A Study in ‘Actuarial Justice’: Sex Offender Classification Practice and Procedure.” Buffalo Law Review 3:592–637. Lomborg, Bjørn. 2001. The Skeptical Environmentalist: Measuring the Real State of the World. New York: Cambridge University Press. Lorraine,Tamsin. 1999. Irigaray and Deleuze. Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Low, Nicholas, and Brendan Gleeson. 1998. Justice, Society and Nature: An Exploration of Political Ecology. New York: Routledge. Lyotard, Jean-Francois. 1984. The Postmodern Condition. Minneapolis: Minnesota University Press. ———. 1988. The Differend. Minneapolis: Minnesota University Press. ———. 1999. Just Gaming. Minneapolis: Minnesota University Press. Lycos, Kimon. 1987. Plato on Justice and Power: Reading Book I of Plato’s Republic. Albany, NY: State University of New York Press. MacDonald, Kelly. 2001.“Literature Review: Implications of Restorative Justice in Cases of Violence against Aboriginal Women and Children.”Vancouver:Aboriginal Women’s Action Network. MacKinnon, Catharine. 1987. Feminism Unmodified. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. ———. 1989. Toward a Feminist Theory of the State. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. MacLean, Brian, and Dragan Milovanovic. 1997. Thinking Critically about Crime.Vancouver, BC: Collective Press. Mamdani, Mahmood. 2005. Good Muslim, Bad Muslim:America, the Cold War, and the Roots of Terror. New York: Doubleday. Marable, Manning. 2003. Race, Reform, and Rebellion: The Second Reconstruction in Black America, 1945–1990. Jackson: University Press of Mississippi. Marcos, Subcomandant. 2002. Our Word Is Our Weapon: Selected Writings. Ed. Juana Ponce de Leon. New York: Seven Stories Press. Marcuse, Peter. 2002. “Urban from and Globalization after September 11th: The View from New York.” International Journal of Urban and Regional Research 26 (3): 596–606. Marshall, John. 1823. Majority Opinion in Johnson v. McIntosh, 21 U.S. 543. Martin, Edward J. 2003. “Liberation Theology, Sustainable Development, and Postmodern Public Administration.” Latin American Perspectives 30 (4): 69–91. Martinez, Cobo, Jose R. 1987. “Study of the Problem of Discrimination against Indigenous Populations.”Vol. 5. U.N. doc E/CN.4Sub.2/1986/7/Add.4. Martinez, Elizabeth, and Arnoldo Garcia. 2004.“What Is Zapatismo? A Brief Definition for Activists.” In Globalize Liberation: How to Uproot the System and Build a Better World, ed. David Solnit, 213–216. San Francisco: City Lights Books. Martinson, Robert. 1974.“What Works?” Public Interest 35:25–44. Marx, Gary. 2005.“Chavez Touts ‘21st Century Socialism.” Chicago Tribune, July 15, 2005. Marx, Karl. 1967. Capital. New York: International Publishing House.

234

References

———. 1977. “Critique of the Gotha Programme.” In Karl Marx: Selected Writings, ed. D. McLellan. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Marx, Karl, and Frederick Engels. 1973. Selected Work, Volume One. Moscow: Progress Publishers. ———. 1973. Selected Work,Volume Three. Moscow: Progress Publishers. Maskovisky, Jeff. 2001. “The Other War at Home: The Geopolitics of U.S. Poverty.” Urban Anthropology 30 (2–3): 215–238. Maslow, Abraham. 1954. Motivation and Personality. New York: Harper. Massumi, Brian. 1992. A User’s Guide to Capitalism and Schizophrenia. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Matsuda, Mari. 1996. Where Is Your Body? Boston: Beacon Press. Matza, David. 1964. Delinquency and Drift. New York: John Wiley and Sons. McAdam, Doug. 1982. Political Process and the Development of Black Insurgency. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. McLaren, Duncan. 2003.“Environmental Space, Equity and the Ecological Debt.” In Just Sustainabilities: Development in an Unequal World, ed. Julian Agyeman, Robert Bullard, and Bob Evans, 19–37. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. McLaughlin, E. ed. 2002. Restorative Justice: Critical Issues. Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage Publications. Meier, Matt S., and Feliciano Ribera. 1998. Mexican Americans/American Mexicans: From Conquistadors to Chicanos. New York Hill and Wang. Melendez, Miguel “Mickey.” 2003. We Took the Streets: Fighting for Latino Rights with the Young Lords. New York: St. Martin’s Press. Middleton, N., and P. O’Keefe. 2001. Redefining Sustainable Development. London: Pluto Press. Mies, Maria, and Vandana Shiva. 1993. Ecofeminism. New Jersey: Zed Books. Mill, John Stuart. 1961. Essential Works of John Stuart Mill. Ed. Max Lerner. New York: Bantam Books. Miller, David L. 1976. Social Justice. Clarendon Press: Oxford. ———. 1999. Principles of Social Justice. London: Harvard University Press. Mills, Charles W. 2001. “Black Trash.” In Faces of Environmental Racism: Confronting Issues of Global Justice, ed. Laura Westra and Bill E. Lawson, 73–91. New York: Rowman and Littlefield. Milovanovic, Dragan. 1985. “Anarchism, Liberation Theology, and the Decommodification of the Linguistic and Juridic Form.” Humanity and Society 9:182–196. ———. 1988. “Jailhouse Lawyers and Jailhouse Lawyering.” International Journal of the Sociology of Law 16 (3): 455–475. ———. 1995. “Dueling Paradigms: Modernist versus Postmodernists.” Humanity and Society 19 (1): 1–22. ———. 1996.“ ‘Rebellious Lawyering.’ ” Legal Studies Forum 20 (3): 295–321. ———, ed. 1997a. Chaos, Criminology and Social Justice: The New Orderly (Dis)Order. Westport, CT: Praeger. ———. 1997b. Postmodern Criminology. New York: Garland. ———. 2003. An Introduction to the Sociology of Law. New York: Criminal Justice Press. ———. Forthcoming. Deleuze and Justice. Bloomington: Illinois University Press. Milovanovic, Dragan, and Stuart Henry. 2001. “Constitutive Definition of Crime.” In What Is Crime? ed. Stuart Henry and Mark Lanier, 165–178. New York: Rowman and Littlefield Publishers.

References

235

Milovanovic, Dragan, and Jim Thomas. 1989. “Overcoming the Absurd.” Social Problems 36 (1): 48–60. Monahan, J. 1984.“The Prediction of Violent Behavior:Toward a Second Generation of Theory and Policy.” American Journal of Psychiatry 141:10–15. Montgomery, David. 1987. The Fall of the House of Labor: The Workplace, the State, and American Labor Activism, 1865–1925. New York: Cambridge University Press. Moodie, Dunbar. 2002. “Mobilization on the South African Gold Mines.” In Social Movements: Identity, Culture, and the State, ed. David Meyer, Nancy Whittier, and Belinda Robnett, 47–65. New York: Oxford University Press. Moreton-Robinson, Aileen. 2001. “Witnessing Whiteness in the Wake of Wik.” Social Alternatives 17: 11–25. Morris, Ruth. 1994. A Practical Path to Transformative Justice.Toronto: Rittenhouse. ———. 1996. Restored to What? Baltimore: Maryland Justice Policy Institute. ———. 1999. “Why Transformative Justice?” Paper presented at Reconciling and Restoring Relationships—A Responsibility for all Christians, ICCPPC World Congress, Mexico City, September 13. ———. 2000. Stories of Transformation.Toronto: Canadian Press. Most, Michael T., Raja Sengupta, and Michael A. Burgener. 2004. “Spatial Scale and Population Assignment Choices in Environmental Justice Analyses.” Professional Geographer 56 (4): 574–586. Mottahedeh, Roy. 1986. The Mantle of the Prophet: Religion and Politics in Iran. New York: Pantheon Books. Myers, G. D., and S. Raine. 2001. “Australian Aboriginal Land Rights in Transition (Part 11).” Tulsa Journal of Comparative and International Law 9:95–157. Nagy, Rosemary. 2002. “Reconciliation in Post-Commission South Africa: Thick and Then Accounts of Solidarity.” Canadian Journal of Political Science 35 (2): 323–346. Najam, Adil, and Nick Robins. 2001. “Seizing the Future: The South, Sustainable Development and International Trade.” International Affairs 77 (1): 49–68. Nash, June. 1997. “The Fiesta of the Word: The Zapatista Uprising and Radical Democracy in Mexico.” American Anthropologist 99 (2): 261. Ness, Daniel W.Van, and Karen Heetderks Strong. 2004. Restoring Justice. Dayton, OH: Anderson Publishing Co. Newman, Dwight. 2005. “The Rome Statute, Some Reservations Concerning Amnesties, and a Distributive Problem.” American University International Law Review 20:293–325. Nietzsche, Friedrich. 1967. On the Genealogy of Morals.Trans.Walter Kaufman. New York: Vintage. ———. 1974. The Gay Science.Trans.Walter Kaufman. New York:Vintage. ———. 1986. Human, All Too Human. Trans. R. J. Hollingdale. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Niezen, Ronald. 2003. The Origins of Indiginism: Human Rights and the Politics of Identity. Berkeley: University of California Press. Noël, Alain, and Jean-Philippe Thérien. 2002. “Public Opinion and Global Justice.” Comparative Political Studies 35 (6): 631–656. Norval, Aletta. 1996. Deconstructing Apartheid Discourse. New York:Verso. Okin, Susan Moller. 1989.“Justice, Gender, and Equity in the Family.” In What Is Justice? Classic and Contemporary Readings, ed. Robert C. Solomon and Mark C. Murphy, 332–339. New York: Oxford.

236

References

Oliver, Melvin L., and Thomas M. Shapiro. 1997. Black Wealth/White Wealth: A New Perspective on Racial Inequality. New York: Routlege. Olivera, Oscar. 2004. ¡Cochabamba! Water War in Bolivia. Cambridge, MA: South End Press. O’Malley, Pat. 1992. “Risk, Power and Crime Prevention.” Economy and Society 21: 252–275. ———. 1996. “Risk and Responsibility.” In Foucault and Political Reason, ed. A. Barry, T. Osborne, and N. Rose, 189–207. London: UCL Press. ———. 1999. “Reconfiguring Risk: Crime Control and Risk Societies.” Paper presented at the British Criminology Conference, Liverpool, July 14. ———. 2004. “The Uncertainty of Risk: Actuarial Forecasting of Criminal Justice.” Australian and New Zealand Journal of Criminology 37 (3): 323–344. Onuf, N. G. 1991. “Sovereignty: Outline of a Conceptual History.” Alternatives 16 (1): 425–445. Osorio, Ivan. 2003. “Venezuela’s Tyrant Hugo Chavez Must Go.” Accessed at http:// www.CapMag.com/article.asp?ID⫽2312. Packer, Herbert. 1998. “Two Models of the Criminal Process.” In The Criminal Justice System, ed. George Cole and Marc Gertz, 9–23. Boson:West/Wadsworth. Pangle,Thomas L. 1980. The Laws of Plato. Basic Books: New York. Parenti, Christian. 2005. “Hugo Chavez and Petro Populism.” Accessed at http://www. thenation.com/doc/mhtml?i⫽20050411&s⫽parenti. Parker, Christine. 1999. Just Lawyers. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Pashukanis, E. 1980. “The General Theory of Law and Marxism.” In Pashukanis: Selected Writings in Marxism and Law, ed. P. Beirne and R. Sharlet. New York: Academic Press. Passavant, Paul, and Jodi Dean, eds. 2003.“Empire’s” New Clothes: Reading Hardt and Negri. London: Routledge. Patton, Paul. 2001. Deleuze and the Political. London: Routledge. Pavlich, George. 1996. “The Power of Community Mediation.” Law and Society Review 30:707–733. ———. 2005. Paradoxes of Restorative Justice. London: Glasshouse Press. Peirce, C. Sanders. 1931. The Collected Papers of Charles Sanders Peirce. Ed. C. Hartshorne and P.Weiss. Cambridge, England: Harvard University Press. Perez, Beverly. 2003. “Woman Warrior ⫹ Meets Mail-Order Bride.” Berkeley Women’s Law Journal 18:211–40. Phillips, Derek. 1986. Toward a Just Social Order. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Piaget, Jean. 1965. The Moral Judgment of the Child. New York: Free Press. Plato. 1951. The Republic. New York: E. P. Hutton and Co. Pockock, J.G.A. 1992.“Tangata Whenua and Enlightenment Anthropology.” New Zealand Journal of History 25 (1): 28–53. Posel, Deborah, and Graeme Simpson, eds. 2003. Commissioning the Past: Understanding South Africa’s Truth and Reconciliation Commission. Witwatersrand: University Press Publications. Posner, Richard. 1997.“The Skin Trade.” New Republic, October 13, p. 40. Poster, Mark. 1984. Foucault, Marxism and History: Mode of Production versus Mode of Information. Cambridge, England: Polity. Poya, Maryam. 1987. “Iran 1979: Long Live Revolution . . . Long Live Islam?” In Revolutionary Rehearsals, ed. Colin Barker, 123–168. Chicago: Bookmarks.

References

237

Presser, L., and E. Gaarder. 2000. “Can Restorative Justice Reduce Battering? Some Preliminary Considerations.” Social Justice 27 (3): 175–200. Preston, Ted. 2004. “Environmental Values, Pluralism, and Stability.” Ethics, Place and Environment 7 (1): 73–83. Public Citizen and Friends of the Earth. 2001. “NAFTA Chapter 11 Investor-to-State Cases: Bankrupting Democracy.”Washington, DC: Public Citizen and Friends of the Earth. Quinney, Richard. 1974. Critique of Legal Order. Boston: Little, Brown. Randeria, Shalini. 2003. “Globalization of Law: Environmental Justice, World Bank, NGOs and the Cunning State in India.” Current Sociology 51 (3): 305–326. Ransby, Barbara. 2003. Ella Baker and the Black Freedom Movement: A Radical Democratic Vision. Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press. Rao, J. Mohan. 1999.“The Social Basis of International Cooperation.” International Social Science Journal 162:585–592. Ransley, Janet, and Elena Marchetti. 2001. “The Hidden Whiteness of Australian Law: A Case Study.” Griffith Law Review 10 (1): 139–150. Ravallion, Martin. 2003. “The Debate on Globalization, Poverty, and Inequality: Why Measurement Matters.” International Affairs 79 (4): 739–753. Rawls, John. 1963. “Constitutional Liberty and the Concept of Justice.” In John Rawls: Collected Papers, ed. Samuel Freeman, 73–96. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. ———. 1971. A Theory of Justice. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Razack, Sherene. 1999. Looking White People in the Eye: Gender, Race and Culture in the Courtrooms and Classrooms. Toronto: University of Toronto Press. Rees,William, and Laura Westra. 2003.“When Consumption Does Violence? Can There Be Sustainability and Environmental Justice in a Resource-Limited World? In Just Sustainabilities: Development in an Unequal World, ed. Julian Agyeman, Robert Bullard, and Bob Evans, 99–124. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Reiman, Jeffrey. 1990. Justice and Modern Moral Philosophy. New Haven:Yale University Press. Rigakos, George. 1999. “Risk Society and Actuarial Criminology.” Canadian Journal of Criminology 41 (2): 137–151. Rigakos, George, and Richard Hadden. 2001.“Crime, Capitalism and the ‘Risk Society.’ ” Theoretical Criminology 5 (1): 61–84. Riley, Angela. 2000. “Recovering Collectivity: Group Rights to Intellectual Property in Indigenous Communities. Cardozo Arts and Entertainment Law Journal 18: 175–211. Robnett, Belinda. 2002. “External Political Change, Collective Identities, and Participation in Social Movement Organizations.” In Social Movements: Identity, Culture and the State, ed. David Meyer, Nancy Whittier, and Belinda Robnett, 266–285. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Rorty, Richard. 1989. Contingency, Irony, and Solidarity. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Ross, Alf. 1974. On Law and Justice. Berkeley: University of California Press. Ross, Robert. 1999. A Concise History of South Africa. New York: Cambridge University Press. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques. 1973. The Social Contract and Discourses. London: Dent and Sons. Roy, Arundhati. 2004. An Ordinary Person’s Guide to Empire. Cambridge, MA: South End Press.

238

References

Ryan, Charlotte. 2004.“Can We Be Compañeros?” Social Problems 51 (1): 110–113. Said, Edward. 1978. Orientalism. New York: Pantheon. ———. 1983. The World, the Text, and the Critic. Boston: Harvard University Press. ———. 1993. Culture and Imperialism. London: Chatto and Windus. ———. 1994. Representations of the Intellectual. New York:Vintage Books. ———. 1995. The Politics of Dispossession: The Struggle for Palestinian Self-Determination, 1969–1994. New York:Vintage Books. ———. 2004. Humanism and Democratic Criticism. New York: Columbia University Press. Salazar, Debra J., and Donald K. Alper. 2002. “Reconciling Environmentalism and the Left: Perspectives on Democracy and Social Justice in British Columbia’s Environmental Movement.” Canadian Journal of Political Science 35 (3): 527–566. Sandel, Michael. 1982. Liberalism and the Limits of Justice. Cambridge, England: Cambridge University Press. Schehr, Robert. 1996. Dynamic Utopia.Westport, CT: Praeger. ———. 1997. “Surfing the Chaotic: A Non-Linear Articulation of Social Movement Theory.” In Chaos, Criminology and Social Justice: The New Orderly (Dis)Order, ed. Dragan Milovanovic, 157–178.Westport, CT: Praeger. ———. 1999a.“Conflict Mediation and the Postmodern.” Social Justice 25:208–232. ———. 1999b.“Intentional Communities, the Fourth Way: A Constitutive Integration.” In Constitutive Criminology at Work, ed. Stuart Henry and Dragan Milovanovic, 249–274. New York: State University of New York Press. ———. 2000.“From Restoration to Transformation.” Mediation Quarterly 18:151–169. Scheper-Hughes, Nancy. 1992. Death without Weeping: The Violence of Everyday Life in Brazil. Berkeley: University of California Press. Schlosberg, David. 2004. “Reconceiving Environmental Justice: Global Movements and Political Theories.” Environmental Politics 13 (3): 517–547. Schroeder,Theodore. 1998.“Fables of the Deconstruction:The Practical Failures of Gay and Lesbian Theory in the Realm of Employment Discrimination. American University Journal of Gender, Society, Policy and Law 6:333–354. Schum, D. 1994. The Evidential Foundations of Probabilistic Reasoning. New York: John Wiley and Sons. Schwendinger, Herman, and Julia Schwendinger. 1985. Adolescent Subcultures and Delinquency. New York: Praeger Publishers. ———. 2001.“Defenders of Order or Guardians of Human Rights?” In What Is Crime? ed. Stuart Henry and Mark Lanier, 65–98. New York: Rowman and Littlefield Publishers. Scimecca, Joseph. 1991. “Conflict Resolution and a Critique of Alternative Dispute Resolution.” In Criminology as Peacemaking, ed. Harold Pepinsky and Richard Quinney, 263–279. Bloomington: Indian University Press. Seis, Mark. 2001.“Confronting the Contradiction: Global Capitalism and Environmental Health.” International Journal of Comparative Sociology 42 (1): 123–144. Sen, Amartya. 1992. Inequality Reexamined. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. ———. 2002. “How to Judge Globalism.” Accessed at http://www.prospect.org/print/ v13/1/sen-a.html. Senser, Robert A. 1989.“How Poland’s Solidarity Won Freedom of Association.” Monthly Labor Review 112 (9): 34–39. Shahidian, Hammed. 1997. “Women and Clandestine Politics in Iran, 1970–1985.” Feminist Studies 23 (1): 7–43. Sharma, Sohan, Sue Tracy, and Surinder Kumar. 2004. “Venezuela—Ripe for U.S. Intervention?” Race and Class 45 (4): 61–74.

References

239

Sherman, L. W. 2000. “Domestic Violence and Restorative Justice: Answering Key Questions.” Virginia Journal of Social Policy and Law 8 (4): 263–298. Shriver, Thomas E., Amy Chasteen Miller, and Sherry Cable. 2003. “Women’s Work: Women’s Involvement in the Gulf War Illness Movement.” Sociological Quarterly 44 (4): 639–658. Sikorski, Radek. 1996.“How We Lost Poland.” Foreign Affairs 75 (5): 15–22. Simon, Jonathan. 1987.“The Emergence of Risk Society: Insurance Law and the State.” Socialist Review 95:61–89. ———. 1988. “The Ideological Effects of Actuarial Justice.” Law and Society Review 22:771–800. Simpson, Graeme. 2002. “Tell No Lies, Claim No Easy Victories: A Brief Evaluation of South African Truth and Reconciliation Commission. In Commissioning the Past: Understanding South Africa’s Truth and Reconciliation Commission, ed. Deborah Posel and Graeme Simpson, 220–247.Witwatersrand: University Press Publications. Sites, P. 1973. Control, the Basis of Social Order. New York: Dunellen. Smith,Adam. 1776.“The Wealth of Nations.” In What Is Justice? Classic and Contemporary Readings, ed. Robert C. Solomon and Mark C. Murphy, 148–150. New York: Oxford. ———. 2000. Theory of Moral Sentiments. Prometheus Books. Smith, Linda Tuhiwai. 1999. Decolonizing Methodologies: Research and Indigenous Peoples. New York: Zed Books Ltd. Smith, Sharon. 2005. Women and Socialism: Essays on Women’s Liberation. Chicago: Haymarket Books. Solnit, David, ed. 2004. Globalize Liberation: How to Uproot the System and Build a Better World. San Francisco: City Lights Books. Solomon, Robert C., and Mark C. Murphy. 2000. What Is Justice? Classic and Contemporary Readings. New York: Oxford. Sorrenson, M.P.K. 1999. “The Settlement of New Zealand from 1835.” In Indigenous Peoples’ Rights, ed. Paul Havermann, 162–179. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Sparks, Allister. 1996. Tomorrow Is Another Country:The Inside Story of South Africa’s Road to Change. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Spelman, Elizabeth V. 1982. “Woman as Body: Ancient and Contemporary Views. Feminist Studies 8 (1): 109–131. ———. 1988. Inessential Woman: Problems of Exclusion in Feminist Thought. Boston: Beacon Press. Spencer, Herbert. 1897. The Principles of Sociology. New York: D. Appleton and Co. ———. 1969. The Study of Sociology. Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press. ———. 1978. The Principles of Ethics. Indianapolis: Liberty Classics. Spivak, Gayatri Chakravorty. 1988. “Can the Subaltern Speak?” In Marxism and the Interpretation of Culture, ed. Cary Nelson and Larry Grossberg, 271–313. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. ———. 1998. Don’t Call Me Postcolonial. Harvard: Harvard University Press. ———. 1999. A Critique of Post-Colonial Reason. Harvard: Harvard University Press. ———. 2003. Death of a Discipline. New York: Columbia University Press. Steadman, H. J., and J. J. Cocozza. 1974. Careers of the Criminal Insane. Lexington, MA: Lexington Books. Steinberg, Marc. 2002.“Toward a More Dialogic Analysis of Social Movement Culture.” In Social Movements: Identity, Culture and the State, ed. David Meyer, Nancy Whittier, and Belinda Robnett, 208–225. Oxford: Oxford University Press.

240

References

Stubbs, J. 2002. “Domestic Violence and Women’s Safety: Feminist Challenges to Restorative Justice.” In Restorative Justice and Family Violence, ed. H. Strang and J. Braithwaite, 42–61. Oxford: Cambridge University Press. Sullivan, Dennis, and Larry Tifft. 1980. The Mask of Love. Port Washington, NY: Kennikat Press Corp. ———. 2001. Restorative Justice: Healing the Foundations of Our Everyday Lives. Monsey, NY:Willow Tree Press. Sustar, Lee. 2004. “The U.S. Labor Movement: State of Emergency, Signs of Renewal.” International Socialist Review 34:31–40. Switala, Kristin. 1999. “Feminism and Postcolonialism: Bibliography.” Accessed at http://www.cddc.vt.edu/feminism/poc.html. Sylvain, Renée. 2002. “ ‘Land, Water, and Truth’: San Identity and Global Indigenism.” American Anthropologist 104 (4): 1074–1085. Tappan, Paul. 2001. “Who Is the Criminal?” In What is Crime? ed. Stuart Henry and Mark Lanier, 27–36. New York: Rowman and Littlefield Publishers. Taylor, Charles. 1985.“What’s Wrong with Negative Liberty?” In Collected Papers,Volume 2, ed. Charles Taylor. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. ———. 1994. “The Politics of Recognition.” In Multiculturalism, ed. Amy Gutmann, 25–73. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Taylor, D. E. 2000. “The Rise of the Environmental Justice Paradigm: Injustice, Framing and the Social Construction of Environmental Discourses.” American Behavioral Scientist 43 (4): 508–580. Teitel, Ruti. 2002. Transitional Justice. Oxford University Press. Tiersma, Peter. 2000. Legal Language. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Tong, Rosemarie. 1993. Feminine and Feminist Ethics. Belmon, CA:Wadsworth. Torres, Maria Idall. 2005. “Organizing, Educating, and Advocating for Health and Human Rights in Vieques, Puerto Rico.” American Journal of Public Health 95 (1): 9–12. Touval, Saadia, and I.William Zartman. 1985. International Mediation in Theory and Practice. Boulder, CO:Westview Press. ———. 1989.“Mediation in International Conflicts.” In Mediation Research, ed. Kenneth Kressel and Dean G. Pruitt. San Francisco: Jossey-Bass. Tucker, Robert C. 1972. The Marx Engles Reader. 2nd ed. New York:W.W. Norton and Co. Tulloch, J. 1999.“Fear of Crime and the Media: Sociocultural Theories of Risk.” In Risk and Socio-Cultural Theory, ed. D. Lupton, 34–58. New York: Cambridge University Press. Tully, J. 1995. Strange Multiplicity. Cambridge, England: Cambridge University Press. Ture, Kwame, and Charles V. Hamilton. 1992. Black Power. New York:Vintage Books. ———. 2003.“The Struggle of Indigenous Peoples for and of Freedom. In Box of Treasures or Empty Box? ed. A.Walem and H. Bruce, 272–307.Vancouver:Theytus Books,. Turner, D. 2004. “Perceiving the World Differently.” In Intercultural Dispute Resolution in Aboriginal Contexts, ed. C. Bell and D. Kahane, 57–69.Vancouver: UBC Press. Turner,Terence. 1997.“Human Rights, Human Difference:Anthropology’s Contribution to an Emancipatory Cultural Politics.” Journal of Anthropological Research 53: 273–291. Tutu, Desmond. 1999. No Future without Forgiveness. London: Rider. Unger, Roberto. 1996. What Should Legal Analysis Become? New York:Verso. Valencia, Reynaldo Analya, Sonia R. Garcia, Henry Flores, and Jose Roberto Juarez Jr. 2004. Mexican Americans and the Law.Tucson: University of Arizona Press. Van, Jon. 2005.“Cybercrime Being Fought in New Ways.” Chicago Tribune, October, 2005.

References

241

Van Ness, Daniel. 1990. “Restorative Justice.” In Criminal Justice, Restitution, and Reconciliation, ed. Burt Galaway and Joe Hudson. Newbury Park, CA: Sage. ———. 1995.“Anchoring Just Deserts.” Criminal Law Forum 6. ———. 1999. “Legal Issues Related to Restorative Justice.” In Restorative Juvenile Justice, ed. Gordon Bazemore and Lode Walgrave, 263–284. Monsey, NJ:Willow Tree Press. Van Ness, Daniel, and Karen Strong. 2002. Restoring Justice. Cincinnati: Anderson Publishing Co. van Zyl, Paul. 1999. “Dilemmas of Transitional Justice:The Case of South Africa’s Truth and Reconciliation Commission.” Journal of International Affairs 52 (2): 647–667. Vattel, Emer de. 1971.“Emer de Vattel on the Occupation of Territory.” In Imperialism, ed. R. Curtin. London: Macmillan. Vitoria, Francisco. 1934. “De Indis.” In The Spanish Origin of International Law, ed. James Brown Scott. Oxford Clarendon Press. Walgrave, Lode, and H. Geudens. 1996.“The Restorative Proportionality of Community Service for Juveniles.” European Journal of Crime, Criminal Law and Criminal Justice 4. Walker, Ranginui. 1999.“Maori Sovereignty, Colonial and Post Colonial Discourses.” In Indigenous Peoples’ Rights, ed Paul Havermann, 108–122. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Wallace, Maurice. 2004. “Feminism and the Law.” Duke Journal of Gender Law and Policy 11:1–7. Walzer, M. 1983. Spheres of Justice: A Defense of Pluralism and Equality. Oxford: Martin Robertson. Warren, Karen, and Nisvan Erkal, eds. 1997. Ecofeminism: Women, Culture, Nature. Bloomington: Indiana University Press. Watson, Hilbourne A. 2002.“Globalization as Capitalism in the Age of Electronics.” Latin American Perspectives 29 (6): 32–43. Weber, Max. 1958. The Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism. New York: Charles Scribner’s Books. ———. 1978. Economy and Society. Vols. 1–2. Ed. G. Roth and C. Wittich. Los Angeles: University of California Press. Weinstein, Jami, and Tobyn DeMarco. 2004. “Challenging Dissent: The Ontology and Logic of Lawrence v.Texas.” Cardozo Women’s Law Journal 10:423–456. White, Jeremiah. 2004. “Is Iowa’s Sexual Predator Statute ‘Civil.’ ”? Iowa Law Review 89:339–73. Whyte, Stephen. 1991. Political Theory and Postmodernism. Cambridge, UK: Cambridge University Press. Whorf, Benjamin. 1964. Language,Thought and Reality. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Wiegman, Robyn. 2004.“Dear Ian.” Duke Journal of Gender Law and Policy 11:90–96. Wiessner, Siegfried. 2001.“Introduction for the Sixth Annual Tribe Sovereignty Symposium: Defending Indigenous Peoples’ Heritage.” St.Thomas Law Review 14: 270–293. Wilkins, David. 1997. American Indian Sovereignty and the U.S. Supreme Court:The Masking of Justice. Austin: University of Austin Press. Williams, Chris, and Bruce Arrigo. 2001. “Anarchaos and Order: On the Emergence of Social Justice.” Theoretical Criminology 5 (2): 223–252. Willoughby.W.W. 1900. Social Justice. New York: Macmillan. Wilson, E. O. 1975. Sociobiology. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Wilson, Richard A. 2000. “Reconciliation and Revenge in Post-Apartheid South Africa.” Current Anthropology 41 (1): 75–98. Wing, Katherine. ed. 1996. Critical Race Feminism: A Reader. New York: New York University Press.

242

References

Wittgenstein, Ludwig. 1953. Philosophical Investigations. Trans. G.E.M. Anscombe. New York: Macmillan. Wolf, Sherry. 2004.“The Roots of Gay Oppression.” International Socialist Review 37:48–58. Woods, Alan. 2005a. “Chavez: ‘Capitalism Must Be Transcended.” Accessed at http:// www.marxist.com/Latinam/chavez_speech_wsf.htm. ———. 2005b.“Encounter with Hugo Chavez.” Accessed at http://www.marxist.com/ Latinam/enounters_with_hugo_chavez.html. Woodmansee, Martha. 1992. “On the Author Effect: Recovering Collectivity.” Cardozo Arts and Entertainment Law Journal 10: 279. Wooton, Barbara. 1979. “Crime, Responsibility, and Prevention.” In Contemporary Punishment: Views, Explanations, and Justifications, ed. Rudolph Gerber and Patrick McAnany, 164–174. Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press. Wright, Martin. 1982. Making Good: Prisons, Punishment, and Beyond. London: Burnett Books. Yardley, Jim. 2005.“Rural Chinese Riot as Police Try to Halt Pollution Protest.” New York Times, April 14. Accessed at http://www.nytimes.com/2005/04/14international/ asia/14riot.html. Young, Marlene. 1995. Restorative Community Justice.Washington, DC: National Organization for Victim Assistance. Young,T. R. 1997a. “Challenges: For a Postmodern Criminology.” In Chaos, Criminology and Social Justice: The New Orderly (Dis)Order, ed. Dragan Milovanovic, 29–51. Westport, CT: Praeger Publishers. ———. 1997b.“The ABCs for Crime: Attractors, Bifurcations, and Chaotic Dynamics.” In Chaos, Criminology and Social Justice: The New Orderly (Dis)Order, ed. Dragan Milovanovic, 77–96.Westport, CT: Praeger Publishers. ———. 1999. “A Constitutive of Justice.” In Constitutive Criminology at Work, ed. Stuart Henry and Dragan Milovanovic, 275–285. Albany, NY: State University of Albany Press. Zehr, Howard. 1990. Changing Lenses: A New Focus for Crime and Justice. Scottdale, PA: Herald Press. Zinger, Ivan. 2004. “Actuarial Risk Assessment and Human Rights.” Canadian Journal of Criminology and Criminal Justice 46 (5): 607–621. Zinn, Howard. 1995. A People’s History of the United States. New York: Harper Perennial. Zirin, Dave. 2005. What’s My Name Fool? Sports and Resistance in the United States. Chicago: Haymarket Books. Zizek, S. 2001. “Have Michael Hardt and Antonio Negri Rewritten the Communist Manifesto for the Twenty-First Century?” Rethinking Marxism 9:3–4.

Case s Cite d

Baker et al. v.Vermont et al., 170 Vt. 194 (1999). Baxstrom v. Herald, 383 U.S. 107 (1966). Bowers v. Hardwick, 478 U.S. 186 (1986). Brown v. Board of Education, 347 U.S. (1954). Burrow-Giles Lithographic Co. v. Sarony, 111 U.S. 53 (1884). Chaplinsky v. N. Hampshire, 315 U.S. 568 (1942). Dred Scott v. Sanford, 60 U.S. 393 (1857). EEOC v. Sears Roebuck and Co., 839 F. 2d 302 (1988).

References

243

Ex Parte Crow Dog, 109 U.S. 556, 3 S. Ct. 396, 27 L.Ed. 1030 (1883). Faragher v. City of Baca Raton, 524 U.S. 775 (1989). Goodridge v. Department of Public Health, 798 N.E. 2d 941 (Mass. 2003). Gratz v. Bollinger, 539 U.S. (2003). Griswold v. Connecticut, 381 U.S. 479 (1965). Grutter v. Bollinger, 123 S. Ct. 2325 (2003). In Re Opinion of Justices to the Senate, 802 N.E. 2d 565 (Mass. 2004). In the Matter of the Welfare of R.A.V., 464 N.W. 2d 507 (Minnesota, 1991). Kansas v. Crane, 534 U.S. (2002). Kansas v. Hendricks, 521 U.S. 346 (1997). Kansas Indians, 72 U.S. 737, 18 L.Ed. 667, 5 Wall. 737 (1866). Korematsu v. United States, 324 U.S. 885 (1945). Lawrence v.Texas, 539 U.S. 558 (2003). Lofton v. Secretary of Department of Children and Family Services, no. 01–16723, 2004 WL 161275 (11th Cir., Jan. 28, 2004). McCleskey v. Kemp, 481 U.S. 279 (1987). Merrion v. Jicarilla Apache Tribe, U.S. Supreme Court, 1982, 455 U.S. 130, 102 S.Ct. 894, 71 L.Ed. 21. Oncale v. Sundow Offshore Services, Inc., 523 U.S. 75 (1998). People v. Burns, 209 Ill. 2d. 551 (2004). People v. McDougle, 303 Ill. App. 3d 509 (1999). People v. Zammora, 152 P. 2d 180 (Calif. 1944). Plessy v. Fergusson, 163 U.S. 537 (1896). R.A.V. v. City of St. Paul, 505 U.S. 377 (1992). Regents of University of California v. Bakke, 438 U.S. 265 (1978). R.I.S.E., Inc. v. Kay, 768 F. Supp. 1144, 1149 (E.D.Va. 1991), aff ’d, 977 F. 2d 573 (4th Cir. 1992). Roe v.Wade, 410 U.S. 113 (1973). San Antonia Independent School District v. Rodriguez, 411 U.S. 1 (1973). Talton v. Mayes, 163 U.S. 376, 16 S.Ct. 986, 41 L.Ed. 196 (1896). Twyman v.Twyman, 855 S.W. 2d 619 (Tex., 1993). United States v. Salerno, 481 U.S. 739 (1987). United States v.Winans, 198 U.S. 371, 25 S.Ct. 662, 49 L.Ed. 1089 (1905). Valencia v. Davis, 307 F. 3d 1036 (2002). Washington v. Davis, 426 U.S. 229 (1976). Worcester v. Georgia, 31 U.S. 515 (1832). Yniguez v. Arizonans for Official English, 69 F. 3d 920 (1995).

Index

Abelove, Henry, 154 aboriginal, 109, and dreamtime, 113, 117 Abu El-Haj,Thea, 77 Acorn, Annalise, 63, 65 ACT-UP, 170 actuarial justice, 53–54, 211 Adeola, F. O., 96 African National Congress, 180–181 Agozino, Biko, 122 Agyeman, Julian, 93, 95, 96, 107 Ahmad, Eqbal, 188 Aiyer, Ananthakrishman, 85, 88, 89, 90 Al Qaeda, 79 Albany model, ix Alper, Donald, 175 alternative dispute resolution (ADR), 62–63 alternative dispute settlements, 105 Annas, Catherine, 117 antifoundationalists, 132. See also Derrida, Rorty apartheid, 179–184; and deconstruction, 218 Aquinas, St.Thomas, 14–15, 207 Arab, 123, 188–190 Aristotle, 13–14 Aronowitz, Stanley, 78, 79 Arrigo, Bruce, 26, 63, 71, 135, 139, 150, 151, 176–177, 214 Asch, Michael, 111 Asian American Crits, 150, 153–154; consciousness raising, 154; Korematsu v. United States, 153; Ku Klux Klan, 154; origins, 153; outsider jurisprudence,

154; as perfect minority, 153; racist speech and First Amendment to the U.S. Constitution, 153–154; R.A.V. v. City of St. Paul, 154; as scapegoats, 153; without support by other disenfranchised, 153;“words are part of the struggle,” 153 (see also discourse and justice) Astor, Hilary, 60 Augustine, St., 14 autonomia movement in Italy, 216 Bachelet, Michelle, 192 Bacon, Sir Francis, 15 Baker, Ella, 165–166, 169; and fight for inclusive practices, 166, 178 Baker v.Vermont, 155 Balbus, Isaac, 146, 159 Baldus study, 144 Barger,W. K., 173, 174 Barker, Colin, 190, 191 Barlow, Jeffrey, 78, 79, 81 Barry, Brian, 16 Bartlett, K., 111, 148 Bassiouni, M., 182, 184 Bator, Paul, 208 Baxstrom v. Herald, 54 Beccaria, Cesare, 46 Beck, Ulrich, 54, 78, 79, 91, 210 Been,Vicki, 103 Bell, Derrick, 143, 160 Benatar, Solomon, 84, 89 Bennet, Scott, 162 Berman, Harold, 55

245

246

Index

Berne Convention for the Protection of Literary and Artistic Work, 113, 115 Bernstein, Mary, 159 Bhabha, Homi, 119, 123–124 Black, Donald, 67–68, 209 Blacke, Michael, 119 Black Power Movement, 164,170 Boekmann, H. J., 81 Bohm, Robert, xi Bolivia: Cochabamba, 192–193; control of water, 193; Coordinadora, 193–194; nationalization of gas, 195; New Economic Policy, 193; Olivera, 194; and struggle for justice, 192–195; World Bank and International Development Bank, 193 Bowers v. Hardwick, 157. See also queer theory Bracher, Mark, 122 Braithwaite, John, 56, 59–60, 71–72, 87; globalization and restorative justice, 90–92, 109 Branch,Taylor, 163 Breitman, George, 164 Brosius, Peter, 117 Brown v. Board of Education, 6, 111–112, 143; and Bell’s critique of, 160 Buckingham, Susan, 95 Bullard, Robert, 93, 96, 107 Burbach, Roger, 78, 79, 137, 197, 198 Burgener, Michael, 101 Burrow-Giles Lithographic Co. v. Sarony, 112 Burton, J.W., 63, 64, 209 Butler, Judith, 122, 144, 149, 155, 156, 177; binary notions of sexuality, 156; and contingent universalities, 122, 145; 149; and criticism of feminist for essentializing women, 156. See also queer theory Cahill, Lisa, 84, 89 Calder et al. v. Attorney General of British Columbia, 111 Cameron, Angela, 63–64

Capeheart, Loretta, 198–199; and World Social Forum, 198–199 capitalism: and actuarial justice, 53–54; and class, 36–41; and distributive justice, 81–82; and formal law/rationalization, 33–34; and globalism, 77–78, 87–90; and historical systems, 36–41; and holistic structure, 69; and labor, 36; market and inequality, 26; and Puritanism, 33. See also political economy; revolutionary change; socialism; state capitalism Caputo, John, 128, 129 Caringella-MacDonald, Susan, xi Carneiro, Robert, 23 Cartesian dualism, 16 Castells, Manuel, 79, 81, 197 categorical imperative, 16 Centre for Studies in Social Justice at Windsor, x, xi Chamblis,William, x, xi Charlesworth, Hilary, 83, 89 chaos theory (dynamic systems theory) and emergent principles of justice, 139; concepts, disproportional effects, attractors, indeterminacy, dissipative structures, 217; and COREL sets, 219; and nonlinear social movements, 176–177 Chaplinsky v. New Hampshire, 153 Chase, Steve, 86 Chavez, Hugo, 195–196, 199. See also Venezuela and struggles for justice Checker, Melissa, 174 Cixous, Helene, 149 class struggle, 37, 40 Clement, Grace, 22–23 Coates, Jacky, 169 Cobb, Sara, 60 Cocozza, J. J., 54 Coker, Donna, 60 Colebrook, Claire, 132 Cole, David, 144 Cole, Luke, 96, 100, 101, 103, 159, 160, 175, 211

Index

colonization, 108–125 community, definition of, 208–209 consensus, 17, 127 constitutive model, 39–40; definition of harm, 45–46, 210, 212, 213; environmental justice and definition of harm, 94; in relation to justice, 70, 139 contingent universalities, 122. See also Butler, Judith contractual justice, 34, 36 Cornell, Drucilla, 135–137, 149; and criticism of MacKinnon’s reversal of hierarchies, 145; custodial caretaker, 156; differences with Fineman on same sexed families, 155–156; sexuate beings, 155–156, 216, 217; strategies in struggles for social justice, 149. See also gay/lesbian studies Correa Leite, Jose, 198 Cossman, Brenda, 154, 155, 156 counter narratives, 145. See also discourse and justice Crenshaw, Kimberle, 150, 157–158 crime control model, 49–51 criminal justice, ix, xii, 3 critical criminology, x–xi critical feminist studies (fem-crits), 148–149; and contingent universalities, 149; creative use of metaphor, 149; dialectics of legal struggle, 148; feminist postmodernists, 149; and formal equality, 148; internal constraints in law, 148; and male dominated discourse, desire, gender identities, 149; and petit apartheid, 148; retelling the myth, 149; roots, 148; slippage of meaning, 149; surplus of meaning, 149; three strategies, 148–149; utopian thinking, 149. See also discourse and justice critical Latino/a studies (LatCrits), 151–153; attempts to address educational issues in courts, 152; bilingual education and the courts, 152; “English Plus,” 152; and equal

247

protection, 152; mixed results in courts, 153; multilingual communities, 152; origins, 151; People v. Zammora, 151; Proposition 227, California, 152;Treaty of Guadalupe Hidalgo, 151 critical legal studies (crits), 147; critique of formal rationality, 147; deconstruction, 147; judge’s reasoning, 147; law as ideology, 147; law school as preparation for hierarchy, 147; origins, 147; trashing, 147; questioning neutrality of language, 147 critical race theory (CRT), 131, 150–151; consciousness raising, 150; counternarratives, 150; and dialectics of struggle, 151; dialogical pedagogy, 151; formal equality not supportive of people of color, 150; jurisprudence of color, 150; law as devoid of people of color, 150;“learning to talk,” 150–151; legal apparatus not colorblind, 150; “legalism as a tool of necessity,” 150; origins, 150; race as a category, 150; retelling stories, 150; uneasy alliance with postmodernism, 150; usefulness of Lacan’s four discourses, 151;“words are part of the struggle,” 150. See also discourse and justice; Brown v. Board of Education; McCleskey v. Kemp Dangarembga,Tsitsi, 120 day fine, 58 Dean, Jodi, 86 decentered subject, 27 deconstruction, 128; definition of, 214 deductive, 25; critique by postmodernists, 134; deductive logic in law, 34, 134, 146 Deleuze, Gilles, 111, 121, 132–135, 138, 213, 215; and similarity of people yet to come with multitude, 217 Delgado, Richard, 144, 145, 150, 153, 157, 217 Delgamuuk v. British Columbia, 111 De Marco,Tobyn, 157

248

Index

Derrida, Jacques, 119, 120, 121, 123, 128–130, 135, 139, 217 desert-based justice, 18, 25, 59–60, 72, 80; and environmental/ecological deserts, 98–99; in a global economy, 87–90 desire based justice, 132, 133, 135 deterrence philosophy of punishment, 46–47 Dewey, John, 131 dialectical materialism, 37. See also Marx, Karl dialectics of struggle, 7, 146, 151, 159, 173. See also Bolivia; grassroots struggles; legal struggles;Venezuela Dietz, Adolf, 115 The Differend, 127; women as, 136 disciplinary mechanism, 63 discourse and justice, 70, 71, 72, 95; counter narratives, 145; fighting words, 153; grand and petit narrative, 127 (see also Lyotard, Jean-Francois); Hopi form, 126; postcolonial discourses, 122, 123–124; racist speech, 154; slippage of meaning, 124, 149;“words are part of the struggle,” 150, 153 disparate outcomes/impacts, 96, 100–101; two fallacies of, 100 distributive justice, xii; defined, 2–3; 4, 14, 29–44, 80–81; and environmental rights, 96; in a global order, 87–90 Division of People of Color and Crime of the ASC, 215 Division on Critical Criminology of the ASC, xi; co-founded by Susan Carringela-MacDonald and Bob Bohm, 216 Dobbs, Farrell, 171 Dobson, Andrew, 96 Dodds, Michelle, 169 Dolan, M., 54 Donohoe, Martin, 101 Douglas, Frederick, 162 Doyle, M., 54 Dred Scott v. Sanford, 132, 143, 216 due process model, 49–51

Durkheim, Emile, 29–32 Dworkin, Ronald, 20–21, 125 Dyer-Witherford, Nick, 137, 138 Dyson, Michael, 163 ecoapartheid, 95, 103–104 ecofeminist movement, 94, 211 economic change, 72 Edgewood Independent School District v. Kirby, 152 EEOC v. Sears, Roebuck and Co., 148 Eglash, Albert, 55 Eldeman, Lee, 156 Elster, John, 182 empire, 86–87, 197–198. See also imperialism Engels, Frederick, 26 enlightenment era, 110; and grand narratives, 126; and ideological assumptions related to indigenous rights, 119, 213; and illusions of the individual, 132; vocabulary of, 130 environmental justice paradigm, 93; degradation principle, 107; emission trading, 105; environmental rights, 95, 105–106, 107; and indigenous communities, 104–105; just sustainability, 95; protections agencies (United Nations Environmental Program, Earth Observation Summit, Global Earth Observation System of Systems ten-year plan, U.S. EPA, Kyoto Protocol, North American Agreement on Environmental Cooperation, Rio Conference on Environment and Development), 105–107. See also sustainable development equality, 13, 19; and environmental/ecological equality, 99–100; formal equality, 35, 40, 80–81, 146; found in ethics of responsibility, 21; in a global economy, 87–90; international, 84, 87 equivalent evaluation, 136. See also Cornell, Drucilla

Index

Ericson, Richard, 53 Erkal, Nisvan, 95 essentialism, 21, 144–145, 146, 177; and anti-essentialism, 23, 144–145, 146, 177; Butler’s criticism of feminists for essentializing women, 156; in the context of indigenous rights, 117; Spivak and strategic essentialism, 121; and queer theory, 156 ethics of care, 21–22, 139 ethics of responsibility, 21–22 Evans, Bob, 93, 95, 96, 107 Evans, Gary, 102, 103, 105 Ewick, Patricia, 40, 70 Ex parte Crow Dog, 110 FALN, 167; clemency of Puerto Rican political prisoners, 167; and Oscar Lopez Rivera, 167 false positive, 54 family model, 51–52. See also Griffith, John Fanon, Franz, 119–120 Faragher v. City of Boca Raton, 148 Farber, Daniel, 145 Farley, Christine, 114 Feeley, Malcolm, 53, 54 female genital mutilation, 117 feminist ethic of care, 21–23; compared to ethics of responsibility, 21, 139. See also ethics of care Ferrara, Alessandro, 83, 89 Ferry, Martin, 192 Fineman, Martha, 155 Fitzpatrick, Peter, 110 Fleras, Augie, 109, 111, 112 Flew, Antony, 46 Foreman, Christopher, 97, 102–103 formal rationality, 34; 59; apposed by Unger, 119, 132; as apposed to pragmatism and inductive processes, 73, 131–132; in contrast with indigenous ways, 119; critical race theory’s criticism of formal equality, 150; critique by Deleuze, 133–134; and critique of founding principles, 128;

249

critique by critical legal studies, 147; critique by postmodernists, 132; and deductive logic, 128, 146; precedents and feminist critique, 148. See also Weber, Max Foster, Sheila, 96, 100, 101, 103, 159, 160, 175, 211 Foucault, Michel, 55, 63, 113, 119, 120, 121, 122, 123, 133, 214 founding fathers, 21 founding principles, 128 Fourteenth Amendment to the U.S. Constitution, 148, 217; equal protection clause and feminist critique, 148. See also critical feminist studies; Critical Latino/a Studies (LatCrits), equal protection Frank, Dana, 173, 174 Fraser, Nancy, 43–44; folk paradigms of justice, 44 Freire, Paulo, 71, 122, 151, 210 Friedsky, Jean, 195 Fuller, Steve, 101, 102 Garrow, David, 163 Gaus, Gerald, 12, 13, 15, 17 Gautney, Heather, 78 gay/lesbian studies, 154–156; argument for feminist and gay/lesbian studies, 155; banning adoptions, 155; civil unions, 155; Cornell’s difference with Fineman, 155–156; Cornell and three suggestions for a new form of family, 155; distinguishing sex and gender, 154; feminist critique of gay/lesbian studies, 155; feminists reinforcing traditional categories, 154–155; Fineman and same-sexed marriages and abolition, 155; Fineman and sexual relations as consensual and contractual, 155; origins of, 154; same sexed families, 155; same-sexed marriages and the law, 155 Gbadegesin, Segun, 103 Geudens, H., 58 Gilligan, Carol, 21–22

250

Index

Gledhill, John, 84–85, 88, 89 Gleeson, Brenada, 93 globalism, 77–92; definition, 78; 196–199 Goodchild, Philip, 132 Goodrich v. Department of Public Health, 155 Grad, Rachael, 113, 115, 116 Gramsci, Antonio, 121 grassroots struggles, 159–178; African American movements, 161–166; biological, psychological, and sociological theories of sexuality, 169; for class justice, 171–174; democratic presidential candidate John Kerry and non support for equal marriages, 170–171; for environmental justice, 174–176; three waves in environmental justice movements, 175; fourth model of social movements, chaos informed, 176–177; for gender justice, 168–169; intentional communities, 176–177; internal differences and working toward common goals, 165; internal and external issues, 172–174; labor union involvement, 171; for Latino/a justice, 166–167; dialectics of struggle at NEIU, 173; NEIU’s faculty strike, movement fusion, 176; for sexual justice, 169–171; Stonewall Riots, 170. See also chaos theory; plurality of antagonisms Gratz v. Bollinger, 215 Graves, Benjamin, 123, 124 Green, Ross, 110 Greenspan, Alan, 79 Griffith, John, 51–52 Grosz, Elizabeth, 215 Grutter v. Bollinger, 215 Guattari, Felix, 111 Habermas, Jurgen, 20, 44, 127, 208 Hadden, Richard, 54, 55 Haggerty, Kevin, 53 Haley, Alex, 165 Hallas, Duncan, 27, 40

Halley, Ian, 156, 164 Halperin, David, 156 Halsey, Mark, 93–94 Hamilton, Charles, 162 hard cases in law, 131 Hardt, Michael, 79, 83, 86–87, 132, 138, 146, 197, 198, 219 Harman, Chris, 191 Hart, S. D., 54 Haughton, G., 93 Havermann, Paul, 108 Hawkins, Gordon, 47 Hayner, Priscilla, 182 Headley, Bernard, xi hegemony, definition of, 216 Held,Virginia, 21 Henry, Stuart, x, 45, 68, 94, 139 high tech robber barons, 79 Hill, Sarah, 103 Hobbes,Thomas, 15–16, 52 Hobson, Kersty, 96 holistic structure, 69 Holley, David, 192 Homer, 11, Honneth, Alex, 43–44; identity politics, 43 Hunt, Alan, 33 Hurricane Katrina, 61–62 ideal speech situation, 20, 214 imperialism, 82, 85, 122, 186. See also empire indigenous forms of justice, 108–124; authorship, individual v. collective, 112–114; definition of indigenous, 108–109; global v. indigenous rights, 117–119; and intellectual property rights, 112–114; joint work/authors, 114–115; moral rights, 115–116 inductive, 18, 25 information age, 79 innocence projects, 176–177; and inadvertently upholding the rule of law, 217–218 In re Opinion of Justices to the Senate, 155

Index

intent, 100–101, 143 intentional communities, 176–177 international Development Bank, 193 internationalism, 83–84 international Monetary Fund, 218 Internet, 79, 88; and authorship, 116; network struggles, 146, 197; and postmodern Marxists, 137; and Zapatistas’ struggle, 197 intersections, and multiple, intersecting affiliations, 157–158; additive/cumulative factors, 157; Crenshaw and critique of “2 Live Crew” depiction of black female, 158; challenge for social justice in using intersectionality in challenges to law, 158; subordination as a function of intersectionality, 158 In the Kansas Indians, 110 In the Matter of the Welfare of R.A.V., 154 Iran, 184–187; and Khomeini, 187; Mojahedin, 187; overthrow of Mossadegh, 185–186 Irigaray, Luce, 149 Israeli occupation, 187–190. See also Palestine Jagose, Annamarie, 156 James, Deborah, 183 James,William, 131 Jim Crow laws, 162 John Jay College, ix Johnson v. McIntosh, 110 Jordan, David, 114, 115 judgment as unjust, 132 juridic capture, 111 juridic subject, 27, 34, 38–39, 41 just contract, 31. See also Durkheim, Emile justice, definition of, first approximation, 1–2, 200 justice as a mirror, 197. See also Zapatistas justice as duty to the other, 119; and Derrida, 129–130, 139; justice is to gift as law is to economics, 129; and

251

Lyotard, 128, 139. See also Derrida, Jacques; Spivak, Gayatri justice and sexuate beings, 136–137; Cornell and reconstituted family, 137 just sustainability, 211 Kagan, Donald, 13 Kalas, Peggy, 105 Kamminga, Menno, 107 Kansas v. Crane, 49, 54 Kansas v. Hendricks, 49, 54 Kant, Immanuel, 16–17 Katz, Claudio, 192 Kennedy, Duncan, 132, 139, 147 Kennedy, Randall, 145 Khadi justice, 35 Kheel, Marti, 95 King, Jr., Martin Luther, 162–165 King’s peace, 55 Kinzer, Stephen, 185, 186 Kohlberg, Lawrence, 21–22, 207 Korematsu v. United States, 132. See also Asian American Crits Korzeniewicz, Roberto, 85, 89, 153 Kozol, Jonathan, 112 Kraska, Peter, 53 Kristeva, Julia, 149 Kropotkin, Peter, 24–25, 57, 64 Ku Klux Klan, 154 Kymlicka,Will, 119 Lacan, Jacques, 120, 121, 122, 123, 124, 133, 135, 139, 145, 149, 151, 211, 216 Laclau, Ernesto, 176, 218 Laden, Osama bin, creation by CIA, 188 Lake, Robert, 90 Landry, Donna, 121 Lanier, Mark, x, 45 La Raza Unida (LRUP), 166–167 Latino/a, 166–167. See also Critical Latino/a studies (Lat Crits) Lauretis,Teresa, 156 Lawrence, Charles, 150, 153

252

Index

Lawrence, v. State of Texas, 156. See also queer theory LEAA, 3 League of United Latin American Citizens (LULAC), 166 Ledwon, Lenora, 116 Lee, John, 105, 106, 107 legal struggles, 143–158; Asian American critical legal studies, 153–154; contingent universalities, 145; core issues in legal struggles—essentialism, 144; critical feminist studies, 148; critical latino/a studies, 151–153; critical legal studies, 147; critical race theory, 150–151; counternarratives, 145; dialectics of, 143, 146; denial providing tool for challenges, 143; emerging concepts, apposing categories, idea of multitude, 146; gay/lesbian studies, 154–156; of indigenous understandings, 143; intersections, 157–158; law and categories, 144; reversal of hierarchies, 145; standpoint epistemology, 145; and statistical evidence, 144; transformation of real events in language of the law, 146; queer theory, 156–157 Lenin,Vladimir Ilich, 37, 41, 82, 89 Lesbian Avengers, 170 Levinas, Emmanuel, 129 Lewis, Reina, 120 liberal ironist, 131 liberation theology, 82–83, 218 Lichtermann, Paul, 175 Lipietz, A., 96 Lippens, Ronnie, 124, 197, 219 Litowitz, Douglas, 125–126, 128, 129, 130, 131, 132 Lock, John, 16 Lofton v. Secretary of Children and Family Service, 155 Logan,Wayne, 54 Lomborg, Bjorn, 101 low intensity conflict, 86, 90 Low, Nicholas, 93

Lycos, Kimon, 12 Lyotard, Jean-Francois, 126–128, 136, 139 Mabo v. Queensland, 111, 113, 131 MacKinnon, Catherine, 135, 145 MacLean, Brian, xi MacLean, Gerald, 121 Malek, Anwar Abdel, 122 Marchetti, Elena, 113 Marcuse, Peter, 86, 90 Malcolm X, 162–165 Mamdani, Mahmood, 187, 188, 189 Mandela, Nelson, 90, 181–182 Maori, 109; and restorative justice practices, 109, 111 Marable, Manning, 163, 165 Marcynyscyn, Lyscha, 102, 103 Martin, Edward, 82–83, 89 Marx, Gary, 196 Marx, Karl, x; autonomist Marxists, 137; communist manifesto, 138; dialectical materialism, 37, 134; different abilities and needs, 133; ideological state apparatus, 38; instrumental Marxism, xi; and just contract, 36, 37; justice in socialism, capitalism, and communism, 40–41; Marxism related to postcolonial theorists, 120; and needs principle, 64, 68–69; structural Marxism, xi; 26; 36–41 Maskovisky, Jeff, 90 Maslow, Abraham, 64 Matsuda, Mari, 144, 150, 153, 154 Matza, David, 70, 71 McAdam, Doug, 160 McCleskey v. Kemp, 144 McLaren, Duncan, 96 Meier, Matt, 166 Melendez, Miguel, 167 Mexican American Youth Organization (MAYO), 166–167 Middleton, N. 93, 96 Mies, Maria, 95 Merrion v. Jicarilla Apache Tribe, 111

Index

Miller, David, 5, 24, 25, 29, 41–43; citizenship and formal equality, 42, 64–65, 78; and distributive justice in a global order, 80–81, 87–90; and environmental justice, 96–100, 106; instrumental association and deserts principle of justice, 42; social movements and demands of justice, 161; solidaristic community and needs principle of justice, 41–42; and compared to Weber’s formal rationality, 42 Mill, John Stuart, 18–19 Mills, Charles, 103 Mills, Sara, 120 Milovanovic, Dragan, xi, 68, 94, 139, 148, 176, 211, 214 mode of production, 36–37 modern age, 15; compared to postmodernists, 27; modernist assumptions, 26–27, 113; modernist assumptions and indigenous global rights, 118 Monahan, J., 54 Montgomery bus boycotts, 163 Moodie, Dunbar, 180 Moreton-Robinson, Aileen, 113 Morris, Ruth, 65–66 Most, Michael, 101 Mouffe, Chantal, 176 movement fusion, 175. See also multitude Muhammad, Ali, 162–165 multiculturalism, 77–92; definition, 78 multitude, 87, 146; as apposed to class, 138–139, 219; and compatibility with COREL sets, 219; definition, 138, 146, 213, 219; multitude is to empire as proletariat is to bourgeoisie, 219; mutual aid, 25; as the new revolutionary group in global society, 138; and similarity with Deleuze’s people yet to come, 217. See also Kropotkin Myers, G.D., 111

253

Nagy, Rosemary, 182, 183 Najam, Adil, 94 Nash, June, 197 National Association for the Advancement of Colored People (NAACP), 163, 165 Nation of Islam, 163–164 native title, 111–112 natural law, 14; law of nature, 27 needs based justice, 25; as apposed to rights-based justice and desert-based justice, 67; 80; environmental/ ecological needs principle, 96–98; in a global economy, 87–90; Miller on, 41–42; 57, 64, 67 Negri, Antonio, 79, 83, 86–87, 138, 146, 197, 198, 216, 210 neoliberalism, 85, 199 Newman, Dwight, 182 Nietzsche, Friedrich, 27–28, 132, 214 Niezen, Ronald, 108; relativism v. global rights for indigenous, 117–119 Noel, Alain, 84, 89 Non Governmental Organizations (NGOs), 85, 89 North American Free Trade Agreement (NAFTA), 104 Norval, Aletta, 179, 180; and deconstruction strategy, 218 O’Keefe, P., 93, 96 Olivera, Oscar, 193, 194 Oliver, Melvin, 161 O’Malley, Pat, 53 Oncale v. Sundower Offshore Services, Inc., 148 Onuf, N. G., 111 original position, 19. See also Rawls, John Osorio, Ivan, 196 Packer, Herbert, 49–51 Palestine: and apartheid by Israel, 188–189; historical context, 190; reciprocal violence,189; struggles for, 187–190

254

Index

Pan African Congress, 180 Pangle,Thomas, 11 Parker, Christine, 71–72, 90 Pashukanis, Evgeny, 38; and legal fetishism, 38, 41, 134, 209 Passavant, Paul, 86 passive responsibility, 60; compared to active responsibility, 60. See also Braithwaite Patriot’s Act, 54 Patton, Paul, 111, 132, 134, 135, 218 Pavlich, George, 63, 65 Peirce, Charles Sanders, 73 People v. Burns, 49 People v. McDougle, 49 People v. Zammora, 151. See also Critical Latino/a studies (Lat Crits) Petit apartheid, 148 Pettit, Philip, 59, 71 Piaget, Jean, 22 Phillips, Derek, 20, 21, 207 Plato, 11–13 Platt,Tony, ix Plessy v. Ferguson, 6, 132, 143, 216 plurality of antagonisms, 176 Pockock, J. G., 110 Poland: and communism, 191; and EU (European Union), 192; shipyard workers, 190; and struggles, 190–192; Solidarity and two waves, 190–191 political economy, 36–41 positive law, 14; positive jurisprudence, 125 Posner, Richard, 145 postcolonial theory, 119–124 Poster, Mark, 138 postmodern forms of justice, conceptions of justice, 26–28, 125–139, 214; antifoundational, 125, 130; against founding principles, 128; apposing grand narratives, 126; apposing positive jurisprudence, 125; constitutions enacted by force/violence, 128; contingency, 130; contingent frameworks of justice, 126; desire based

justice, 132, 135; difference between law and justice, 129–130; The Differend, 127, 136; duty owed to the other, 130; Enlightenment period and postmodernists critique, 125, 130, 132; evaluative criteria, 126; experimental tinkering, 130; fostering otherness, 128; good prophets, 131; and indigenous authorship, 116; internal v. external critique, 125; judge’s bad faith and denial, 132; justice as equivalent evaluation, 136; justice principles related to active justice as maximizing opportunities to become other, 134; language and subjectivity, 126; liberal ironists, 131; mode of information rather than mode of production, 138; multitude replacing proletariat in global arena, 138–139; new conceptions of those in struggle in a global order, 137; notion of desire, 133; passive v. active notions of justice, 125–126; petit narratives, 127; postmodern author and indigenous, 113; postmodern feminists, 135–137; postmodern Marxists and Negri and Hardt’s critique of Rawls, 138; pragmatism, 130; reactive forces, 133; sexuate being, 136; uneasy alliance of critical race theory with postmodernist analysis, 150; visionary leap, 131, 135; waging war on totality, 127. See also chaos theory; constitutive model; Cornell, Drucilla; Deleuze, Gilles; Derrida, Jacques; Lyotard, JeanFrancois; postmodern Marxists; Rorty, Richard postmodern Marxism, 137–139 Poya, Maryam, 186, 187 pragmatic grounded justice, 130, 131, 210 Preston,Ted, 99 Principle of discovery, 109–110, 113. See also terra nullius Puerto Rican, 166–167 See also Critical Latino/a studies (Lat Crits)

Index

Queer theory, 144, 156–157; antiessentialism, 156; autonomy of self, 157; criteria and definitional issues, 157; criticism of binary notions/ dualisms, 156; and identities 156, 157; inadvertent reinforcement of traditional categories, 156; law and sex/gender binary, 157; origins, 156; as separate from lesbian and gay studies, 156; questioning categories created and stabilized, 156–157; queer as becoming, 156 Queer Nation, 170 Quinney, Richard, x, xi, 38 Raine, S., 111 Randall, Alice, 150 Randaria, Shalini, 104 Ransby, Barbara, 165–166, 178 Ransley, Janet, 113 Rao, Mohan, 84, 89 rationalization, 33. See also Weber, Max Ravallion, Martin, 82 R.A.V. v. City of St. Paul, 154 Rawls, John, 19–20; critique by Hardt and Negri, 138 realists, 119 Rees,William, 96 reformist remedial style response to harm, 68, 71, 74 rehabilitation philosophy of punishment, 47–48 Reiman, Jeffrey, 19, 207, 209–210 reintegrating shaming, 59–60 religion, 33–34, 77, 82–83, 123, 184, 187 restorative justice, xii, 26, 55–56; critique of 61–65; and globalization, 90–92. See also Braithwaite, John retribution philosophy of punishment, 47, 57–58, 59 retributive justice, defined, 2–3, 4; difference between retributive justice and retribution theory of punishment, 45; and environmental protection, 105, 107; in a global order, 87–90

255

reversal of hierarchies, 135. See also MacKinnon, Catherine revolutionary change, 36–41 Reza, Ernesto, 173, 174 rhizomatic organizations, 138 Ribera, Feliciano, 166 Rigakos, George, 54, 55 rights-based justice, 72, 134 Riley, Angela, 112, 113, 116 Rio Conference on Environment and Development, principles, 106, 107 R.I.S.E., Inc. v. Kay, 100 risk management, 53 risk society, 54, 79, 210 Robins, Nick, 94 Roe v.Wade, 131, 148, 168 Rorty, Richard, 130–132, 135 Ross, Alf, 15 Ross, Robert, 179, 180, 181 Rousseau, Jean-Jacque, 17–18 Roy, Arundhati, 199 Russell, Katherine, 148 Ryan, Charlotte, 169 Said, Edward, 119, 122–123, 187, 189 Salazar, Debra, 175 San Antonio Independent School District v. Rodriguez, 152 Schapiro,Thomas, 161 Schehr, Robert, 63, 71, 139, 176–177, 217 Scheper-Hughes, Nancy, 118 Schlosberg, David, 95, 174, 175 School of Criminology at Berkeley, x Schum, D., 73 Schwendinger, Herman, ix, 45, 70, 71 Schwendinger, Julia, ix, 45, 70, 71 Scimecca, Joseph, 62, 209 Seis, Mark, 94 Sembene, Ousmane, 120 Sen, Amartya, 79 Sengupta, Raja, 101 Senser, Robert, 190, 191, 192 Shahidian, Hammed, 187 Sharma, Sohan, 196

256

Index

Sherry, Suzanna, 145 Shiva,Vandana, 95 Shriva,Thomas, 160 Sikorski, Radeck, 191 Silbey, Susan, 40, 70 Simon, Jonathan, 53, 54 Simpson, Graeme, 182 Smith, Adam, 24 Smith, Linda, 120 Smith, Sharon, 168 Smith,William, 85, 89 social contract, 15, 16, 17, 19, 31, 87; consensual contract, 31. See also Durkheim, Emile;Weber, Max social defense (incapacitation) philosophy of punishment, 48–49 socialism, 196 social justice model, xi; definition, 1–4, 41–43 social movement paradigms, 217 Socrates, 11–13 Solidarity, 190–191. See also Poland Sophocles, vi South Africa and justice movements, 179–184; African National Congress, 180; apartheid, 179–181; colonization, 179; resistance, 180–182; truth and reconciliation commission, 182–183 sovereign, 15, 109; definition of, 110–111. See also sovereignty sovereignty, 83, 86–87, 108–114; and law 113. See also sovereign Sparks, Allister, 181 Spencer, Herbert, 23–24 Spivak, Gayatri, 119–122 standpoint epistemology, 145 stare decises, 21, 131, 146, 148 state capitalism, 191 state of nature, 15 Steadman, H. J., 54 Stefancic, Jean, 144, 145, 150, 153, 157, 217 stigmatizing shaming, 59–60 Strong, Karen, 55, 56, 57, 58, 65, 70–71, 208 studies in social justice, ix–x

subaltern, 121–121, 145; subaltern resistance, 176 substantive rationality, 35 Sullivan, Denis, 25, 57, 59, 65, 66–67, 207 Supranational Organizations (SNOs), 85 sustainable development, 94–95, 102; and European resolution on Industrial Restructuring and Relocation in the European Union, 106–107 sustainable justice, 184 Sustar, Lee, 171 Switala, Kristin, 120 syllogistic reasoning, 34; in relation to axioms, 133 Sylvain, Renee, 104 Takagi, Paul, ix Talton v. Mayes, 110 Tappan, Paul, 45 Taylor, Charles, 118 Taylor, D. E., 93 Teitel, Ruti, 182 terra nullius, 109–111, 143. See also principle of discovery terrorism, 186, 187–189; toxic, 103 Therien, Jean-Philippe, 84, 89 third space, 124; and bases of the emergence of an alternative discourse, 124; as hybridity, 124 Tiersma, Peter, 126 Tifft, Larry, 25, 57, 59, 65, 66–67, 207 there is no alternative (TINA), 85 Thiongo, Ngugi Wa, 120 Tong, Rosemarie, 21 Torres, Maria, 99 Touval, Saadia, 90 transformative justice, 26, 61–74 transitional justice, 182 Treaty of Waitangi, 111 Treaty of Waitangi Act, 111 truth and reconciliation, 90, 182–183; and restorative justice, 183–184; three rationales for, 182 Tucker, Robert, 26 Ture, Kwame, 162 Turner,Terence, 114, 117

Index

Tutu, Desomond, 90, 218 Twyman v.Twyman, 156. See also queer theory U.N. Declaration of Human Rights, 117 U.N. Draft Declaration on the Rights of Indigenous Peoples, 115 Unger, Roberto, 72–74, 119, 132, 207, 210; and superliberalims, 147 United States v. Salerno, 54 United States v.Winans, 111 U.N. International Bill of Human Rights, 117 U.N. International Covenants, 117 U.N.Working Group on Indigenous Populations, 108 U.S. Native American Graves Protection and Reparation Act, 114 U.S.Visual Artist’s Right Act, 115 Valaria v. Davis, 152 Valencia, Reynaldo, 151, 152 Van, Jon, 54 Van Ness, Daniel, 55, 56, 57, 58, 65, 70–71, 208 Van Zyl, Paul, 182 Vattel, Emer, 110 Venezuela and struggles for justice, 195–196, congestion, 196; and endogenous development, 196; elections, 196; Hugo Chavez, 195–196; twentieth century socialism in,196; U.S. Secretary of State Rice’s characterization of Chavez as “destabilizing influence,” 196 Vieques, Puerto Rico, 99–100 Vitoria, Francisco, 110 Von Hirsch, Andrew, 58 Walgrave, Lode, 58 war machine, 134 Warren, Karen, 95 Washington, Booker T., 162, 163 Washington v. Davis, 100 Watson, Hilbourne, 81–82, 85, 89

257

Weber, Max, 32–36, 49, 57, 58–59, 69, 90; and indigenous restorative justice practices, 109; insoluble conflict, 143; and insoluble conflict in indigenous issues, 117–119; formal rationality and deductive logic, 128; rationalization, 134; Unger’s critique of formal rationality, 147 Weinstein, Jami, 157 Westra, Laura, 96 White, Jeremiah, 49, 54 Whorf, Benjamin, 126 Whyte, Steven, 127, 128, 137, 139 Wilkins, David, 108, 110, 111 Williams, Chris, 110, 139 Wilson, Richard, 183 Wittgenstein, Ludwig, 126 Wolf, Sherry, 170 Woodmansee, Martha, 112, 113, 116 Woods, Alan, 196 Wooton, Barbara, 48–49 Worcester v. Georgia, 110 World Bank, 104, 193, 218 World Social Forum, 198–199 World Trade Organization (WTO), 94, 198 Wright, Martin, 58 Yniguez v. Arizonans for Official Language, 152. See also critical latino/a studies Young, Jock, xi Young,T. R., 15, 177 Zapatistas, 79, 196–198; Chiapas, 196; and defining liberty and democracy, 197; and focus on civil society, 197; horizontal form of revolution, 197; use of Internet, 197; justice as a mirror, 197; leadership philosophy, 219; network struggles, 197; Subcomandant Marcos, 198; Zapatista National Liberation Army (EZLN), 197 Zartman,William, 90 Zehr, Howard, 55 Zinger, Ivan, 53 Zinn, Howard, 162, 164, 165, 168 Zirin, Dave, 164

About the Author s

Loretta Capeheart’s activism focuses on the antiwar movement, union and workers’ rights, including immigrants’ rights, and the International Socialist Organization. Her research interests and accomplishments include publications on Latino women in the justice system and Latinos in Chicago Public Schools. Dragan Milovanovic, a Bernard J. Brummel Distinguished Research Professor, has been an instructor in jail settings, a dormitory counselor of incarcerated juveniles, a member of a prison inspection team, and a participant in a coffee-picking brigade during postrevolutionary Nicaragua. He is author and coauthor of seventeen books and the previous editor of Humanity and Society. He is currently editor of the International Journal for Semiotics of Law.